<?xml version="1.0" encoding="UTF-8" ?>
<!DOCTYPE gutbook SYSTEM "classicbook2.dtd">
<?xml-stylesheet type="text/css" href="defoe15.css"?>

<gutbook>
<gutblurb>
<para>
The publisher regrets, that, owing to a great distance intervening
between him and the author, many errors have crept into the edition 
 -- a short errata is given -- but there are errors in expression and 
grammar which it is thought the intelligence of most readers will be able
to detect of themselves -- such as "is" for "are," "was" for
"were," etc.
</para>
</gutblurb>

<markupblurb>
<para>This document was prepared for Arthur's Classic Novels. XML Markup by Arthur Wendover. , Oct 28, 2000</para>
</markupblurb>

<book>

<acknowledge>
This document was prepared for Arthur's Classic Novels. XML Markup by Arthur Wendover. Oct 28, 2000.
 (See source file for details.)</acknowledge>

<meta id="Description" content="This is the e-text version of the book Precaution by James F. Cooper, taken from the original e-text prcatn10.txt." />



<frontmatter>
<titlepage>
<title>Precaution </title>
<subtitle>Volume I &amp; II</subtitle>

<subtitle>A Novel </subtitle>
<author>James Fenimore Cooper</author>
<subtitle>1820.</subtitle>
</titlepage>

</frontmatter>

<bookbody>

<part>
<titlepage>
<poem><verse><line>
&quot;Be wise to day, 'tis madness to defer </line><line>
 -- To-morrow's caution may arrive too late.&quot; 
</line></verse></poem>
</titlepage>
<chapter>
<chapheader>
<title>Precaution.</title>
<chapnum>Chapter I.</chapnum>
</chapheader>
<para>
&quot;I wonder if we are to have a neighbour in 
the Deanery soon,&quot; inquired Clara
Moseley, addressing herself to a small party,
assembled in her father's drawing room,
while standing at a window which commanded a 
distant view of the mansion in question.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh yes,&quot; replied her brother, &quot;the
agent has let it to a Mr. Jarvis for a couple of 
years, and he is to take possession this week.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And who is the Mr. Jarvis that is about
to become so near a neighbour to us?&quot; asked
Sir Edward Moseley of his son.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, Sir, I learn he has been a capital
merchant, that has retired from business
with a large fortune; that he has, like yourself, sir, 
an only hope for his declining years
in his son, who is an officer in the army;
and, moreover, that he has a couple of fine
daughters; so, sir, he is a man of family,
you see. But,&quot; dropping his voice, &quot;whether
he is a man of family in your sense, Jane,&quot;
looking at his second sister, &quot;is more than
I could discover.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hope you did not take the trouble, sir,
to inquire on my account,&quot; retorted Jane,
colouring slightly with vexation at his
speech.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, but indeed I did, my dear sis, and
solely on your account,&quot; replied the laughing brother, 
&quot;for you well know, that no
gentility, no husband; and it's dull work to
you young ladies without at least a possibility of matrimony; as for Clara, she is -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
Here he was stopped by his youngest
sister Emily placing her hand on his mouth,
as she whispered in his ear, &quot;John, you
forget the anxiety of a certain gentleman,
about a fair incognita at Bath, and a list of
inquiries concerning her lineage, and a few
other indispensables.&quot; John, in his turn,
coloured, and affectionately kissing the hand
which kept him silent, addressed himself to
Jane, and by his vivacity and good humour
soon restored her complacency.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I rejoice,&quot; said Lady Moseley, &quot;that Sir
William has found a tenant, however; for
next to occupying it himself, it is a most desirable 
thing to have a good tenant in it, on
account of the circle we live in.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Mr. Jarvis has the great goodness
of money, by John's account,&quot; dryly observed Mrs. Wilson, 
a sister of Sir Edward's.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Let me tell you, madam,&quot; cried the rector of the 
parish, looking around him pleasantly, &quot;that a great deal of money is a very
good thing in itself, and that a great many
very good things may be done with it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Such as paying tythes, ha! doctor,&quot;
cried Mr. Haughton, a gentleman of landed
property in the neighbourhood, of plain exterior, but 
great goodness of heart, and between whom and the rector subsisted the
most cordial good will.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Aye, tythes, or halves, as the baronet
did here, when he forgave old Gregson one
half his rent, and his children the other.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well, but my dear,&quot; said Sir Edward to
his wife, &quot;you must not starve our friends
because we are to have a neighbour. William has stood 
with the dining room door
open these five minutes -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
Lady Moseley gave her hand to the rector,
and the company followed them, without any
order, to the dinner table.
</para>
<para>
The party assembled on this day round
the hospitable board of the baronet, was
composed, beside the before-mentioned persons, of a wife of Mr. Haughton, a woman
of much good sense and modesty of deportment; their daughter, 
a young lady conspicuous for nothing but good nature; and the
wife and son of the rector -- the latter but
lately admitted into holy orders himself.
</para>
<para>
The remainder of the day was passed in
that uninterrupted flow of pleasant conversation 
which was the natural consequence
of a unison of opinions in all leading questions, 
and where the parties had long known
and esteemed each other for those qualities
which soonest reconcile us to the common
frailties of our nature. On parting at the
usual hour, it was agreed to meet that day
week at the rectory, and the doctor, on
making his bow to Lady Moseley, observed,
that he intended, in virtue of his office, to
make an early call on the Jarvis family, and
that, if possible, he would persuade them to
join the intended party at his house.
</para>
<para>
Sir Edward Moseley was descended from
one of the most respectable of the creations
of his order by James, and had inherited,
with many of the virtues of his ancestors,
an estate which placed him amongst the
greatest landed proprietors in the county.
But, as it had been an invariable rule never
to deduct a single acre from the inheritance
of the eldest son, and the extravagance of
his mother, who was the daughter of a
nobleman, had much embarrassed the affairs
of his father, Sir Edward, on coming into
possession of his estate, had wisely determined 
to withdraw from the gay world, by
renting his house in town, and retiring altogether 
to his respectable mansion, about a
hundred miles from the metropolis. Here
he hoped, by a course of systematic, but
liberal economy, to release himself from all
embarrassments, and make such a provision
for his younger children, the three daughters
already mentioned, as he conceived their
birth entitled them to expect. Seventeen
years had enabled him to accomplish this
plan; and for more than eighteen months
Sir Edward had resumed the hospitality and
appearance usual in his family, and had
even promised his delighted girls to take
possession the ensuing winter, of his house
in St. James's Square. Nature had not qualified 
Sir Edward for great or continued
exertions, and the prudent decision he had
taken to retrieve his fortunes, was perhaps
an act of as much forecast and vigour as his
talents or energy would admit of; it was the
step most obviously for his interests, and
safest both in its execution and consequences,
and as such had been adopted: but, had it
required a single particle more of enterprise
or calculation, it would have been beyond
his powers, and the heir might have yet laboured under the 
difficulties which distressed his more brilliant, but less prudent parent.
</para>
<para>
The baronet was warmly attached to his
wife; and as she was a woman of many valuable 
and no obnoxious qualities, civil and
attentive by habit to all around her, and 
perfectly disinterested in her attachments to her
own family, nothing in nature could partake
more of perfection in the eyes of her husband
and children than the conduct of this beloved
relative; yet Lady Moseley had her failings,
although few were disposed to view her
errors with that severity which truth requires, 
and a just discrimination of character
renders necessary. Her union had been one
of love, and for a time, objected to by the
friends of her husband, on the score of fortune; but 
constancy and perseverance had
prevailed, and the protracted and inconsequent 
opposition of his parents, had left no
other effects, than an aversion in their children 
to the exercise or even influence of parental authority, 
in marrying their own descendants, which, although equal in degree,
was somewhat differing in effect. In the
husband it was quiescent; but in the wife,
slightly shaded with the female esprit du
corps, of having her daughters comfortably
established, and that in due season. Lady
Moseley was religious, but hardly pious;
she was charitable in deeds; but not always
in opinions; her intentions were pure, but
neither her prejudices or her reasoning powers suffered 
her to be at all times consistent;
yet few knew her but loved her, and none
were ever heard to say aught against her
breeding, her morals, or her disposition.
</para>
<para>
The sister of Sir Edward had been married, 
early in life, to an officer in the army,
who, spending much of his time abroad on
service, had left her a prey to that solicitude
to which her attachment to her husband necessarily 
exposed her; to find relief from
which, an invaluable friend had pointed out
the only true course her case admitted of -- a
research into her own heart, and the employment 
of active benevolence. The death of
her husband, who lost his life in battle,
causing her to withdraw in a great measure
from the world, gave her time for, and induced those 
reflections, which led to impressions on the 
subject of religion, correct in
themselves, and indispensable as the basis of
future happiness, but slightly tinctured with
the sternness of her vigorous mind, and possibly 
at times more unbending than was
compatible with the comforts of this world;
a fault, however, of manner, and not of matter. 
Warmly attached to her brother and his
children, Mrs. Wilson, who had never been
a mother herself, had yielded to their earnest
entreaties to become one of the family; and
although left by the late General Wilson
with a large income, she had since his death
given up her establishment, and devoted most
of her time to the formation of the character
of her youngest niece. Lady Moseley had
submitted this child entirely to the control
of her aunt; and it was commonly thought
Emily would inherit the very handsome sum
left to the disposal of the General's widow.
</para>
<para>
Both Sir Edward and Lady Moseley had
possessed a large share of personal beauty
when young, and it had descended in common to all their 
children, but more particularly to the youngest daughters. Although
a strong family resemblance, both in person
and character, existed between these closely
connected relatives, yet it existed with shades
of distinction, that had very different effects
on their conduct, and led to results which
stamped their lives with widely differing degrees of happiness.
</para>
<para>
Between the families at Moseley Hall and
the Rectory, there had existed for many
years an intimacy, founded on esteem, and
on long intercourse. Doctor Ives was a
clergyman of deep piety, and very considerable 
talents; he possessed, in addition to a
moderate benefice, an independent fortune in
right of his wife, who was the only child of
a distinguished naval officer. Both were
well connected, well bred, and well disposed
to their fellow creatures. They were blessed
with but one child -- the young divine we
have mentioned, who promised to equal his
father in all those qualities which had made
the Doctor the delight of his friends, and
almost the idol of his parishioners.
</para>
<para>
Between Francis Ives and Clara Moseley,
there had been an attachment, which had
grown with their years, from their childhood.
He had been her companion in their youthful recreations -- 
had espoused her little quarrels, and participated in her 
innocent pleasures, for so many years, and with such
evident preference for each other in the
youthful pair -- that on leaving college to
enter on the studies of his sacred calling
with his father, Francis here rightly judged,
that none other would make his future life
so happy, as the mildness, the tenderness,
the unassuming worth of the retiring Clara.
Their passion, if so gentle a feeling could
deserve the term, had received the sanction
of their parents, and waited only the establishment 
of the youthful divine, to perfect
their union.
</para>
<para>
The retirement of Sir Edward's family
had been uniform, with the exception of
occasional visits to an aged uncle of his
wife's, and who, in return, spent much of
his time with them at the Hall, and who
had declared his intention of making the
children of Lady Moseley his heirs. The
visits of Mr. Benfield were always hailed
as calling for more than ordinary gayety;
for although rough from indulgence in his
manner, and somewhat infirm from his
years, the old bachelor, who was rather addicted 
to those customs he had indulged in
in his youth, and was fond of dwelling on
the scenes of former days, was universally 
beloved where he was intimately
known, for his unbounded, though at times,
singular philanthropy.
</para>
<para>
The illness of the mother-in-law of Mrs.
Wilson had called her to Bath the winter
preceding the spring our history commences,
and she had been accompanied by her nephew
and favourite niece. John and Emily, during the 
month of their residence in that city,
were in the practice of making daily excursions 
in its environs; and it was in one of
these little tours that they were of accidental 
service to a very young and very beautiful woman, 
apparently in low health. They
had taken her up in their carriage, and
conveyed her to a farm-house where she
resided, during a faintness which had come
over her in a walk; and her beauty, air, and
manner, altogether so different from those
around her, had interested them both to a
painful degree. They had ventured to call
the following day to inquire after her welfare, 
and this led to a slight intercourse,
which continued for the fortnight longer
they remained there.
</para>
<para>
John had given himself some trouble to
ascertain who she was, but in vain. All they
could learn was, that her life was blameless, 
she saw no one but themselves, and
her dialect raised a suspicion she was not
English. To this then it was that Emily had
alluded in her playful attempt to stop the
heedless rattle of her brother, which was not
always restrained by a proper regard for the
feelings of others.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter II.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
On the morning succeeding the day of
the dinner at the Hall, Mrs. Wilson, and
all her nieces and her nephew, availed themselves 
of the fineness of the weather, to walk
to the Rectory, whither they were in the
frequent habit of such informal and friendly
visits. They had just cleared the little village of 
B -- , which lay in their route, as a
rather handsome travelling carriage and four
passed them, and took the road which led to
the Deanery.
</para>
<para>
&quot;As I live,&quot; cried John, &quot;there go our
new neighbours, the Jarvis's; yes, yes, that
must be the old merchant muffled up in the
corner, which I mistook at first for a pile of
band-boxes; then the rosy-cheek'd lady,
with so many feathers, must be the old
lady -- heaven forgive me, Mrs. Jarvis I mean
-- ay, and the two others the belles.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are in a hurry to pronounce them
belles, John,&quot; cried Jane; &quot;it would be
well to see more of them, before you speak
so decidedly.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh!&quot; replied John, &quot;I have seen
enough of them, and&quot; -- he was interrupted
by the whirling of a tilbury and tandem,
followed by a couple of servants on horseback. All about 
this vehicle and its masters, bore the stamp of decided fashion, and
our party had followed it with their eyes for
a short distance, when having reached a
fork in the roads, it stopped, and evidently
waited the coming up of the pedestrians, as
if to make an inquiry. A single glance of
the eye was sufficient to apprise the gentleman 
on the low cushion of the kind of
people he had to deal with, and stepping
from his carriage, he met them with a
graceful bow, and after handsomely apologising 
for troubling them, he desired to know
which road led to the Deanery. &quot;The
right, sir,&quot; replied John, returning his salutation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ask them, Colonel,&quot; cried the charioteer, 
&quot;whether the old gentleman went right or not.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The Colonel, in the manner of a perfect
gentleman, but with a look of compassion
for his companion's want of tact, made the
desired inquiry; which being satisfactorily
answered, he again bowed, and was retiring, as one of several 
pointers who followed the cavalcade sprang upon Jane, and
soiled her walking dress with his dirty feet.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Come hither, Dido,&quot; cried the Colonel,
as he hastened to beat the dog back from
the young lady; and again he apologised in
the same collected and handsome manner 
 -- when turning to one of the servants, he said,
&quot;call in the dog, sir,&quot; and rejoined his companion. The 
air of this gentleman was peculiarly pleasant; he was 
decidedly military, had he not been addressed as such by his
younger and certainly less polished companion. The Colonel 
was apparently about
thirty, and of extremely handsome face and
figure, while his driving friend appeared
several years younger, and of different materials altogether.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I wonder,&quot; said Jane, as they turned a
corner which hid them from view, &quot;who
they are?&quot; &quot;Who they are?&quot; cried her brother, 
&quot;why the Jarvis's to be sure; did'nt
you hear them ask the road to the Deanery?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! the one that drove, he may be a
Jarvis, but not the gentleman who spoke to
us -- surely not, John; he was called Colonel
you know.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, yes,&quot; said John, with one of his
quizzing expressions, &quot;Colonel Jarvis, that
must be the alderman; they are commonly
colonels of city volunteers: yes, that must
have been the old gentleman who spoke to
us, and I was right about the band-boxes.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You forget,&quot; said Clara, with a smile,
&quot;the polite inquiry concerning the old gentleman.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah! true; who can this Colonel be then,
for young Jarvis is only a captain I know;
who do you think he is, Jane?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How do you think I can tell you, John;
but whoever he is, he owns the tilbury, although he did 
not drive it, and he is a gentleman both by birth and manners.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, Jane, if you know so much, you
might know more, but it is all guess with
you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, it is not guess -- I am sure of it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The aunt and sisters, who had taken little
interest in the dialogue, looked at her with
some surprise, which John observing, he exclaimed, 
&quot;Poh: she knows no more than we
all know.&quot; &quot;Indeed I do.&quot; &quot;Poh, poh,&quot;
continued her brother, &quot;if you know, tell.&quot;
&quot;Why, the arms were different, then.&quot;
</para>
<para>
John laughed as he said, &quot;that is a good
reason, to be sure, for the tilbury being the
colonel's property; but now for his blood;
how did you discover that, sis, by his gait
and movements?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Jane coloured a little, and laugh'd faintly,
as she said, &quot;the arms on the tilbury had
six quarterings.&quot; Emily now laughed, and
Mrs. Wilson and Clara smiled, while John
continued his teazing until they reached the
rectory.
</para>
<para>
While chatting with the doctor and his wife,
Francis returned from his morning ride, and
told them the Jarvis family had arrived; he
had witnessed an unpleasant accident to a
gig, in which were Captain Jarvis, and a
friend, Colonel Egerton; it had been awkwardly 
driven in turning in the deanery gate,
and upset: the colonel received some injury
to his ancle, nothing, however, serious he
hoped, but such as to put him under the care
of the young ladies probably for a few days.
After the usual exclamations which follow
such details, Jane ventured to inquire of the
young divine who Colonel Egerton was:
&quot;Why, I understood at the time from one of
the servants, that he is a nephew of Sir Edgar Egerton, 
and a lieutenant-colonel on halfpay or furlough, or some such thing.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How did he bear his misfortune, Mr.
Francis?&quot; inquired Mrs. Wilson.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Certainly as a gentleman, madam, if not
as a Christian,&quot; replied the young clergyman,
smiling; &quot;indeed, most men of gallantry
would, I believe, rejoice in an accident which
drew forth so much sympathy, as the Miss
Jarvis's manifested.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How fortunate you should all happen to
be near,&quot; said Clara, compassionately.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Are the young ladies pretty?&quot; asked
Jane, with something of hesitation in her
manner.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, I rather think they are; but I took
very little notice of their appearance, as the
colonel was really in evident pain.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;This, then,&quot; cried the doctor, &quot;affords
me an additional excuse for calling on them
at an early day, so I'll e'en go to-morrow.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I trust Doctor Ives wants no apologies
for performing his duty,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He is fond of making them, though,&quot; said
Mrs. Ives, speaking with a benevolent smile,
and for the first time in the little conversation.
</para>
<para>
It was then arranged that the rector should
make his official visit, as intended, by himself;
and on his report, the ladies would act; and
after remaining at the rectory an hour, they
returned to the hall, attended by Francis.
</para>
<para>
The next day the doctor drove in, and informed them 
the Jarvis family were happily
settled, and the colonel in no danger, excepting 
from the fascinations of the damsels, who
took such evident care of him, that he wanted for 
nothing, and they might drive over
whenever they pleased, without fear of intruding unseasonably.
</para>
<para>
Mr. Jarvis received his guests with the
frankness of good feelings, if not with the
polish of high life; while his wife, who seldom thought 
of the former, would have been
mortally offended with the person who could
have suggested that she omitted any of the
elegancies of the latter. Her daughters were
rather pretty, but wanted, both in appearance
and manner, the inexpressible air of haut ton, 
which so eminently distinguished the easy
but polished deportment of Colonel Egerton,
who they found reclining on a sofa with his leg
in a chair, amply secured in numerous bandages, but unable 
to rise; yet, notwithstanding the awkwardness of his situation, he was
by far the least discomposed person of the
party, and having pleasantly excused his
dishabille to the ladies, appeared to think no
more of his accident or its effects.
</para>
<para>
The captain, Mrs. Jarvis remarked, had
gone out with his dogs to try the grounds
around them, &quot;for he seems to live only with
his horses and his gun: young men, my lady,
now-a-days, appear to forget that there are
any things in the world but themselves; now
I told Harry that your ladyship and daughters would favour
 us with a call this morning -- but no: there he went as if Mr. Jarvis
was unable to buy us a dinner, and we should
all starve but for his quails and pheasants.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Quails and pheasants,&quot; cried John, in
consternation, &quot;does Captain Jarvis shoot
quails and pheasants at this time of the year?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mrs. Jarvis, sir,&quot; said Colonel Egerton,
with a correcting smile, &quot;understands the
allegiance due from us gentlemen to the ladies, 
better than the rules of sporting; my
friend, the captain, has taken his fishing rod
I believe, madam.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is all one, fish or birds,&quot; cried Mrs.
Jarvis, &quot;he is out of the way when he is
wanted most, and I believe we can buy fish
as easily as birds; I wish he would pattern
after yourself, colonel, in these matters.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Colonel Egerton laughed pleasantly, but
did not blush at this open compliment to his
manners, and Miss Jarvis observed, with a
look of something like admiration thrown on
his reclining figure, &quot;that when Harry had
been in the army as long as his friend, he
would know the usages of good society, she
hoped, as well.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes,&quot; said her mother, &quot;the army is
certainly the place to polish a young man;&quot;
and turning to Mrs. Wilson, &quot;your husband,
I believe, was in the army, ma'am?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hope,&quot; said Emily hastily, &quot;that we
shall have the pleasure of seeing you soon,
Miss Jarvis, at the Hall,&quot; and preventing the
necessity of a reply from her aunt; the
young lady promised to be early in her visit,
and the subject changed to a general and uninteresting 
discourse on the neighbourhood,
country, weather, and other ordinary topics.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Now, John,&quot; cried Jane in triumph, as
they drove from the door, &quot;you must acknowledge my 
heraldic witchcraft, as you are
pleased to call it, is right for once at least.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! no doubt, Jenny,&quot; said John, who
was accustomed to use that appellation to
her as a provocation, when he wished what
he called an enlivening spirt; but Mrs. Wilson put 
a stop to it by a remark to his mother,
and the habitual respect of both the combatants kept them silent.
</para>
<para>
Jane Moseley was endowed by nature with
an excellent understanding, at least equal to
that of her brother, but wanted the more essential 
requisites of a well governed mind.
Masters had been provided by Sir Edward
for all his daughters, and if they were not 
acquainted with the usual acquirements of
young women in their rank in life, it was not
his fault: his system of economy had not embraced 
a denial of opportunity to any of his
children, and the baronet was apt to think
all was done, when they were put where all
might be done. Feeling herself and parents
entitled to enter into all the gayeties and
splendour of some of the richer families in
their vicinity, Jane, who had grown up during 
the temporary eclipse of Sir Edward's
fortunes, had sought that self-consolation so
common to people in her situation, which
was to be found in reviewing the former
grandeur of her house, and had thus contracted a degree 
of family pride. If Clara's weaknesses were less 
striking than those of Jane,
it was because she had less imagination, and
because that in loving Francis Ives she had
so long admired a character, where so little
was to be found that could be censured, that
she might be said to have contracted a habit
of judging correctly, without being able at
all times to give a reason for her conduct or
opinions.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter III.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The day fixed for one of the stated visits
of Mr. Benfield had now arrived, and John,
with Emily, who was the old bachelor's favourite 
niece, went in the baronet's post
chaise to the town of F -- , a distance of
twenty miles, to meet him, and convey him
the remainder of his journey to the Hall, it
being a settled rule with the old man, that his
carriage horses should return to their own
stables every night, where he conceited they
could alone find that comfort and care, their
age and services gave them a claim to. The
day was uncommonly pleasant, and the young
people in high spirits, with the expectation
of meeting their respected relative, whose
absence had been prolonged a few days by a
severe fit of the gout.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Now, Emily,&quot; cried John, as he fixed
himself comfortably by the side of his sister
in the chaise, &quot;let me know honestly, how
you like the Jarvis's and the handsome colonel.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then, John, honestly, I neither like nor
dislike the Jarvis's or the handsome colonel,
if you must know.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well, then, there is no great diversity in
our sentiments, as Jane would say.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;John!&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Emily!&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I do not like to hear you speak so disrespectfully 
of our sister, and one I am sure
you love as tenderly as myself.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I acknowledge my error,&quot; said the brother, 
taking her hand affectionately, &quot;and
will endeavour to offend no more; but this
Colonel Egerton, sister, he is certainly a 
gentleman, both by blood and in manners, as
Jane&quot; -- Emily interrupted him with a laugh
at his forgetfulness, which John took very
good-naturedly, as he repeated his observation 
without alluding to their sister.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes,&quot; said Emily, &quot;he is genteel in his
deportment, if that be what you mean; I
know nothing of his family.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, I have taken a peep into Jane's Baronetage, 
and I find him set down there as Sir
Edgar's heir.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There is something about him,&quot; said
Emily, musing, &quot;that I do not much admire;
he is too easy -- there is no nature; I always
feel afraid such people will laugh at me as
soon as my back is turned, and for those very
things they seem most to admire to my face.
If I might be allowed to judge, I should say
his manner wants one thing, without which
no one can be truly agreeable.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;What's that?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Sincerity.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah! that's my great recommendation,&quot;
cried John, with a laugh; &quot;but I am afraid I
shall have to take the poacher up, with his
quails and his pheasants indeed.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You know the colonel explained that to
be a mistake.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;What they call explaining away; but unluckily 
I saw the gentleman returning with
his gun on his shoulder, and followed by a
brace of pointers.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There's a specimen of the colonel's manners then,&quot; 
said Emily, with a smile; &quot;it will
do until the truth be known.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Jane,&quot; cried her brother, &quot;when
she saw him also, praised his good nature
and consideration, in what she was pleased to
call, relieving the awkwardness of my remark.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily finding her brother disposed to dwell
on the foibles of Jane, a thing at times he
was rather addicted to, was silent; and they
rode some distance before John, who was
ever as ready to atone as he was to offend,
again apologised, again promised reformation,
 and during the remainder of the ride,
only forgot himself twice more in the same
way.
</para>
<para>
They reached F -- two hours before the
lumbering coach of their uncle drove into the
yard of the inn, and had sufficient time to
refresh their own horses for the journey
homeward.
</para>
<para>
Mr. Benfield was a bachelor of eighty, but
retained the personal activity of a man of
sixty. He was strongly attached to all the
fashions and opinions of his youth, during
which he had sat one term in parliament, and
had been a great beau and courtier in the
commencement of the reign. A disappointment in 
an affair of the heart, had driven him
into retirement, and for the last fifty years,
he had dwelt exclusively at a seat he owned
within forty miles of Moseley Hall, the mistress 
of which was the only child of his only
brother. In his figure, he was tall and spare,
very erect for his years, and he faithfully
preserved in his attire, servants, carriages,
and indeed every thing around him, as much
of the fashions of his youth, as circumstances 
would admit of: such then was a
faint outline of the character and appearance
of the old man, who, dressed in a cocked
hat, bag wig and sword, took the offered arm
of John Moseley to alight from his coach.
</para>
<para>
&quot;So,&quot; cried the old gentleman, having
made good his footing on the ground, as he
stopped short and stared John in the face,
&quot;you have made out to come twenty miles
to meet an old cynic, have you, sir; but I
thought I bid you bring Emmy with you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
John pointed to the window, where his
sister stood anxiously watching her uncle's
movements. On catching her eye, he smiled
kindly, as he pursued his way into the house,
talking to himself.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay, there she is indeed; I remember
now, when I was a youngster, of going with
my kinsman, old Lord Gosford, to meet his
sister, the Lady Juliana, when she first came
from school, (this was the lady whose infidelity 
had driven him from the world;) and a
beauty she was indeed, something like Emmy
there, only she was taller, and her eyes were
black, and her hair too, that was black, and
she was not so fair as Emmy, and she was
fatter, and she stooped a little -- very little;
oh! they are wonderfully alike though; don't
you think they were, nephew?&quot; as he stopped
at the door of the room; while John, who in
this description could not see a resemblance,
which existed no where but in the old man's
affections, was fain to say, &quot;yes; but they
were related, you know, uncle, and that explains the likeness.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;True boy, true,&quot; said his uncle, pleased
at a reason for a thing he wished, and which
flattered his propensities; for he had once before 
told Emily she put him in mind of his
housekeeper, a woman as old as himself, and
without a tooth in her head.
</para>
<para>
On meeting his niece, Mr. Benfield, (who,
like many others that feel strongly, wore in
common the affectation of indifference and displeasure,)
 yielded to his fondness, and folding
her in his arms, kissed her affectionately as a
tear glistened in his eye; and then pushing her
gently from him, he exclaimed, &quot;come, come,
Emmy, don't strangle me, don't strangle me,
girl; let me live in peace the little while I
have to remain here -- so,&quot; seating himself
composedly in an arm chair his niece had
placed for him with a cushion, &quot;so, Anne
writes me, Sir William Harris has let the
deanery.&quot; &quot;O yes, uncle,&quot; cried John. &quot;I'll
thank you, young gentleman,&quot; said Mr. Benfield 
sternly, &quot;not to interrupt me when I
am speaking to a lady; that is, if you please,
sir: then Sir William has let the deanery to
a London merchant, a Mr. Jarvis; now, I
knew three people of that name -- one was a
hackney coachman when I was a member of
the parliament of this realm, and drove me
often to the house; the other was valet-dechambre 
to my Lord Gosford; and the third,
I take it, is the very man who has become
your neighbour. If it be the person I mean,
Emmy dear, he is like -- like -- ay, very like
old Peter, my steward.&quot; John, unable to contain 
his mirth at this discovery of a likeness
between the prototype of Mr. Benfield himself in 
leanness of figure, and the jolly rotundity of the 
merchant, was obliged to leave
the room; while Emily, smiling at the comparison, 
said, &quot;you will meet him to-morrow,
dear uncle, and then you will be able to
judge for yourself.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, yes,&quot; muttered the old man to himself, 
&quot;very like old Peter; as like as two
peas;&quot; and the parallel was by no means as
ridiculous as might be supposed.
</para>
<para>
Mr. Benfield had placed twenty thousand
pounds in the hands of a broker, with positive orders 
for him to pay it away immediately for government stock, bought by the
former on his account; but disregarding this
injunction, the broker had managed the transaction 
in such a way, as to postpone the
payment, until, on his failure, he had given up
that and a much larger sum to Mr. Jarvis, to
satisfy what he called an honorary debt, a
short time before his stoppage. It was in
elucidating the transaction Mr. Jarvis had
paid Benfield Lodge a visit, and restored the
bachelor his property. This act, and the
high opinion he entertained of Mrs. Wilson,
with his unbounded love for Emily, were the
few things which prevented his believing some
dreadful judgment was about to visit this
world, for its increasing wickedness and follies.
</para>
<para>
The horses being ready, the old bachelor
was placed carefully between his nephew
and niece, and in that manner they rode on
quietly to the Hall, the dread of accident
keeping Mr. Benfield silent the most of the
way. On passing, however, a stately castle,
about ten miles from the termination of their
ride, he began one of his speeches with,
&quot;Emmy dear, does my Lord Bolton
come often to see you?&quot; &quot;Very seldom, sir;
his employment keeps him much of his time
at St. James's, and then he has an estate in
Ireland.&quot; &quot;I knew his father well -- he was
distantly connected by marriage with my
friend Lord Gosford; you could not remember him, 
I expect:&quot; (John rolled his eyes at
this suggestion of his sister's recollection of
a man who had been forty years dead, as his
uncle continued;) &quot;he always voted with me
in the parliament of this realm; he was a
thorough honest man; very much such a
man to look at, as Peter Johnson, my steward: but 
I am told his son likes the good
things of the ministry -- well, well -- William
Pitt was the only minister to my mind.
There was the Scotchman they made a Marquis of, 
I never could endure him -- always
voted against him&quot; -- &quot;right or wrong, uncle,&quot;
cried John, who loved a little mischief in his
heart.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, sir -- right, but never wrong. Lord
Gosford always voted against him too; and
do you think, jackanapes, that my friend the
Earl of Gosford and -- and -- myself were
ever wrong? No, sir, men in my day were
different creatures from what they are now:
we were never wrong, sir; we loved our
country, and had no motive for being in the
wrong.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How was it with Lord Bute, uncle?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Lord Bute, sir,&quot; cried the old man with
great warmth, &quot;was the minister, sir -- he was
the minister; ay, he was the minister, sir,
and was paid for what he did.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But Lord Chatham, was he not the minister too?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Now, nothing vexed the old gentleman
more, than to hear William Pitt called by his
tardy honours; and yet, unwilling to give up
what he thought his political opinions, he
exclaimed, with an unanswerable positiveness
of argument, &quot;Billy Pitt, sir, was the minister, sir; 
but -- but -- but -- he was our minister, sir.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily, unable to see her uncle agitated by
such useless disputes, threw a reproachful
glance on her brother, as she observed timidly, 
&quot;that was a glorious administration, sir,
I believe.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Glorious indeed! Emmy dear,&quot; said the
bachelor, softening with the sound of her
voice and the recollections of his younger
days, &quot;we beat the French every where -- in
America -- in Germany; -- we took -- (counting
on his fingers) -- we took Quebec -- yes, Lord
Gosford lost a cousin there; and we took
all the Canadas; and we took their fleets:
there was a young man killed in the battle
between Hawke and Conflans, who was
much attached to Lady Juliana -- poor soul!
how she regretted him when dead, though
she never could abide him when living -- ah!
she was a tender-hearted creature!&quot; For Mr.
Benfield, like many others, continued to
love imaginary qualities in his mistress, long
after her heartless coquetry had disgusted
him with her person: a kind of feeling which
springs from self-love, that finds it necessary
to seek consolation in creating beauties, that
may justify our follies to ourselves; and which
often keeps alive the semblance of the passion, 
when even hope or real admiration is
extinct.
</para>
<para>
On reaching the Hall, every one was rejoiced 
to see their really affectionate and
worthy relative, and the evening passed in
the tranquil enjoyment of the blessings which
Providence had profusely scattered around
the family of the baronet, but which are too
often hazarded by a neglect of duty, that
springs from too great security, or an indolence 
which renders us averse to the precaution necessary 
to insure their continuance.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter IV.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
&quot;You are welcome, Sir Edward,&quot; said
the venerable rector, as he took the baronet
by the hand; &quot;I was fearful a return of your
rheumatism would deprive us of this pleasure,
and prevent my making you acquainted with
the new occupants of the deanery; who have
consented to dine with us to-day, and to
whom I have promised in particular, an introduction to Sir Edward Moseley.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I thank you, my dear doctor,&quot; rejoined
the baronet, &quot;I have not only come myself,
but have persuaded Mr. Benfield to make
one of the party; there he comes, leaning on
Emily's arm, and finding fault with Mrs.
Wilson's new fashioned barouche, which he
says has given him cold.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The rector received the unexpected guest
with the kindness of his nature, and an inward 
smile at the incongruous assemblage he
was likely to have around him by the arrival
of the Jarvis's, who, at that moment, drove
to his door. The introductions between the
baronet and the new comers had passed, and
Miss Jarvis had made a prettily worded apology 
on behalf of the colonel, who was not
yet well enough to come out, but whose politeness 
had insisted on their not remaining
at home on his account; as Mr. Benfield,
having composedly put on his spectacles,
walked deliberately up to where the merchant had seated 
himself, and having examined him through 
his glasses to his satisfaction,
took them off, and carefully wiping them,
began to talk to himself as he put them into
his pocket -- &quot;No, no; it's not Jack, the
hackney coachman, nor my Lord Gosford's
gentleman, but&quot; -- cordially holding out both
hands, &quot;it's the man who saved my twenty
thousand pounds.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr. Jarvis, who a kind of shame had
kept silent during this examination, exchanged 
his greetings sincerely with his
old acquaintance, who now took a seat
in silence by his side; while his wife, whose
face had begun to kindle with indignation at
the commencement of the old gentleman's soliloquy, 
observing that somehow or other it
had not only terminated without degradation
to her spouse, but with something like credit,
turned complacently to Mrs. Ives, with an
apology for the absence of her son. &quot;I cannot 
divine, ma'am where he has got to; he is
ever keeping us waiting for him;&quot; and addressing 
Jane, &quot;these military men become
so unsettled in their habits, that I often tell
Harry he should never quit the camp.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;In Hyde Park, you should add, my dear,
for he has never been in any other,&quot; bluntly
observed her husband. To this speech no
reply was made, but it was evidently not relished 
by the ladies of the family, who were
not a little jealous of the laurels of the only
hero their race had ever produced. The arrival 
and introduction of the captain himself,
changed the discourse, which turned on the
comforts of their present residence.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pray, my lady,&quot; cried the captain, who
had taken a chair familiarly by the side of the
baronet's wife, &quot;why is the house called the
deanery? I am afraid I shall be taken for a
son of the church, when I invite my friends
to visit my father at the deanery.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And you may add, at the same time, sir,
if you please,&quot; dryly remarked Mr. Jarvis,
&quot;that it is occupied by an old man, who has
been preaching and lecturing all his life;
and like others of the trade, I believe, in vain.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You must except our good friend, the
doctor here, at least, sir,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson;
and then observing her sister to shrink from
a familiarity she was unused to, she replied
to the captain's question: &quot;The father of
the present Sir William Harris held that station 
in the church, and although the house
was his private property, it took its name from
that circumstance, which has been continued
ever since.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Is it not a droll life Sir William leads,&quot;
cried Miss Jarvis, looking at John Moseley,
&quot;riding about all summer, from one watering place to another, and letting his house
year after year in the manner he does?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Sir William,&quot; said Dr. Ives gravely, &quot;is
devoted to his daughter's wishes, and since
his accession to his title, has come into possession of another residence, in an adjoining
county, which, I believe, he retains in his own
hands.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Are you acquainted with Miss Harris?&quot;
continued the lady, addressing herself to
Clara; and without waiting for an answer,
added, &quot;She is a great belle -- all the gentlemen are dying for her.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Or her fortune,&quot; said her sister, with a
contemptuous toss of the head; &quot;for my part,
I never could see any thing so captivating in
her, although so much is said about her at
Bath and Brighton.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You know her then,&quot; mildly observed
Clara.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, I cannot say -- we are exactly acquainted,&quot; hesitatingly answered the young
lady, and colouring violently as she spoke.
</para>
<para>
&quot;What do you mean, by exactly acquainted, Sally?&quot; cried her father with a laugh;
&quot;did you ever speak to, or were you ever in
a room with her in your life, unless it might
be at a concert or a ball?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The mortification of Miss Sarah was too
evident for concealment, and was happily relieved by a summons to dinner.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Never, my dear child,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson to Emily, 
the aunt being fond of introducing a moral, from the 
occasional incidents of every-day life, &quot;never subject
yourself to a similar mortification, by commenting on 
the character of those you don't
know: your ignorance makes you liable to
great errors; and if they should happen to
be above you in life, it will only excite their
contempt, should it reach their ears; while
those to whom your remarks are made, will
think it envy.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Truth is sometimes blundered on,&quot; cried
John, who held his sister's arm, waiting for
his aunt to precede them to the dining room.
</para>
<para>
The merchant paid too great a compliment
to the rector's dinner to think of renewing the
disagreeable conversation, and as John Moseley 
and the young clergyman were seated
next the two ladies, they soon forgot what,
among themselves, they would call their father's 
rudeness, in receiving the attentions of
a couple of remarkably agreeable young men.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pray, Mr. Francis, when do you preach
for us?&quot; asked Mr. Haughton; &quot;I'm very
anxious to hear you hold forth from the pulpit, 
where I have so often heard your father
with pleasure: I doubt not you will prove
orthodox, or you will be the only man, I believe, 
in the congregation, the rector has left
in ignorance, of the theory of our religion, at
least.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The doctor bowed to the compliment, as
he replied to the question for his son; that
on the next Sunday, they were to have the
pleasure of hearing Frank, who had promised
to assist him on that day.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Any prospects of a living soon?&quot; continued Mr. Haughton, 
helping himself bountifully to a piece of plumb pudding as he spoke.
</para>
<para>
John Moseley laughed aloud, and Clara
blushed to the eyes, while the doctor, turning
to Sir Edward, observed with an air of interest, 
&quot;Sir Edward, the living of Bolton is
vacant, and I should like exceedingly to obtain it for my son. The advowson belongs
to the Earl, who will dispose of it only to
great interest, I am afraid.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Clara was certainly too busily occupied in
picking raisins from her pudding, to hear this
remark, but accidentally stole, from under
her long eye-lashes, a timid glance at her father, as he replied:
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am sorry, my friend, I have not sufficient 
interest with his lordship to apply on
my own account; but he is so seldom here,
we are barely acquainted;&quot; and the good baronet looked really concerned.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Clara,&quot; said Francis Ives in a low and
affectionate tone, &quot;have you read the books
I sent you?&quot; Clara answered him with a
smile in the negative, but promised amendment as soon as she had leisure.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you ride much on horseback, Mr.
Moseley?&quot; abruptly asked Miss Sarah, turning her back on the young divine, and facing
the gentleman she addressed. John, who
was now hemmed in between the sisters, replied with a rueful expression, that brought
a smile into the face of Emily, who was
placed opposite to him 
 -- 
   &quot;Yes, ma'am, and sometimes I am ridden.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ridden, sir, what do you mean by that?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! only my aunt there (he whispered)
gives me a lecture now and then.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh ho!&quot; said the lady in the same tone,
with a knowing leer, and pointing slily with
her finger at her own father.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Does it feel good?&quot; said John in the
same manner, and with a look of great sympathy: but the lady, 
who now felt awkwardly, without knowing exactly why, shook her
head in silence as she forced a faint laugh.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Who have we here?&quot; cried Captain
Jarvis, as he looked through a window which
commanded a view of the approach to the
house -- &quot;the apothecary and his attendant,
judging from their equipage.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The rector threw an inquiring look on a
servant, who told his master they were strangers to him.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Have them shown up, doctor,&quot; cried the
benevolent baronet, who loved to see every
one as happy as himself, &quot;and give them
some of your excellent pasty, for the credit of
your cook, I beg of you;&quot; and as this request
was politely seconded by others of the party,
the rector bid them show the strangers in.
</para>
<para>
On opening the parlour door, a gentleman,
apparently sixty years of age, appeared, leaning 
on the arm of a youth of five-and-twenty.
There was sufficient resemblance between
the two, for the most indifferent observer to
pronounce them father and son; but the
helpless debility and emaciated figure of the
former, was finely contrasted by the vigorous 
health and manly beauty of the latter,
who supported his venerable parent into the
room, with a grace and tenderness, that struck
most of the beholders with an indescribable
sensation of pleasure. The doctor and Mrs.
Ives rose from their seats involuntarily, and
stood each for a moment as if lost in an astonishment 
that was mingled with grief. Recollecting himself, the 
rector grasped the extended hand of the senior in both his own,
and endeavoured to utter something, but in
vain; the tears followed each other down his
cheeks, as he looked on the faded and careworn 
figure which stood before him; while
his wife, unable to control her feelings, sunk
back into a chair and wept aloud.
</para>
<para>
Throwing open the door of an adjoining
room, and retaining the hand of the invalid,
the doctor gently led the way, followed by
his wife and son; the former having recovered from the first burst of her sorrow, and
who now, regardless of every thing else,
anxiously watched the enfeebled step of the
stranger. On reaching the door, they both
turned and bowed to the company in a manner of 
much dignity, mingled with sweetness,
that all, not excepting Mr. Benfield, rose from
their seats to return the salutation. On passing from 
the dining parlour, the door was
closed, leaving the company standing round
the table, in mute astonishment and commiseration, 
at the scene they had just witnessed. Not a word had been spoken, and
the rector's family had left them without apology or 
explanation. Francis, however, soon
returned, and was followed in a few minutes
by his mother, who, slightly apologising for
her absence, turned the discourse on the approaching 
Sunday, and the intention of Francis to preach on that day. The Moseleys
were too well bred to make any inquiries, and
the Deanery family appeared afraid. Sir Edward 
retired at a very early hour, and was
followed by the remainder of the party.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well,&quot; cried Mrs. Jarvis, as they drove
from the door, &quot;this may be good breeding,
but for my part, I think both the doctor and
Mrs. Ives behaved very rude, with their crying and sobbing.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;They are nobody of much consequence,&quot;
cried her eldest daughter, casting a contemptuous 
glance on a plain travelling chaise
which stood before the rector's stables.
</para>
<para>
&quot;'T was sickening,&quot; said Miss Sarah, with
a shrug; while her father, turning his eyes
on each speaker in succession, very deliberately 
helped himself to a pinch of snuff, his
ordinary recourse against a family quarrel.
The curiosity of the ladies was, however,
more lively than they chose to avow; and
Mrs. Jarvis bade her maid go over to the Rectory 
that evening, with her compliments to
Mrs. Ives; she had lost a lace veil, which
her maid knew, and thought she might have
left it at the Rectory.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Jones, when you are there, you can
inquire of the servants; mind, of the servants
-- I would not distress Mrs. Ives for the
world; how Mr. -- Mr. -- what's his name 
 -- Lud -- I have forgotten his name; just bring
me his name too, Jones; and it may make
some difference in our party, so just find out
how long they stay; and -- and -- any other
little thing Jones, which can be of use, you
know.&quot; Off went Jones, and within an hour
returned again. With an important look,
she commenced her narrative, the daughters
being accidentally present.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why ma'am, I went across the fields, and
William was good enough to go with me; so
when we got there, I rung, and they showed
us into the servants' room, and I gave my
message, and the veil was not there. Lord,
ma'am, there's the veil now, on the back o'
that chair.&quot; -- &quot;Very well, very well, Jones,
never mind the veil,&quot; cried her impatient mistress.
</para>
<para>
&quot;So, madam, while they were looking for
the veil. I just asked one of the maids, what
company had arrived, but&quot; -- (here Jones looked very 
suspiciously, and shook her head significantly:) 
&quot;would you think it, ma'am, not
a soul of them knew. But, ma'am, there was
the doctor and his son, praying and reading
with the old gentleman the whole time 
 -- and&quot; 
 -- 
   &quot;And what, Jones?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, ma'am, I expect he has been a great
sinner, or he would'nt want so much praying just 
as he is about to die.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Die!&quot; cried all three at once, &quot;will he
die?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;O yes,&quot; continued Jones, &quot;they all
agree he must die; but this praying so much,
is just like the criminals; I'm sure no honest
person needs so much praying ma'am.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, indeed,&quot; said the mother: &quot;no, indeed,&quot; responded 
the daughters, as they retired to their several rooms for the night.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter V.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
There is something in the season of
Spring which peculiarly excites the feelings
of devotion. The dreariness of winter has
passed, and with it, the deadened affections of
our nature. New life, new vigour, arises
within us, as we walk abroad and feel the
genial gales of April breathe upon us; and
our hopes -- our wishes, awaken with the revival 
of the vegetable world. It is then that
the heart, which has been impressed with the
goodness of the Creator, feels that goodness
brought, as it were, in very contact with our
senses. The eye loves to wander over the
bountiful provisions nature is throwing forth
in every direction for our comfort; and fixing 
its gaze on the clouds, which having lost
the chilling thinness of winter, roll in rich
volumes, amidst the clear and softened fields
of azure so peculiar to the season, and leads
the mind insensibly to dwell on the things of
another and a better world. It was on such
a day, the inhabitants of B -- thronged toward the village 
church, for the double purpose of pouring out their thanksgivings, and
of hearing the first efforts of their rector's
child, in the duties of his sacred calling.
</para>
<para>
Amongst the crowd, whom curiosity or a
better feeling had drawn forth, were to be
seen the modern equipages of the Jarvises,
and the handsome carriages of Sir Edward
Moseley and his sister. All the members of
this latter family felt a lively anxiety for the
success of the young divine. But knowing,
as they well did, the strength of his native talents, 
the excellency of his education, and the
fervour of his piety, it was an anxiety that
partook more of hope than of fear. There
was one heart, however, amongst them, that
palpitated with an emotion that hardly admitted of control, 
as they approached the sacred edifice, and which had identified itself
with the welfare of the rector's son. There
never was a softer, truer heart, than that
which now almost audibly beat within the
bosom of Clara Moseley; and she had given
it to the young divine with all its purity and
truth.
</para>
<para>
The entrance of a congregation into the
sanctuary will at all times furnish, to an attentive observer, 
food for much useful speculation, if it he chastened with a 
proper charity for the weaknesses of others; and most
people are ignorant of the insight they are
giving into their characters and dispositions,
by such an apparently trivial circumstance
as their weekly approach to the tabernacles
of the Lord. Christianity, while it chasteneth 
and amends the heart, leaves the natural
powers unaltered; and it cannot be doubted,
that its operation is, or ought to be, proportionate 
to the abilities and opportunities of
the subject of its holy impression -- &quot;unto
whomsoever much is given, much will be required.&quot; 
And at the same time we acknowledge, that the thoughts 
might be better employed in preparing for those humiliations of
the spirit and thanksgiving of the heart,
which are required of all, and are so necessary to 
all; we must be indulged in a hasty
view of some of the personages of our history, as 
they entered the church of B -- . On
the countenance of the baronet, was the dignity and 
composure of a mind at peace with
itself and mankind. His step was rather
more deliberate than common; his eye rested on the 
pavement, and on turning into his
pew, as he prepared to kneel, in the first humble 
petition of our beautiful service, he raised
it towards the altar, with an expression of
benevolence and reverence, that spoke contentment, not unmixed with faith.
</para>
<para>
In the demeanour of Lady Moseley, all
was graceful and decent, although nothing
could be said to be studied. She followed
her husband with a step of equal deliberation, that 
was slightly varied by an observance of a manner 
which appeared natural to
herself, but might have been artificial to another: 
her cambric handkerchief concealed
her face as she sunk composedly by the side
of Sir Edward, in a style which showed, that
while she remembered her Maker, she had
not entirely forgotten herself.
</para>
<para>
The walk of Mrs. Wilson was quicker
than that of her sister. Her eye directed
before her, fixed, as if in settled gaze, on that
eternity to which she was approaching. The
lines of her contemplative face were unaltered, 
unless there might be traced a deeper
shade of humility than was ordinarily seen
on her pale, but expressive countenance: her
petition was long; and on rising from her
humble posture, the person was indeed to
be seen, but the soul appeared absorbed in
contemplations far beyond the limits of this
sphere.
</para>
<para>
There was a restlessness and varying of
colour, in the ordinarily placid Clara, which
prevented a display of her usual manner;
while Jane walked gracefully, and with a
tincture of her mother's form, by her side.
She stole one hastily withdrawn glance to
the deanery pew ere she kneeled, and then,
on rising, handed her smelling bottle affectionately to her elder sister.
</para>
<para>
Emily glided behind her companions with
a face beaming with a look of innocence and
love. As she sunk in the act of supplication,
the rich glow of her healthful cheek lost some
of its brilliancy; but, on rising, it beamed
with a renewed lustre, that plainly indicated
a heart sensibly touched with the sanctity of
its situation.
</para>
<para>
In the composed and sedate manner of Mr.
Jarvis, as he steadily pursued his way to the
pew of Sir William Harris, you might have
been justified in expecting the entrance of another 
Sir Edward Moseley in substance, if
not in externals; but his deliberate separation of 
the flaps of his coat, as he comfortably seated 
himself, when you thought him
about to kneel, and followed by a pinch of
snuff, as he threw his eye around in examination 
of the building, led you at once to
conjecture, that what at first you had mistaken 
for reverence, was the abstraction of
some earthly calculation; and that his attendance 
was in compliance with custom, and
not a little depended upon the thickness of
his cushions, and the room he found for the
disposition of his unwieldy legs.
</para>
<para>
The ladies of the family followed, in garments 
carefully selected for the advantageous
display of their persons. As they sailed into
their seats, where it would seem the improvidence 
of Sir William's steward had neglected some 
important accommodation, (for some
time was spent in preparation to be seated,)
the old lady, whose size and flesh really put
kneeling out of the question, bent forward
for a moment at an angle of eighty with the
horizon, while her daughters prettily bowed
their heads, with all proper precaution for the
safety of their superb millinery.
</para>
<para>
At length the rector, accompanied by his
son, appeared from the vestry. There was
a dignity and solemnity in the manner in
which this pious divine entered on the duties
of his profession, which struck forcibly on
the imaginations of those who witnessed it,
and disposed the heart to listen, with reverence 
and humility, to precepts that flowed
from so impressive an exterior. The stillness
of expectation pervaded the church; when
the pew opener led the way to the same interesting 
father and son, whose entrance had
interrupted the guests the preceding day at
the rectory. Every eye was turned on the
emaciated parent, bending into the grave,
and, as it were, kept from it by the supporting
tenderness of his child. Hastily throwing
open the door of her pew, Mrs. Ives buried
her face in her handkerchief; and her husband had 
proceeded far in the morning service, before 
she raised it again to the view of
the congregation. In the voice of the rector,
there was an unusual softness and tremor, that
his people attributed to the feelings of a father, 
about to witness the first efforts of an
only child in his arduous duties, but which in
reality were owing to another and a deeper
cause.
</para>
<para>
Prayers were ended, and the younger Ives
ascended the pulpit; for a moment he paused
-- and casting one anxious glance to the pew
of the baronet, he commenced his sermon.
He had chosen for his discourse the necessity of 
placing our dependence on divine grace
for happiness here or hereafter. After having
learnedly, but in the most unaffected manner,
displayed the necessity of this dependence, as
affording security against the evils of this life,
he proceeded to paint the hope, the resignation, 
the felicity of a christian's death-bed.
</para>
<para>
Warmed by the subject, his animation had
given a heightened interest to his language;
and at a moment, when all around him were
entranced by the eloquence of the youthful
divine, a sudden and deep-drawn sigh drew
every eye to the rector's pew. The younger
stranger sat motionless as a statue, holding in
his arms the lifeless body of his parent, who
had fallen that moment a corpse by his side.
All was now confusion: the almost insensible
young man was relieved from his burthen;
and, led by the rector, they left the church.
The congregation dispersed in silence, or 
assembled in little groups, to converse on the
awful event they had witnessed. None knew
the deceased; he was the rector's friend, and
to his residence the body had been removed.
The young man was evidently his child; but
here all information ended. They had arrived in a private chaise, 
but with post horses, and without attendants. Their arrival
at the parsonage was detailed, with a few
exaggerations, by the Jarvis ladies, that gave
additional interest to the whole event; and
which, by creating an impression with those,
gentler feelings would not have restrained,
there was something of mystery about them;
prevented many distressing questions to the
Ives', that the baronet's family forbore putting
on the score of delicacy. The body left
B -- at the close of the week, accompanied by Francis Ives and 
the unwearied attentions of the interesting son. The doctor and
his wife went into deep mourning, and Clara
received a short note from her lover, on the
morning of their departure, acquainting her
with his intended absence for a month, but
throwing no light upon the affair. The
London papers, however, contained the following 
obituary notice, and which, as it
could refer to no other, was universally supposed 
to allude to the rector's friend.
</para>
<letter><para>
&quot;Died, suddenly, at B -- , on the 20th
instant, George Denbigh, Esq. aged 63.&quot;
</para></letter>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter VI.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
During the week, the intercourse between
Moseley-Hall and the Rectory had been
confined to messages and notes of inquiry after 
each other's welfare; but the
visit of the Moseleys to the Deanery had
been returned; and the day after the appearance 
of the obituary paragraph, they dined
by invitation at the Hall. Colonel Egerton
had recovered the use of his leg, and was included in 
the party. Between this gentleman and Mr. 
Benfield, there appeared from
the first moment of their introduction, a 
repugnance, which was rather increased by
time, and which the old gentleman manifested by a 
demeanour, loaded with the overstrained ceremony of his day; and in the
colonel, only showed itself by avoiding, when
possible, all intercourse with the object of his
aversion. Both Sir Edward and Lady Moseley, on the 
contrary, were not slow in manifesting their 
favourable impressions in behalf
of this gentleman; the latter, in particular,
having ascertained to her satisfaction, that he
was the undoubted heir to the title, and most
probably to the estates of his uncle, Sir Edgar Egerton, 
felt herself strongly disposed to
encourage an acquaintance she found so
agreeable, and to which she could see no
reasonable objection. Captain Jarvis, who
was extremely offensive to her, from his vulgar familiarity, 
she barely tolerated on account of the necessity of being civil, and
keeping up sociability in the neighbourhood.
It is true, she could not help being surprised,
that a gentleman, as polished as the colonel,
could find any pleasure in an associate like
his friend, or even in the hardly more softened 
females of his family; then again, the
flattering suggestion would present itself,
that possibly he might have seen Emily at
Bath, or Jane elsewhere, and have availed
himself of the acquaintance of young Jarvis
to place himself in their neighbourhood.
Lady Moseley had never been vain, or much
interested about the disposal of her own person, previously 
to her attachment to her husband; but 
her daughters called forth not a
little of her natural pride -- we had almost said
selfishness.
</para>
<para>
The attentions of the colonel were of the
most polished and insinuating kind; and
Mrs. Wilson several times turned away in
displeasure at herself, for listening with too
much satisfaction to nothings, uttered in an
agreeable manner, or what was worse, false
sentiments supported with the gloss of language 
and fascinating deportment. The
anxiety of this lady on behalf of Emily, kept
her ever on the alert, when chance, or any
chain of circumstances, threw her in the way
of forming new connexions of any kind;
and of late, as her charge approached the
period of life, her sex were apt to make that
choice from which there is no retreat, her
solicitude to examine the characters of the
men who approached her, was really painful. 
In Lady Moseley, her wishes disposed
her to be easily satisfied, and her mind naturally 
shrunk from an investigation she felt
herself unequal to; while in Mrs. Wilson,
it was the conviction of a sound discretion,
matured by long and deep reasoning, acting
upon a temper at all times ardent, and a
watchfulness eminently calculated to endure
to the end.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pray, my lady,&quot; cried Mrs. Jarvis, with
a look of something like importance, &quot;have
you made any discovery about this Mr. Denbigh, 
who died in the church lately?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I did not know, madam,&quot; replied Lady
Moseley, &quot;there was any discovery to be
made.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You know, Lady Moseley,&quot; said Colonel
Egerton, &quot;that in town, all the little accompaniments 
of such a melancholy death, would
have found their way into the prints; and I
suppose it is to that Mrs. Jarvis alludes.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;O yes,&quot; cried Mrs. Jarvis, &quot;the colonel
is right;&quot; and the colonel was always right
with that lady. Lady Moseley bowed her
head with dignity, and the colonel had too
much tact to pursue the conversation; but
the captain, whom nothing had ever yet
abashed, exclaimed, &quot;these Denbigh's could
not be people of much importance -- I have
never heard the name before.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is the family name of the Duke of
Derwent, I believe,&quot; dryly remarked Sir
Edward.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, I am sure neither the old man or his
son looked much like a duke, or so much as
an officer either,&quot; cried Mrs. Jarvis, who
thought the last the next dignity in degree
below nobility.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There sat, in the parliament of this realm,
when I was a member, a General Denbigh,&quot;
said Mr. Benfield with great deliberation;
&quot;he was always on the same side with Lord
Gosford and myself. He and his friend, Sir
Peter Howell, who was the admiral that
took the French squadron, in the glorious
administration of Billy Pitt, and afterwards
took an island with this same General Denbigh: ay, 
the old admiral was a hearty old
blade, a good deal such a looking man as my
Hector would make.&quot; Hector was his bull
dog.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mercy,&quot; whispered John to Clara,
&quot;that's your grandfather that is to be, uncle
Benfield speaks of.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Clara smiled, as she ventured to say, &quot;Sir
Peter was Mrs. Ives' father, sir.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Indeed!&quot; said the old gentleman with a
look of surprise, &quot;I never knew that before;
I cannot say they resemble each other much.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pray, uncle, does Frank look much like
the family?&quot; cried John, with an air of unconquerable gravity.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But, sir,&quot; said Emily with quickness,
&quot;were General Denbigh and Admiral Howell related?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not that I ever knew, Emmy dear,&quot; he
replied. &quot;Sir Frederic Denbigh did not
look much like the admiral; he rather resembled 
(gathering himself up into an air of
stiff formality, and bowing to Colonel Egerton) this gentleman here.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have not the honour of the connexion,&quot;
observed the colonel, as he withdrew behind
the chair of Jane.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson changed the conversation to
a more general one; but the little that had
fallen from Mr. Benfield gave reason for believing 
a connexion, in some way they were
ignorant of, existed between the descendants
of the veterans, and which explained the interest 
they felt in each other.
</para>
<para>
During dinner, Colonel Egerton placed
himself next to Emily; and Miss Jarvis took
the chair on his other side. He spoke of the
gay world, of watering places, novels, plays 
 -- and still finding his companion reserved, and
either unwilling or unable to talk freely, he
tried his favourite sentiments; he had read
poetry, and a remark of his had lighted up a
spark of intelligence in the beautiful face of
his companion, that for a moment deceived
him; but as he went on, to point out his favourite 
beauties, it gave place to that settled
composure, which at last led him to imagine,
the casket contained no gem equal to the
promise of its brilliant exterior. After resting 
from one of his most laboured displays of
feeling and imagery, he accidentally caught
the eyes of Jane fastened on him, with an
expression of no dubious import, and the
soldier changed his battery. In Jane, he
found a more willing auditor; poetry was
the food she lived upon, and in works of the
imagination, she found her greatest delight.
An animated discussion of the merits of their
favourite authors now took place; to renew
which, the colonel early left the dining room
for the society of the ladies; John, who disliked 
drinking excessively, was happy of an
excuse to attend him.
</para>
<para>
The younger ladies had clustered together
round a window; and even Emily in her
heart rejoiced that the gentlemen had come
to relieve herself and sisters from the arduous task of 
entertaining women, who appeared not to possess a single 
taste or opinion in common with themselves.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You were saying, Miss Moseley,&quot; cried
the colonel in his most agreeable manner, as
he approached them, &quot;you thought Campbell the 
most musical poet we have; I hope
you will unite with me in excepting Moore.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Jane coloured, as with some awkwardness
she replied, &quot;Moore was certainly very poetical.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Has Moore written much?&quot; innocently
asked Emily.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not half as much as he ought,&quot; cried
Miss Jarvis. &quot;Oh! I could live on his
beautiful lines.&quot; Jane turned away in disgust; 
and that evening, while alone with
Clara, she took a volume of Moore's songs,
and very coolly consigned them to the flames.
Her sister naturally asked an explanation of
such vengeance.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh!&quot; cried Jane, &quot;I can't abide the
book, since that vulgar Miss Jarvis speaks of
it with so much interest. I really believe
aunt Wilson is right, in not suffering Emily
to read such things;&quot; and Jane, who had
often devoured the treacherous lines with
ardour, shrunk with fastidious delicacy from
the indulgence of a perverted taste, when
exposed to her view, coupled with the vulgarity 
of unblushing audacity.
</para>
<para>
Colonel Egerton immediately changed the
subject to one less objectionable, and spoke
of a campaign he had made in Spain. He
possessed the happy faculty of giving an interest 
to all he advanced, whether true or
not; and as he never contradicted or even
opposed, unless to yield gracefully when a
lady was his opponent, his conversation insensibly 
attracted, by putting others in good
humour with themselves. Such a man, aided by the 
powerful assistants of person and
manners, and no inconsiderable colloquial
talents, Mrs. Wilson knew to be extremely
dangerous as a companion to a youthful female heart; 
and as his visit was to extend to
a couple of months, she resolved to reconnoitre the 
state of her pupil's opinion in relation to 
their military beaux. She had taken
too much pains in forming the mind of Emily, 
to apprehend she would fall a victim to
the eye; but she also knew, that personal
grace sweetened a, benevolent expression, or
added force even to the oracles of wisdom.
She laboured a little herself, under the 
disadvantage of what John called a didactic
manner; and which, although she had not
the ability, or rather taste, to amend, she had
yet the sense to discern. It was the great
error of Mrs. Wilson, to attempt to convince,
where she might have influenced; but her
ardour of temperament, and great love of
truth, kept her, as it were, tilting with the
vices of mankind, and consequently sometimes in 
unprofitable combat. With her
charge, however, this could never be said to
be the case. Emily knew her heart, felt
her love, and revered her principles too deeply, to 
throw away an admonition, or disregard a precept, that fell from lips she
knew never spoke idly, or without consideration.
</para>
<para>
John had felt tempted to push the conversation 
with Miss Jarvis, and he was about
to utter something rapturous respecting the
melodious poison of Little's poems, as the
blue eye of Emily rested on him in the fulness 
of sisterly affection, and checking his
love of the ridiculous, he quietly yielded to
his respect for the innocence of his sisters;
and as if eager to draw the attention of all
from the hateful subject, put question after
question to Egerton concerning the Spaniards
and their customs.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Did you ever meet Lord Pendennyss in
Spain, Colonel Egerton?&quot; inquired Mrs.
Wilson with interest.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Never, madam,&quot; replied he. &quot;I have
much reason to regret, that our service laid
in different parts of the country; his lordship
was much with the duke, and I made the
campaign under Marshal Beresford.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily left the group at the window, and
taking a seat on the sofa, by the side of her
aunt, insensibly led her to forget the gloomy
thoughts which had began to steal over her;
as the colonel, approaching where they sat,
continued by asking 
 -- 
   &quot;Are you acquainted with the earl, madam?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not in person, but by character,&quot; said
Mrs. Wilson, in a melancholy manner.
</para>
<para>
&quot;His character as a soldier was very high.
He had no superior of his years in Spain, I am
told.&quot;
</para>
<para>
No reply was made to this remark, and
Emily endeavoured anxiously to draw the
mind of her aunt to reflections of a more
agreeable nature. The colonel, whose vigilance 
to please was ever on the alert, kindly
aided her, and they soon succeeded.
</para>
<para>
The merchant withdrew with his family
and guest in proper season; and Mrs. Wilson,
heedful of her duty, took the opportunity of
a quarter of an hour's privacy in her own
dressing room in the evening, to touch gently
on the subject of the gentlemen they had seen
that day.
</para>
<para>
&quot;How are you pleased, Emily, with your
new acquaintances?&quot; commenced Mrs. Wilson, with a smile.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! aunt, don't ask me,&quot; said her niece,
laughingly, &quot;as John says, they are new 
indeed.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am not sorry,&quot; continued the aunt,
&quot;to have you observe more closely than you
have been used to, the manner of such
women as the Jarvis's; they are too abrupt
and unpleasant to create a dread of any imitation; 
but the gentlemen are heroes in very
different style.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Different from each other, indeed,&quot; cried Emily.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Which do you give the preference to,
my dear?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Preference, aunt!&quot; said her niece, with
a look of astonishment; &quot;preference is a
strong word for either; but I rather think the
captain the most eligible companion of the
two. I do believe you see the worst of him;
and although I acknowledge it to be bad
enough, he might amend; but the colonel&quot; 
 -- 
   &quot;Go on,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, every thing about the colonel
seems so seated, so ingrafted in his nature, so
-- so very self-satisfied, that I am afraid it
would be a difficult task to take the first step
in amendment -- to convince him of his being in the wrong.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And is he in the wrong?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily looked up from arranging some laces, with an 
expression of surprise, as she replied, 
&quot;did you not hear him talk of those
poems, and attempt to point out the beauties
of several works? I thought every thing he
uttered was referred to taste, and that not a
very natural one; at least,&quot; she added with a
laugh, &quot;it differed greatly from mine. He
seemed to forget there was such a thing as
principle: and then he spoke of some woman
to Jane, who left her father for her lover,
with so much admiration of her feelings, to
take up with poverty and love, in place of
condemning her want of filial piety; I am
sure, aunt, if you had heard that, you would
not admire him so much.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I do not admire him, child; I only want
to know your sentiments, and I am happy to
find them so correct. It is as you think;
Colonel Egerton appears to refer nothing to
principle: even the generous feelings of our
nature, I am afraid, are corrupted in him,
from too much intercourse with the surface
of society. There is by far too much pliability 
about him for principle of any kind,
unless indeed it be a principle to please, no
matter how. No one, who has deeply seated 
opinions of right and wrong, will ever
abandon them, even in the courtesies of polite
intercourse; they may be silent, but never
acquiescent; in short, my dear, the dread of
offending our Maker, ought to be so superior
to that of offending our fellow creatures,
that we should endeavour, I believe, to be
more unbending to the follies of the world
than we are.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And yet the colonel is what they call a
good companion -- I mean a pleasant one.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;In the ordinary meaning of the words,
he is certainly, my dear; yet you soon tire of
sentiments which will not stand the test of
examination, and of a manner you cannot
but see is artificial. He may do very well
for a companion, but very ill for a friend; in
short, Colonel Egerton has neither been satisfied 
to yield to his natural impressions, or
to obtain new ones from a proper source; he
has copied from bad models, and his work
must necessarily be imperfect&quot; -- and kissing
her niece, she retired into her own room,
with the happy assurance, that she had not
laboured in vain; but that, with divine aid,
she had implanted a guide in the bosom of
her charge, that could not fail, with ordinary
care, to lead her strait through the devious
paths of female duties.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter VII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
A month now passed in the ordinary avocations 
and amusements of a country life,
and during which, both Lady Moseley and
Jane manifested a desire to keep up the
Deanery acquaintance, that surprised Emily
a little, who had ever seen her mother shrink
from communications with those whose breeding 
subjected her own delicacy, to the little
shocks she could but ill conceal. And in
Jane it was yet more inexplicable; for Jane
had, in a decided way very common to her,
avowed her disgust of the manners of these
new associates on their first acquaintance;
and yet Jane would now even quit her own
society for that of Miss Jarvis, especially -- if
Colonel Egerton were of the party. The innocence 
of Emily prevented her scanning the
motives which could induce such a change
in the conduct of her sister; and she set seriously 
about an examination into her own
deportment to find the latent cause, and
wherever opportunity offered, to evince the
tenderness of her own affections.
</para>
<para>
For a short time, the colonel had seemed
at a loss where to make his choice; but a few
days determined him, and Jane was now
evidently the favourite. It is true, that in the
presence of the Jarvis ladies, he was more
guarded and general in his attentions; but
as John, from a motive of charity, had taken
the direction of the captain's sports into his
own hands; and as they were in the frequent
habit of meeting at the Hall, preparatory to
their morning excursions, the colonel suddenly 
became a sportsman. The ladies would
often accompany them in their morning
rides; and as John would certainly be a baronet, 
and the colonel might not if his uncle
married, he had the comfort of being sometimes 
ridden, as well as of riding.
</para>
<para>
One morning, having all prepared for an
excursion on horseback, as they stood at the
door ready to mount, Francis Ives drove up
in his father's gig, and for a moment arrested
their progress. Francis was a favourite with
the whole Moseley family, and their greetings 
were warm and sincere. He found they
meant to take the Rectory in their ride, and
insisted that they should proceed. &quot;Clara would 
take a seat with him;&quot; as he
spoke, the cast of his countenance brought
the colour into the cheeks of his intended,
who suffered herself to be handed into the
vacant seat of the gig, and they moved on.
John, who was at the bottom good-natured,
and loved both Francis and Clara very sincerely, soon set 
Captain Jarvis and his sister what he called &quot;scrub racing,&quot; 
and necessity, in some measure, compelled the
equestrians to ride fast to keep up with the
sports. &quot;That will do, that will do,&quot; cried
John, casting his eye back, and perceiving
they had lost sight of the gig, and almost of
Colonel Egerton and Jane, &quot;why you ride
like a jockey, captain; better than any amateur 
I have ever seen, unless indeed it be
your sister;&quot; and the lady, encouraged by
his commendations, whipped on, followed by
her brother and sister at half speed.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There, Emily,&quot; said John, as he quietly
dropped by her side, &quot;I see no reason you
and I should break our necks, to show the
blood of our horses. Now do you know, I
think we are going to have a wedding in the
family soon?&quot; Emily looked at him in
amazement, as he went on:
</para>
<para>
&quot;Frank has got a living; I saw it the moment he drove 
up. He came in like somebody. Yes, I dare say he has calculated the
tythes a dozen times already.&quot;
</para>
<para>
And John was right. The Earl of Bolton
had, unsolicited, given him the desired living
of his own parish; and Francis was at the
moment pressing the blushing Clara to fix
the day that was to put a period to his long
probation in love. Clara, who had no spice
of coquetry, promised to be his as soon as he
was inducted, which was to take place the
following week; and then followed those delightful 
little arrangements and plans, with
which youthful hope is so fond of filling up
the voids in future life.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Doctor,&quot; said John, as he came out of
the rectory to assist Clara from the gig,
&quot;the parson here is a careful driver; see, he
has not turn'd a hair.&quot; He kissed the burning 
cheek of his sister as she touched the
ground, and whispered significantly, &quot;you
need tell me nothing, my dear -- I know all 
 -- I consent.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Ives folded her future daughter to
her bosom, as she crossed the threshold; and
the benevolent smile of the good rector,
together with the kind and affectionate
manner of her sisters, assured Clara the
approaching nuptials were anticipated as a
matter of course. Colonel Egerton offered
his compliments to Francis, on his preferment 
to the living, with the polish of high
breeding, and not without the appearance of
interest in what he said; and Emily thought
him at that moment, for the first time, as
handsome as he was reputed generally. The
ladies undertook to say something civil in
their turn, and John put the captain, by a
hint, on the same track.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are quite lucky, sir,&quot; said the captain, 
&quot;in getting so good a living with so
little trouble; and I wish you joy of it with
all my heart: Mr. Moseley tells me it is a
capital good thing.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Francis thanked him for his good wishes,
and Egerton paid a handsome compliment to
the liberality of the earl; &quot;he doubted not he
found that gratification which always attends
a disinterested act;&quot; and Jane applauded
the sentiment with a smile.
</para>
<para>
The baronet, when on their return he was
made acquainted with the situation of affairs,
promised Francis that no unnecessary delay
should intervene, and the marriage was happily arranged 
for the following week. Lady Moseley, when she 
retired to the drawing
room after dinner with her sister and daughters, 
commenced a recital of the ceremony
and company to be invited on the occasion.
Etiquette and the decencies of life were not
only the forte, but the fault of this lady; and
she had gone on to the enumeration of about
the fortieth personage in the ceremonials,
before Clara found courage to say, &quot;that
Mr. Ives and myself both wished to be married 
at the altar, and to proceed to Bolton
Rectory immediately after the ceremony.&quot;
To this her mother warmly objected; and
argument and respectful remonstrance had
followed each other for some time, before
Clara submitted in silence, but with difficulty
restrained her tears. This appeal to the best
feelings of the mother triumphed; and she
yielded her love of splendour, to her love for
her offspring. Clara, with a lightened heart,
kissed and thanked her, and accompanied by
Emily, left the room. Jane had risen to follow them, 
but catching a glimpse of the tilbury of Colonel 
Egerton, re-seated herself,
calmly awaiting his entrance: &quot;he had merely 
driven over at the earnest entreaties of the
ladies, to beg Miss Jane would accept a seat
back with him; they had some little project on
foot, and could not proceed without her assistance.&quot; 
Mrs. Wilson looked gravely at
her sister, as she smiled acquiescence to his
wishes; and the daughter, who but the
minute before had forgotten there was any
other person in the world but Clara, flew for
her hat and shawl, in order, as she said to
herself, the politeness of Colonel Egerton
might not keep him in waiting for her. Lady 
Moseley resumed her seat by the side of
her sister with an air of great complacency,
as having seen her daughter happily off, she
returned from the window. For some time,
each was occupied quietly with her needle,
for neither neglected their more useful employments 
in that way, in compliance with
the fashions of the day, when Mrs. Wilson
suddenly broke the silence with saying,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Who is Colonel Egerton?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Lady Moseley looked up for a moment in
amazement, but recollecting herself, answered, &quot;nephew 
and heir of Sir Edgar Egerton, sister.&quot; This 
was spoken in a rather
positive way, as if it were to be unanswerable; 
yet as there was nothing harsh in the
reply, Mrs. Wilson continued,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you not think him attentive to Jane?&quot;
Pleasure sparkled in the yet brilliant eyes of
Lady Moseley, as she exclaimed 
 -- 
   &quot;Do you think so?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I do; and you will pardon me if I say,
improperly so. I think you were wrong in
suffering Jane to go with him this afternoon.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why improperly so, Charlotte; and if
Colonel Egerton is polite enough to show
Jane such attentions, should I not be wrong
in rudely rejecting them?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The rudeness of refusing a request improper to 
be granted, is a very venial offence,
I believe,&quot; replied Mrs. Wilson, with a smile;
&quot;and I confess I think it improper to allow
any attentions to be forced on us, that may
subject us to disagreeable consequences in any
way; but the attentions of Colonel Egerton
are becoming marked, Anne.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you for a moment doubt their being
honourable, or that he dares to trifle with a
daughter of Sir Edward Moseley?&quot; said the
mother with a shade of indignation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I should hope not, certainly,&quot; replied her
aunt, &quot;although it may be well to guard
against such misfortunes too; but I am of
opinion it is quite as important, to know
whether he is worthy to be her husband, as
it is that he be serious in his intentions of
becoming so.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;On what points, Charlotte, would you
wish to be more assured? You know his
birth and probable fortune -- you see his manners 
and disposition; but these latter, are
things for Jane to decide upon; she is to live
with him, and it is proper she should be suited 
in these respects.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I do not deny his fortune or his disposition, 
but I complain that we give him credit
for the last and more important requisites,
without evidence of his possessing them.
His principles, his habits, his very character,
what do we know of it? I say we, for you
know, Anne, that your children are as dear
to me as my own would have been.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I believe you sincerely,&quot; said Lady
Mosley; &quot;but these things you mention are
points for Jane to decide on; if she be pleased,
I have no right to complain. I am determined never 
to controul the affections of my
children.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Had you said, never to force the affections of 
your children, you would have said
enough, Anne; but, to controul, or rather
guide the affections of a child, especially a
daughter, is a duty in some cases, as imperious as it 
would be to avert any other impending calamity. 
Surely the time to do
this, is before the affections of the child are
likely to endanger her peace of mind.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have seldom seen much good result
from this interference of the parents,&quot; said
Lady Moseley, adhering to her opinions.
</para>
<para>
&quot;True; for to be of use, it should not be
seen, unless in extraordinary cases. You
will pardon me, Anne, but I have often
thought parents are generally in extremes;
either determined to make the election for
their children, or leaving them entirely to
their own flattered vanity and inexperience,
to govern not only their own lives, but I
may say, leave an impression on future generations. 
And after all, what is this love? Nineteen cases 
in twenty of what we call affairs of the heart 
would be better termed affairs of the imagination.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And, is there not a great deal of imagination 
in all love?&quot; inquired Lady Moseley, with a smile.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Undoubtedly there is some; but there is
one difference, which I take to be this: in
affairs of the imagination, the admired object
is gifted with all those qualities we esteem,
as a matter of course, and there is a certain
set of females who are ever ready to bestow
this admiration on any applicant for their favours, who may 
not be strikingly objectionable; the necessity of being courted, makes our
sex rather too much disposed to admire improper suitors.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But how do you distinguish affairs of the heart, Charlotte?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Those in which the heart takes the lead 
 -- these generally follow from long intercourse,
or the opportunity of judging the real character -- 
and are the only ones that are likely
to stand the test of worldly trials.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Suppose Emily to be the object of Colonel Egerton's 
pursuit, then, sister, in what
manner would you proceed to destroy the
influence I acknowledge he is gaining over
Jane?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I cannot suppose such a case,&quot; said Mrs.
Wilson, gravely, and then observing her sister to look, 
as if requiring an explanation, she
continued 
 -- 
   &quot;My attention has been directed to the
forming of such principles, and such a taste,
if I may use the expression, under these principles, 
that I feel no apprehension that Emily
will ever allow her affections to be ensnared
by a man of the evident opinions and views
of Colonel Egerton. I am impressed with a
two fold duty in watching the feelings of my
charge; she has so much singleness of heart,
such real strength of pure native feeling, that
should an improper man gain possession of
her affections, the struggle between her duty
and her love would be weighty indeed, but
should it have proceeded so far as to make it
her duty to love an unworthy object, I am
sure she would sink under it; but Jane would
only awake from a dream, and, for a while,
be wretched.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I thought you entertained a better opinion of Jane, 
sister,&quot; said Lady Moseley,
reproachfully.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I think her admirably calculated by nature to make 
an invaluable wife and mother;
but she is so much under the influence of her
fancy, that it is seldom she gives her heart an
opportunity of displaying its excellencies;
and again, she dwells so much upon imaginary perfections, 
that adulation has become
necessary to her. The man who flatters her
delicately, will be sure to win her esteem; and
every woman might then love the being possessed of 
the qualities she will not fail to
endow him with.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I do not know, that I rightly understand
how you would avert all these sad consequences of 
improvident affections?&quot; said
Lady Moseley.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Prevention is better than cure -- I would
first implant such opinions as would lessen
the danger of intercourse; and as for particular 
attentions from improper objects, it
should be my care to prevent them, by prohibiting, 
or rather impeding, the intimacy
which might give rise to them. And, least
of all,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, with a friendly
smile, as she rose to leave the room, &quot;would
I suffer a fear of being impolite to endanger
the happiness of a young woman entrusted
to my care.&quot;
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter VIII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
Francis, who laboured with the ardour of a
lover, under the influence of newly awakened
stimulus, soon completed the necessary arrangements and 
alterations in his new parsonage. The living was a good one, and as
the rector was enabled to make a very considerable 
annual allowance from the private
fortune his wife had brought him, and as Sir
Edward had twenty thousand pounds in the
funds for each of his daughters, her portion of
which was immediately settled on Clara,
the youthful couple had not only a sufficient,
but an abundant provision for their station in
life; and they entered on their matrimonial
duties, with as great a prospect of happiness
as the ills of this world can give to health,
affection, and competency. Their union had
been deferred by Dr. Ives until his son was
established, with a view to keeping him under
his own direction during the critical period
of his first impressions in the priesthood;
and, as no objection now remained, or rather,
the only one he ever felt, was removed by
the proximity of Bolton to his own parish,
he united the lovers at the altar of the village
church, in the presence of his wife and Clara's
immediate relatives. On leaving the church,
Francis handed his bride into his own carriage, which conveyed 
them to their new residence, amidst the good wishes of his 
parishioners, and the prayers of their relatives for
their happiness. Dr. and Mrs. Ives retired
to the rectory, to the sober enjoyment of the
felicity of their only child; while the baronet
and his lady felt a gloom, that belied all the
wishes of the latter for the establishment of
their daughters. Jane and Emily had acted
as bridesmaids to their sister, and as both the
former and her mother had insisted there
should be two groomsmen as a counterpoise,
John was empowered with a carte-blanche
to make a provision accordingly; he at first
intimated his intention of calling on Mr.
Benfield in that capacity, but finally settled
down, to the no small mortification of the
before-mentioned ladies, into writing a note
to his kinsman, Lord Chatterton, whose residence was 
then in London, and who, in reply, after expressing 
his sincere regret that an
accident would prevent his having the pleasure, 
stated the intention of his mother and
two sisters to pay them an early visit of congratulation, 
as soon as his own health would
allow of his attending them. This answer
arrived only the day preceding that fixed for
the wedding, and at the very moment they
were expecting his lordship in his proper
person.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There,&quot; cried Jane, in a kind of triumph,
&quot;I told you, you were silly in sending so far
on so sudden an occasion; now, after all,
what is to be done -- it will be so awkward
when Clara's friends call to see her -- Oh!
John, John, you are a Mar-plot.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Jenny, Jenny, you are a make-plot,&quot; said
John, as he coolly took up his hat to leave the
room.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Which way, my son?&quot; said the baronet,
as he met him on his own entrance.
</para>
<para>
&quot;To the deanery, sir, to try to get Captain
Jarvis to act as brides-maid -- I beg his pardon, 
grooms-man, to-morrow -- Chatterton has
been thrown from a horse, and can't come.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;John!&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Jenny!&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am sure,&quot; said Jane, indignation glowing 
in her countenance, &quot;that if Captain
Jarvis is to be an attendant, Clara must excuse my acting. 
I do not choose to be associated with Captain Jarvis.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;John,&quot; said his mother, with dignity,
&quot;your trifling is unseasonable; certainly
Colonel Egerton is a more fitting person on
every account, and I desire, under present
circumstances, you ask the colonel.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your ladyship's wishes are orders to
me,&quot; said John, gayly kissing his hand as he
left the room.
</para>
<para>
As the colonel was but too happy in having
it in his power to be of service in any manner, 
to a gentleman he respected as much as
Mr. Francis Ives, he was the only person
present at the ceremony, who did not stand
within the bonds of consanguinity to either
of the parties -- He was invited by the baronet
to dine at the hall, and notwithstanding the
repeated injunctions of Mrs. Jarvis and her
daughters, to return to them immediately
with an account of the dress of the bride, and
other important items of a similar nature,
the colonel accepted the invitation. On
reaching the hall, Emily retired to her own
room, and on her entrance at dinner, the
paleness of her cheeks and redness of her
eyes, afforded sufficient proof, that the translation 
of a companion from her own to another
family, was an event, however happy in itself,
not unmingled with grief, to those who were
losers by the change. The day, however,
passed off tolerably well for those who are
expected to be happy, when in their hearts
they are really more disposed to weep than
to laugh. Jane and the colonel had most of
the conversation to themselves during dinner;
even the joyous and thoughtless John, wore
his gayety in a less graceful manner than usual,
and was observed by his aunt, to look with
moistened eyes at the vacant chair a servant
had, from habit, placed where Clara had been
accustomed to sit.
</para>
<para>
&quot;This beef is not done, Saunders,&quot; said
the baronet to his butler, &quot;or my appetite is
not as good as usual to-day -- Colonel Egerton,
will you allow me the pleasure of a glass of
sherry with you?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The wine was drank, and the beef succeeded by game; 
but still Sir Edward could not eat.
</para>
<para>
&quot;How glad Clara will be to see us all the
day after to-morrow,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson;
&quot;your new house-keepers delight so in their
first efforts in entertaining their friends.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Lady Moseley smiled through her tears,
and turning to her husband, said, &quot;we will
go early, my dear, that we may see the improvements 
Francis has been making before
we dine;&quot; the baronet nodded assent, but his
heart was too full to speak; and apologising
to the colonel for his absence, on the plea of
some business with his people, left the
room.
</para>
<para>
The attentions of Colonel Egerton to both
mother and daughter were of the most delicate kind; he 
spoke of Clara, as if his situation as 
grooms-man to her husband, entitled
him to an interest in her welfare -- with John
he was kind and sociable, and even Mrs. Wilson 
acknowledged, after he took his leave,
that he possessed a wonderful faculty of
making himself agreeable, and began to
think that, under all circumstances, he might
possibly prove as advantageous a connexion
as Jane could expect to form. Had any one
have proposed him as a husband for Emily,
her affection would have quickened her
judgment to a decision, true to the best, the
only interest of her charge -- the rejection
of a man whose principles offered no security
for his conduct.
</para>
<para>
Soon after the baronet left the room, a
travelling carriage, with suitable attendants,
drove to the door; the sound of the wheels
drew most of the company to a window 
 -- &quot;a baron's coronet,&quot; cried Jane, catching a
glimpse of the ornaments of the harness.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Chattertons,&quot; echoed her brother,
as he left the room to meet them -- The
mother of Sir Edward was a daughter of this
family, and sister to the grandfather of the
present lord. The connexion had always
been kept up with the show of cordiality between 
Sir Edward and his cousin, although
their manner of living and habits in common
were very different. The baron was a
courtier and a place-man; his estates, which
he could not alienate, produced about ten
thousand a year, but the income he could
and did spend; and the high perquisites of
his situation under government, amounting to
as much more, were melted away, year after
year, without making the provision for his
daughters, both his duty, and the observance
of his promise to his wife's father, required
at his hands. He had been dead a couple of
years, and his son found himself saddled with
the support of an unjointured mother and unportioned 
sisters. Money was not the idol
worshipped by the young lord, nor even pleasure; he was 
affectionate to his surviving parent, and his 
first act was to settle during his
own life, two thousand pounds a year upon
her, while he commenced setting aside as
much more for each of his sisters annually;
this abridged him greatly in his own expenditures, 
yet as they made but one family, and
the dowager was really a managing woman
in more senses than one, they made a very
tolerable figure. The son was anxious to
follow the example of Sir Edward Moseley,
and give up his town house, for at least a
time, but his mother exclaimed with something 
like horror at the proposal.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why Chatterton, would you give it up
at the moment it can be of the most use to
us?&quot; and she threw a glance at her daughters,
that would have discovered her policy to
Mrs. Wilson, but was lost on his lordship; he,
poor soul, thinking she meant it as convenient 
to support the interest he had been making
for the place held by his father; one of more
emolument than service or even honour. The
contending parties were so equally matched,
that the situation was kept as it were in
abeyance, waiting the arrival of some newcomer 
to the strength of one or other of the
claimants -- the interest of the peer had began
to lose ground at the period we speak of, and
his careful mother saw new motives for her
activity in providing for her children in the
lottery of life. Mrs. Wilson herself could not
be more vigilant in examining the candidates
for her daughter's favours, than was the dowager 
Lady Chatterton -- it is true, the task of
the former lady was by far the most arduous,
as it involved a study of character and development 
of principle, while that of the latter
would have been finished by the development
of a rent-roll -- provided it contained five
figures in the sum total of its amount. Sir
Edward's was known to contain that number,
and two of them were not cyphers. Mr.
Benfield was rich, and John Moseley a very
agreeable young man; weddings are the season of love, 
thought the prudent dowager,
and Grace is extremely pretty. Chatterton,
who never refused his mother any thing in his
power to grant, and who was particularly dutiful, 
when a visit to Moseley Hall was in the
question, suffered himself to be persuaded his
shoulder was well, and they left town the day
before the wedding, thinking to be in time
for all the gayeties, if not for the ceremony
itself.
</para>
<para>
There existed but little similarity between
the persons and manners of this young
nobleman and the baronet's heir. The beauty
of Chatterton was almost feminine; his
skin, his colour, his eyes, his teeth, were
such as many a belle had sighed after; and
his manners were bashful and retiring -- yet
an intimacy had commenced between the
boys at school, which ripened into a friendship 
between the young men at college, and
had been maintained ever since, by a perfect
regard for each others dispositions, and respect 
for each others characters. With the
baron, John was more sedate than ordinary
-- with John, Chatterton found unusual animation. 
But a secret charm, which John
held over the young peer, was his profound
respect and unvarying affection for his
youngest sister Emily; this was common
ground -- and no dreams of future happiness,
no visions of dawning wealth, crossed the
imagination of Chatterton, in which Emily
was not the Fairy to give birth to the one,
or the benevolent disponser of the hoards of
the other.
</para>
<para>
The arrival of this family, was a happy
relief from the oppression which hung on the
spirits of the Moseleys, and their reception,
marked with the mild benevolence which belonged 
to the nature of the baronet, and that
empressement of good breeding, which so
eminently distinguished the manners of his
wife.
</para>
<para>
The honourable Miss Chattertons were
both handsome; but the younger was, if possible, 
a softened picture of her brother -- there
was the same retiring bashfulness, and the
same sweetness of temper as distinguished
the baron, and Grace was the peculiar favourite 
of Emily Moseley -- Nothing of the
strained or sentimental nature, which so often
characterise what is called female friendship,
had crept into the communications between
these young women. Emily loved her
sisters too well, to go out of her own family
for a repository of her griefs or a partaker in
her joys; had her life been checquered with
such passions, her own sisters were too near
her own age, to suffer her to think of a confidence, to which 
the holy ties of natural affection did not 
give a claim to a participation in.
Mrs. Wilson had found it necessary, to give
her charge very differing views on many subjects, from what Jane 
and Clara had been suffered to imbibe of themselves, but in no 
degree had she impaired the obligations of filial
piety or family concord. Emily was, if any
thing, more respectful to her parents, more
affectionate to her friends, than any of her
connexions; for in her the warmth of natural
feelings was heightened by an unvarying
sense of duty.
</para>
<para>
In Grace Chatterton she found, in many
respects, a temper and taste resembling her
own; she therefore loved her better than
others who had equal claims upon her partiality 
from ordinary associations, and as
such, she now received her with kindness and
affection.
</para>
<para>
In Catherine, Jane, who had not felt satisfied 
with the ordering of providence for the
disposal of her sympathies, and had felt a
restlessness that prompted her to look abroad
for a confiding spirit to communicate her 
 -- secrets she had none her delicacy would suffer 
her to reveal -- but to communicate the
crude opinions and reflections of her illregulated 
mind to. Catherine, however, had
not stood the test of trial. For a short time,
the love of heraldry had kept them together,
but Jane finding her companion's gusto limited
to the charms of the coronet and supporters
chiefly, abandoned the attempt in despair,
and was actually on the look-out for a new
candidate for the vacant station, as Colonel
Egerton came into the neighbourhood -- a
really delicate female mind, shrinks from the
exposure of its love to the other sex, and
Jane began to be less uneasy, to form a connexion, which 
would either violate the sensibility of her nature, 
or lead to treachery to her
friend.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I regret extremely, my lady,&quot; said the
dowager, as they entered the drawing room,
&quot;the accident which befel Chatterton, should
have kept us until too late for the ceremony;
but we made it a point to hasten with our
congratulations, as soon as Astley Cooper
thought it safe for him to travel.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I feel indebted for your ladyship's kindness,&quot; 
replied her smiling hostess; &quot;we are
always happy to have our friends around us,
and none more than yourself and family. We
were fortunate, however, in finding a friend
to supply your son's place, that the young
people might go to the altar in a proper manner -- 
Lady Chatterton, allow me to present
our friend, Colonel Egerton&quot; -- and speaking
in a low tone, and with a manner of a little
consequence -- &quot; heir to Sir Edgar.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The colonel had bowed gracefully, and the
dowager dropped a hasty curtsey at the commencement 
of the speech; but a lower bend
followed the closing remark, and a glance of
the eye was thrown in quest of her daughters, as 
if insensibly wishing to bring them
to their proper places.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter IX.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The following morning, Emily and Grace
declining the invitation to join the colonel
and John in their usual rides, walked to the
rectory, accompanied by Mrs. Wilson and
Chatterton. The ladies felt an irresistible
desire to mingle their anticipation of future
happiness to the new married couple, with
those most interested in them; and Francis
had promised his father to ride over in the
course of the day. Emily longed to inquire
after Clara, from whom she appeared already
to have been separated a month. Her impatience, as they 
approached the house, hurried her on ahead of her companions, who
waited the more sober gait of her aunt. She
entered the parlour at the rectory without
meeting any one; glowing with the unusual
exercise of her speed, and her hair falling
over her shoulder, released from the confinement 
of the hat she had, oppressed with the
heat, thrown down hastily as she gained the
door. In the room there stood a gentleman
in deep black, with his back toward the entrance, 
intent on a book he held in his hand,
and she concluded at once it was Francis.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Where is dear Clara, Frank?&quot; cried the
beautiful girl, laying her hand affectionately
on his shoulder; the gentleman turned suddenly, 
and presented to her astonished gaze,
the well-remembered countenance of the
young man whose parent's death would never
be forgotten at B -- .
</para>
<para>
&quot;I thought -- I thought, sir,&quot; said Emily,
almost sinking with confusion, &quot;Mr. Francis
Ives -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your brother has not yet arrived, Miss
Moseley,&quot; replied the stranger, in a voice of
peculiar tones, and the manner of a perfect
gentleman -- &quot;I will acquaint Mrs. Ives with
your visit;&quot; and bowing, he delicately left
the room.
</para>
<para>
Emily, who felt insensibly relieved by his
manner, and the nice allusion to her connexion with Francis, 
as explaining her familiarity -- immediately 
restored her hair to its proper bounds, and had 
recovered her composure by the time her aunt and friends
joined her -- she hastily mentioned the incident, 
laughing at her own precipitation, when
Mrs. Ives came into the room.
</para>
<para>
Chatterton and his sister were both known
to her, and both favourites; she was pleased
to see them, and after reproaching the brother
with compelling her son to ask a favour of a
comparative stranger, she smilingly turned to
Emily, and said -- &quot;You found the parlour 
occupied, I believe?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes,&quot; said Emily, laughing and blushing,
&quot;I suppose Mr. Denbigh told you of my
heedlessness.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He told me of your attention in calling
so soon to inquire after Clara, but said nothing
more&quot;-and a servant telling her Francis wished
to see her, she excused herself and withdrew.
In the door she met Mr. Denbigh, who made
way for her, saying, &quot;your son has arrived,
madam,&quot; and in an easy, but respectful manner, 
took his place with the guests, no introduction 
passed, and none seemed necessary;
his misfortunes appeared to have made him
acquainted with Mrs. Wilson, and his strikingly 
ingenuous manner, won insensibly on the
confidence of those who heard him. Every
thing was natural, yet every thing was
softened by education; and the little party in
the rector's parlour, in fifteen minutes, felt as
if they had known him for years. The doctor and 
his son now joined them -- Clara was
looking forward in delightful expectation of
to-morrow, and wished greatly for Emily as
a guest at her new abode. This pleasure
Mrs. Wilson promised she should have as
soon as they had got over the hurry of their
visit. &quot;our friends,&quot; she added, turning to
Grace, &quot;will overlook the nicer punctilios
of ceremony, where sisterly regard calls
for the discharge of more important duties. 
Clara needs the society of Emily just now.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Certainly,&quot; said Grace, mildly, &quot;I hope no
useless ceremony on the part of Emily would
prevent her manifesting her natural attachment to her 
sister -- I should feel hurt at her
not entertaining a better opinion of us than to
suppose so for a moment.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;This, young ladies, is the real feeling to
keep alive esteem,&quot; cried the doctor, gayly;
&quot;go on, and say and do nothing that either
can disapprove of, when tested by the standard of 
duty, and you need never be afraid of
losing a friend that is worth the keeping.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The removal of a young woman from
her own home to that of her husband, must
give birth to many melancholy reflections,&quot;
observed Denbigh to Francis, with a smile,
and the subject was dropped.
</para>
<para>
It was three o'clock before the carriage of
Mrs. Wilson, which had been directed to
come for them, arrived at the rectory; and
the time had stolen away insensibly in free
and friendly communications between the
doctor's guests and his wife, for he himself
had returned with his son to dine at Bolton
some time previously. Denbigh had joined
modestly, and with the degree of interest a
stranger could be supposed to feel, in the 
occurrences of a circle he was nearly a stranger
to; there was at times a slight display of
awkwardness, both about himself and Mrs.
Ives, for which Mrs. Wilson easily accounted
by the recollections of his recent loss, and the
scene that very room had witnessed; but
which escaped the notice of the rest of the
party. On the arrival of the carriage, Mrs.
Wilson took her leave.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I like this Mr. Denbigh greatly,&quot; said
Lord Chatterton, as they drove from the
door, &quot;there is something strikingly pleasing
in his manner.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay, my lord, and in his matter too, judging of the 
little we have seen of him,&quot; replied Mrs. Wilson.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Who is he, madam?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, I rather suspect he is some way
related to Mrs. Ives; her staying from Bolton
to-day, must be owing to Mr. Denbigh, and
as the doctor has gone, he must be just near
enough to them, neither to be wholly neglected, 
or a tax upon their politeness; I rather
wonder he did not go with them.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I heard him tell Francis,&quot; said Emily,
&quot;he would not think of intruding, and he insisted on Mrs. 
Ives going, but she had employment to keep her at home.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The carriage soon reached an angle in the
road where the highways between Bolton
Castle and Moseley Hall intersected each
other, and on the estate of the former. Mrs.
Wilson stopped a moment to inquire after an
aged pensioner of her's, who had lately met
with a loss in his business, she was fearful
must have distressed him greatly. In crossing a ford 
in the little river between his cottage and the market-town, the stream, which
had been unexpectedly higher than usual by
heavy rains above, had swept away his horse
and cart, loaded with the entire produce of
his small field -- with much difficulty he had
saved his own life. Mrs. Wilson had it not
until now in her power to inquire particularly
into the affair, and offer that relief she felt
ever ready to bestow on proper objects. Contrary to her 
expectations, she found Humphreys in high spirits, showing his delighted
grand-children a new cart and horse which
stood at his door, as he pointed out the excellent qualities of both. He ceased on the
approach of his benefactress on so many
former occasions, and, at her request, gave a
particular account of the affair.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And where did you get the new cart and
horse, Humphreys?&quot; inquired Mrs. Wilson,
when he had ended.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, madam, I went up to the castle to
see the steward, and Mr. Martin just mentioned 
my loss to Lord Pendennyss, ma'am,
and my lord ordered me this cart, madam,
and this noble horse, and twenty golden guineas 
into the bargain, to put me upon my legs
again -- God bless him for it for ever.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It was very kind of his lordship, indeed,&quot; 
said Mrs. Wilson, thoughtfully, &quot;I did
not know he was at the castle.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He's gone, madam; the servants told me,
he called to see the earl, on his way to Lonnon, 
but finding he'd went a few days agone
to Ireland, my lord went for Lonnon, without 
stopping the night even. Ah! madam,&quot;
continued the old man, as he stood leaning on
his stick, with his hat in his hand, &quot;he's a
great blessing to the poor; his servants say
he gives thousands every year to the poor
who are in want -- he is main rich, too, some
people say, much richer and more great like
than the earl himself. I'm sure I have need
to bless him every day of my life.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson smiled mournfully, as she
wished Humphreys good day, and put up
her purse, on finding the old man so well
provided for; a display, or competition in
charity, never entering into her system of benevolence.
</para>
<para>
&quot;His lordship is munificent in his bounty,&quot;
said Emily, as they drove from the door.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Does it not savour of thoughtlessness, to
bestow so much where he can know so little?&quot; 
Lord Chatterton ventured to inquire.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He is,&quot; replied Mrs. Wilson, &quot;as old
Humphrey says, main rich; but the son of
the old man, and father of these children, is
a soldier in the -- th dragoons, of which
the earl is colonel, and that accounts to me
for the liberality of the donation,&quot; 
recollecting, with a sigh, the feelings which had
drawn herself out of the usual circles of her
charities, in the case of the same man.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Did you ever see the earl, aunt?&quot; inquired Emily, gently.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Never, my dear; he has been much
abroad, but my letters were filled with his
praises, and I confess my disappointment is
great in not seeing him in this visit to Lord
Bolton, who is his relation; but,&quot; fixing her
eyes thoughtfully on her niece, &quot;we shall
meet in London this winter, I trust.&quot; As
she spoke, a cloud passed over her features, 
and she continued much absorbed in
thought, for the remainder of their ride.
</para>
<para>
General Wilson had been a cavalry officer,
and commanded the same regiment now held
by Lord Pendennyss; in an excursion near
the British camp, he had been rescued from
captivity, if not from death, by a gallant and
timely interference of this young nobleman,
then in command of a troop in the same
corps. He had mentioned the occurrence
to his wife in his letters, and from that day,
his correspondence was filled with his praises
-- his bravery -- his goodness to the soldiery 
 -- and when he fell, he had been supported from
the field, and died in the arms of his youthful friend. 
A letter announcing his death, had
been received by his widow from the earl,
and the tenderness and affectionate manner of 
speaking of her husband, had taken a
deep hold on her affections -- All the circumstances 
together, had thrown an interest
around him that had made Mrs. Wilson almost 
entertain the romantic wish he might
be found worthy of, and disposed to solicit
the hand of her Emily. Her inquiries into his
character had been attended with such answers as 
flattered her wishes; but the service
of the earl, or his private affairs, had never
allowed a meeting; and she was now compelled to look 
forward to what John, laughingly termed, their winter campaign, as the
only probable place where she could be
gratified with the sight of a young man to
whom she owed so much, and whose image
was connected with some of the most tender, 
although most melancholy recollections of her life.
</para>
<para>
Colonel Egerton, who now appeared almost domesticated 
in the family, was again
of the party at dinner, to the no small satisfaction 
of the dowager, who, from proper inquiries in the course of the day, had learnt
that Sir Edgar's heir was likely to have the
necessary number of figures in the sum total
of his revenue. While sitting in the drawingroom 
that afternoon, she made an attempt to
bring her eldest daughter and the elegant soldier 
together over a chess-board; a game,
the young lady had been required to learn,
because it was one at which a gentleman could
be kept longer than any other without having
his attention drawn away by any of those
straggling charms, which might be travelling
a drawing-room, &quot;seeking whom they may
devour.&quot; It was also a game admirably suited
to the display of a beautiful hand and arm;
but the abilities of the mother had for a long
time been staggered with discovering a way
of bringing in the foot also. In vain her
daughter hinted at dancing, an amusement
she was passionately fond of, as the proper
theatre for this exhibition. The wary mother
knew too well the effects of concentrated
force to leave it out of the combat. After a
great deal of experimentizing in her own
person, she endeavoured to correct Catherine
for her manner of sitting, and by dint of
twisting and turning, she contrived that her
pretty foot and ancle should be thrown forward 
in such a way, that the eye dropping
from the move, should rest on this beauteous
object; thus giving, as it were, a Scylla and
Charybdis to her daughter's charms.
</para>
<para>
John Moseley was the first person she undertook 
to try the effect of her invention
upon a few months before; and after comfortably 
seating the parties, she withdrew to
a little distance, to watch the effect.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Check to your king, Miss Chatterton,&quot;
cried John, early in the game -- and the young
lady thrust out her foot -- &quot;check to your
king, Mr. Moseley,&quot; echoed the damsel, in
triumph, and John's eyes wandered from
hand to foot, and foot to hand. &quot;Check
king and queen, sir,&quot; -- &quot;Check mate,&quot; 
 -- &quot;did you speak?&quot; said John, and looking up
he caught the eye of the dowager fixed on
him in triumph -- &quot;Oh ho,&quot; said the young
man, internally, &quot;mother Chatterton, are you
there,&quot; and coolly taking up his hat he
walked off, nor could they ever get him
seated again.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You beat me too easily, Miss Chatterton,&quot; 
he would say, when pressed to play,
&quot;before I have time to look up, it's checkmate -- 
excuse me&quot; -- and the dowager settled
down into a more covert attack, through
Grace -- but here she had two to contend
with -- her own forces rebelled; and the war
had been protracted to the present hour,
with varied success, and no material captures, at least on one side.
</para>
<para>
Colonel Egerton entered on the duties of
his dangerous undertaking, with all the indifference 
of fool-hardiness; and the game
was played with tolerable ability by either
party; but no emotions, no absence of mind
could be discovered on the part of the
gentleman -- feet and hands were in motion,
still the colonel played as well as usual
-- he had answers for all Jane's questions,
and smiles for his partner; but no checkmate could she obtain, 
until wilfully throwing away an advantage, he suffered the lady
to win the game -- and the dowager was
satisfied nothing could be done with the
colonel.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter X.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The first carriages that rolled over the
lawn to Bolton parsonage, on the succeeding day, 
were those of the baronet and
his sister -- the latter in advance.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There, Francis,&quot; cried Emily, as she 
impatiently waited his removing some slight
obstruction to her alighting, &quot;thank you,
thank you, that will do,&quot; and in the next
moment she was in the extended arms of
Clara; after pressing each other to their bosoms 
for a few moments in silence, Emily
looked up, with a tear glistening in her eye,
and first noticed the form of Denbigh, modestly 
withdrawing, as if unwilling to intrude
on such pure and domestic feelings as the
sisters exposed, unconscious of a witness 
 -- her aunt and Jane, followed by Miss Chatterton, 
 now entered, and cordial salutes and
greetings flowed upon Clara from her various
friends.
</para>
<para>
The baronet's coach had reached the door;
in it were himself and wife, Mr. Benfield, and
Lady Chatterton -- Clara stood on the portico
of the building ready to receive them, her
face all smiles, and tears, and blushes, and her
arm locked in that of Emily.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I wish you joy of your new abode, Mrs.
Francis&quot; -- Lady Mosely forgot her form, and
bursting into tears, pressed her with ardour to
her bosom.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Clara, my love,&quot; said the baronet, hastily
wiping his eyes, and succeeding his wife in
the embrace of their child -- he kissed her and
pressing Francis by the hand, walked into
the house in silence.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well -- well,&quot; cried the dowager, as she
saluted her cousin, &quot;all looks comfortable
and genteel here, upon my word Mrs. Ives;
grapery -- hot-houses -- every thing in good
order too, and Sir Edward tells me the living
is worth a good five hundred a-year.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;So, girl, I suppose you expect a kiss,&quot;
said Mr. Benfield, as he ascended the steps
slowly, to the entrance -- &quot;kissing has gone
much out of fashion lately; I remember, on
the marriage of my friend, Lord Gosford, in
the year fifty-eight, that all the maids and
attendants were properly saluted in order.
The lady Juliana was quite young then, not
more than fifteen, it was there I got my first
salute from her -- but so -- kiss me,&quot; and he
continued as they went into the house,
&quot;marrying in that day was a serious business; 
you might visit a lady a dozen times,
before you could get a sight of her naked
hand -- who's that?&quot; stopping short, and looking 
earnestly at Denbigh, who now approached them.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mr. Denbigh, sir,&quot; said Clara, and turning, 
she observed to Denbigh, &quot;my uncle,
Mr. Benfield.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Did you ever know, sir, a gentleman of
your name, who sat in the parliament of this
realm in the year sixty?&quot; said Mr. Benfield;
and then, turning an inquiring look on the
figure of the young man, he added, &quot;you
don't look much like him.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That is rather before my day, sir,&quot; said
Denbigh, with a smile, and respectfully offering 
to relieve Clara, who supported him on
one side, while Emily held his arm on the
other. The old gentleman was particularly
averse to strangers, and Emily was in terror,
lest he should say something rude -- but after
examining Denbigh again, from head to foot,
he took the offered arm, and replied by
saying 
 -- 
   &quot;True, true, that was sixty years ago;
you can hardly recollect so long -- ah! Mr.
Denbigh, times are sadly altered since my
youth: people who were then glad to ride on
a pillion, now drive their coaches; men who
thought ale a luxury, now drink their port;
aye! and those who went bare-foot, must
have their shoes and stockings too. Luxury,
sir, and the love of ease, will ruin this mighty
empire; corruption has taken hold of every
thing; the ministry buy the members, the
members buy the ministry -- every thing is
bought and sold; now, sir, in the parliament
I had a seat, there was a knot of us, as upright 
as posts, sir; my Lord Gosford was one,
and General Denbigh was another, although
I can't say I always liked his ways; how
was he related to you, sir?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He was my grandfather,&quot; replied Denbigh, 
with a benevolent smile, and looking at
Emily. Had the old man continued his
speech an hour longer, Denbigh would not
have complained; he had stopped while talking, and thus 
confronted him with the beautiful figure that supported 
his left arm. Denbigh had contemplated in admiration, the
varying countenance, which now blushed
with apprehension, and now smiled in affection, 
or with an archer expression, as her
uncle proceeded in his harangue on the
times; but all felicity in this world has an
end as well as misery; Denbigh retained
the recollection of that speech, long after
Mr. Benfield was comfortably seated in the
parlour, though for his life he could not recollect a word he had said.
</para>
<para>
The Haughtons, the Jarvises, and a few
others of their intimate acquaintances, now
arrived, and the parsonage had the air of a
busy scene; but John, who had undertaken
to drive Grace Chatterton in his own phaeton, 
was yet absent; some little anxiety had
begun to be manifested; when he appeared,
dashing through the gates at a great rate, and
with the skill of a member of the four-inhand.
</para>
<para>
Lady Chatterton had begun to be seriously
uneasy, and was about to speak to her son to
go in quest of them, as they came in sight;
but now her fears vanished, and she could
only suppose, that a desire to have Grace
alone, could keep him so late, whose horses
were so evidently fleet; accordingly she met
them in great spirits, with 
 -- 
   &quot;Upon my word, Mr. Moseley, I began
to think you had taken the road to Scotland with my daughter, you staid so long.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your daughter, my Lady Chatterton,&quot;
said John, cooly, &quot;would neither go to Scotland with me, 
or any other man, or I am deceived in her character -- Clara, my sister,
how do you do,&quot; and he saluted the bride
with great warmth.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But what detained you, Moseley?&quot; inquired his mother.
</para>
<para>
&quot;One of the horses was restive, and broke
the harness, and I stopped in the village
while it was mended.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And how did Grace behave?&quot; asked
Emily, laughing.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, a thousand times better than you
would, sister; and as she always does, like an
angel,&quot; said John, with fervour.
</para>
<para>
The only point in dispute between Emily
and her brother, was her want of faith in
his driving; while poor Grace, naturally timid,
and unwilling to oppose, particularly the gentleman 
who then held the reins, had governed
herself sufficiently to be silent and motionless; 
indeed, she could hardly do otherwise
had she wished it; and John felt flattered to
a degree, that, aided by the merit, the beauty,
and the delicacy of the young lady herself,
might have led to the very results her mother
so anxiously wished to produce. But managers 
too often overdo their work. &quot;Grace
is a good girl,&quot; said her mother; &quot;and you
found her very valiant, Mr. Moseley?&quot; &quot;Oh,
as brave as Caesar,&quot; answered John, carelessly, and in a 
way that proved he was ironical. Grace, whose burning cheeks showed
but too plainly, that praise from John Moseley was an incense 
too powerful for her resistance, now sunk back behind some of the
company, endeavouring to conceal the tears
that almost gushed from her eyes; as Denbigh, who had been a silent spectator of the
whole scene, observed, that he had seen an
improvement which would obviate the difficulty Mr. Moseley had experienced; John
turned to the speaker, and was about to reply,
for he had heard of his being at the rectory
the day before, as the tilbury of Colonel
Egerton drove to the door, containing himself 
and his friend the captain.
</para>
<para>
The bride undoubtedly received congratulations 
on that day, more sincere than what
were now offered, but none were delivered
in a more graceful and insinuating manner
than those from Colonel Egerton; he passed round the room, 
speaking to his acquaintances, until he arrived at the chair
of Jane, who was seated next her aunt;
here he stopped, and glancing his eye round,
and saluting with bows and smiles the remainder 
of the party, appeared fixed at the
centre of all attraction to him. &quot;There is a
gentleman I have never seen before,&quot; he 
observed to Mrs. Wilson, casting his eyes on
Denbigh, whose back was towards him in
discourse with Mr. Benfield.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, it is Mr. Denbigh, of whom you
heard us speak,&quot; replied Mrs. Wilson; and
while she spoke, Denbigh faced them -- Egerton 
started as he caught a view of his face,
and seemed to gaze on the countenance,
which was open to his inspection, with an
earnestness that showed an interest of some
kind, but such as was inexplicable to Mrs.
Wilson, the only observer of this singular recognition, 
for such it evidently was; all was
natural in the colonel -- for the moment, his
colour sensibly changed, and there was
a peculiar expression in his face; it might be
fear, it might be horror, it might be a strong
aversion -- it clearly was not love; Emily sat
by her aunt, and Denbigh approached them,
making a cheerful remark; it was impossible
for the colonel and him to avoid each other,
had they wished it; and Mrs. Wilson thought
she would try the experiment of an introduction -- 
&quot;Colonel Egerton -- Mr. Denbigh;&quot;
both gentlemen bowed, but nothing striking
was seen in the deportment of either, when
the colonel, who was not exactly at ease, said
hastily,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mr. Denbigh is, or has been, in the army
too, I believe.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Denbigh now started in his turn; he cast a
look on Egerton of fixed and settled meaning; and said carelessly, 
but still as if requiring an answer,
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am, sir, yet; but do not recollect
having the pleasure of seeing Colonel Egerton in the service.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your countenance is familiar, sir,&quot; replied the colonel, 
carelessly, &quot;but at this moment, I cannot tax my memory with the
place of our meeting,&quot; and he changed the
discourse. It was some time, however, before 
either gentleman recovered his ease, and
many days elapsed ere any thing like intercourse 
passed between them; the colonel
attached himself during this visit to Jane,
with occasional notices of the Miss Jarvises,
who began to manifest symptoms of uneasiness, at the decided preference he showed to
a lady they now chose to look upon, in some
measure, as a rival.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson and her charge were, on the
other hand, entertained by the conversations
of Chatterton and Denbigh, with occasional
sallies from the lively John. There was
something in the person and manner of Denbigh, 
that insensibly attracted towards him
those whom fortune threw in his way. His
face was not strikingly handsome, but it was
noble; and when he smiled, or was much animated with any emotion, 
it did not fail invariably to communicate a spark of his own
enthusiasm to the beholder; his figure was
faultless -- his air and manner, if less easy
than that of Colonel Egerton, was more sincere 
and ingenuous, his breeding clearly
high, and his respect rather bordering on the
old school; but in his voice there existed a
charm, which would make him, when he
spoke of love that he felt, to a female ear,
almost resistless; it was soft, deep, melodious.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Baronet,&quot; said the rector, with a smile
on his son and daughter-in-law, &quot;I love to
see my children happy, and Mrs. Ives
threatens a divorce, if I go on in the manner
I have commenced; she says I desert her for
Bolton.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, doctor, if our wives conspire against
us, and prevent our enjoying a comfortable
dish of tea with Clara, or a glass of wine
with Frank, we must call in the higher
authorities as umpires -- what say you, sister;
is a parent to desert his child in any case?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;My opinion is,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, with
a smile, yet speaking with emphasis, &quot;that a
parent is not to desert a child, in any case,
or in any manner.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you hear that, my Lady Moseley,&quot;
cried the baronet, good humouredly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you hear that, my Lady Chatterton,&quot; 
cried John, who had just taken a
seat by Grace, as her mother approached
them.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hear it, but do not see the application,
Mr. Moseley.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, my lady! why there is the honourable 
Miss Chatterton, almost dying to play a
game of her favourite chess with Mr. Denbigh; 
she has beat us all but him, you
know.&quot;
</para>
<para>
And as Denbigh politely offered to meet
the challenge, the board was produced; and
the lady attended, with a view, however, to
prevent any of those consequences she was
generally fond of seeing result from this
amusement; every measure taken by this
prudent mother, being literally governed by
judicious calculation -- &quot;Well,&quot; thought John,
as he viewed the players, while listening with
pleasure to the opinions of Grace, who had
recovered her composure and spirits; &quot;Kate
has played one game without using her
feet.&quot;
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XI.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
Ten days or a fortnight now flew swiftly
by, during which, Mrs. Wilson suffered Emily
to give Clara a week, having first ascertained 
that Denbigh was a settled resident
at the rectory, and thereby not likely to
be oftener at the house of Francis than at the
hall, where he was a frequent and welcome
guest, both on his own account, and as a
friend of Doctor Ives -- Emily had returned,
and brought the bride and groom with her;
when, one evening as they were pleasantly
seated at their various amusements, with the
ease of old acquaintances, Mr. Haughton
entered, at an hour rather unusual for his
visits; throwing down his hat, after making
the usual inquiries, he began,
</para>
<para>
&quot;I know, good people, you are all wondering 
what has brought me out this time of
night, but the truth is, Lucy has coaxed her
mother to persuade me into a ball, in honour
of the times; so, my lady, I have consented,
and my wife and daughter have been buying
up all the finery in B -- , by the way, I suppose, 
of anticipating their friends. There is a
regiment of foot come into the barracks,
within fifteen miles of us, and to-morrow I
must beat up for recruits among the officers
--girls are never wanting on such occasions.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why,&quot; cried the baronet, &quot;you are growing young again, my friend.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, Sir Edward, but my daughter is
young, and life has so many cares, that I am
willing she should get rid of as many as she
can now, at my expense.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Surely, you would not wish her to
dance them away,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson;
&quot;such relief, I am afraid, will prove temporary.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you disapprove of dancing, ma'am?&quot;
said Mr. Haughton, who held her opinions in
great respect, and some little dread.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I neither approve or disapprove of it 
-- jumping up and down, is innocent enough in
itself, and if it must be done, it is well it
were done gracefully; as for the accompaniments of dancing I say nothing -- what do
you say, Doctor Ives?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;To what, my dear madam?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;To dancing.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! let the girls dance, if they enjoy it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am glad you think so, doctor,&quot; cried
Mr. Haughton; &quot;I had thought I recollected
your advising your son, never to dance or
play at games of chance.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You thought right, my friend,&quot; said the
doctor, laying down his newspaper; &quot;I gave
that advice to Frank -- I do not object to
dancing as innocent in itself, and as elegant
exercise, but it is like drinking, generally carried to 
excess; and as a Christian, I am opposed to all excesses; the music and company
lead to intemperance in the recreation, and
it often induces neglect of duties -- but so
may any thing else.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I like a game of whist, doctor, greatly,&quot;
said Mr. Haughton, &quot;but observing you
never play, and recollecting your advice to
Mr. Francis, I have forbidden cards when
you are my guest.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I thank you for the compliment, good
sir,&quot; replied the doctor, with a smile; &quot;but I
would much rather see you play cards, than
hear you talk scandal, as you sometimes
do.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Scandal,&quot; echoed Mr. Haughton.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay, scandal,&quot; said the doctor, coolly,
&quot;such as your own remark, the last time,
which was yesterday, I called to see you 
-- that Sir Edward was wrong in letting that
poacher off so easily as he did; the baronet,
you said, did not shoot himself, and did not
know how to prize game as he ought.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Scandal, doctor -- do you call that scandal; why, I told Sir Edward so himself, two
or three times.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I know you have, and that was rude.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Rude! I hope, sincerely, Sir Edward
has put no such construction on it;&quot; and the
baronet smiled kindly, and shook his head.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Because the baronet chooses to forgive
your offences, it does not alter their nature,&quot;
said the doctor, gravely; &quot;no, you must repent and amend; you impeached his motives
for doing a benevolent act, and that I call
scandal.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, doctor, I was angry the fellow
should be let loose; he is a pest to all the
game in the county, and every sportsman will
tell you so -- here, Mr. Moseley, you know
Jackson, the poacher.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! a poacher is an intolerable wretch,&quot;
cried Captain Jarvis.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! a poacher,&quot; cried John, with a droll
look at Emily, &quot;hang all poachers.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Poacher, or no poacher, does not alter
the scandal,&quot; said the doctor; &quot;now let me
tell you, good sir, I would rather play at
fifty games of whist, than make one such
speech, unless, indeed, it interfered with
my duties -- now, sir, with your leave,
I'll explain myself, as to my son -- There is
an artificial levity about dancing, that adds to
the dignity of no man; from some it may
detract: a clergyman, for instance, is supposed to have other things to do, and it would
hurt him in the opinions of those his influence is necessary 
with, and impair his usefulness; therefore clergymen should never
dance -- In the same way with cards; they
are the common instruments of gambling,
and an odium attached to them, on that account; women and clergymen must respect
the prejudices of mankind, in some cases, or
hurt their influence in society.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I did hope to have the pleasure of your
company, doctor,&quot; said Mr. Haughton, hesitatingly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And if it will give you pleasure,&quot; cried
the rector, &quot;you shall have it, my good
friend; it would be a greater evil to wound
the feelings of such a neighbour as Mr.
Haughton, than to show my face once at a
ball -- as innocent as your's will be;&quot; and
rising, he laid his hand on his shoulder kindly. 
&quot;Both your scandal and rudeness are
easily forgiven; but I wished to show you
the common error of the world -- that has
attached odium to certain things, while it
charitably overlooks others of a more heinous
nature.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr. Haughton, who had at first been a
little staggered with the attack of the doctor,
recovered himself, with the view of his object, 
and laying a handful of notes on the
table, hoped he should have the pleasure of
seeing them all; the invitation was generally
accepted, and the worthy man departed,
happy if his friends did but come, and were
pleased.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you dance, Miss Moseley,&quot; inquired
Denbigh of Emily, as he sat watching her
graceful movements in netting a purse for her
father.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh yes! the doctor said nothing of us
girls, you know; I suppose he thinks we
have no dignity to lose,&quot; replied Emily, with
a playful smile, and stealing a look at the
rector.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Admonitions are generally thrown away
on young ladies, when pleasure is in the
question,&quot; said the doctor, overhearing her
as she intended, and with a look of almost
paternal affection.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hope you do not seriously disapprove
of it, in moderation,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson.
</para>
<para>
&quot;That depends, madam, upon circumstances greatly; 
if it is to be made subsidiary
to envy, malice, coquetry, vanity, or any
other such little, lady-like accomplishment,&quot;
replied the doctor, good-homouredly, &quot;it
certainly had better be let alone -- but in moderation, and with the feelings of my little
pet here, I should be cynical, indeed, to object.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Denbigh appeared lost in his own ruminations during 
this little dialogue; and as the
doctor ended, he turned to the captain, who
was overlooking a game of chess, between
the colonel and Jane, of which the latter had
become remarkably fond of late, and played
with her hands and eyes, instead of her feet,
and inquired the name of the corps, in barracks at F -- ; 
&quot;the -- th foot, sir,&quot; replied the captain, haughtily, who 
neither respected him, owing to his want of 
consequence, or loved him, from the manner Emily
listened to his conversation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Will Miss Moseley forgive a bold request 
I have to urge,&quot; said Denbigh, with
some hesitation.
</para>
<para>
Emily looked up from her work in silence,
but with some little flutterings at the heart, occasioned 
by his peculiar manner -- &quot;the honour
of her hand for the first dance,&quot; said Denbigh, 
observing her in expectation he would
proceed.
</para>
<para>
Emily laughingly said, &quot;certainly, Mr.
Denbigh, if you can submit to the degradation.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The London papers now came in, and
most of the gentlemen sat down to their perusal. 
The colonel, however, replaced the men
for a second game, and Denbigh still kept
his place beside Mrs. Wilson and her niece.
The manners, the sentiments, the whole exterior 
of this gentleman, were such as both the
taste and judgment approved of -- his qualities 
were those which insensibly gained on
the heart, and Mrs. Wilson noticed, with a
slight uneasiness, the very evident satisfaction
her niece took in his society -- In Dr. Ives
she had great confidence, yet Dr. Ives was a
friend, and probably judged him favourably;
and again, Dr. Ives was not to suppose, he
was introducing a candidate for the hand of
Emily, in every gentleman he brought to the
hall; Mrs. Wilson had seen too often the ill
consequences of trusting to impressions received 
from inferences of companionship,
not to know, the only safe way was to judge
for ourselves; the opinions of others might
be partial -- might be prejudiced -- and many
an improper connexion had been formed, by
listening to the sentiments of those who
spoke without interest, and consequently
without examination; not a few matches
are made by this idle commendation of
others, uttered by lips that command
respect from a reputation for intelligence,
and which are probably suggested by a desire to 
please the very listener who hears
them. In short, Mrs. Wilson knew, that as
our happiness chiefly interested ourselves, so
it was to ourselves, or to those few whose interest was equal to our own, we could only
trust those important inquiries, necessary to
establish a permanent opinion of good or
evil in a character. With Doctor Ives her
communications on subjects of duty were
frequent and confiding, and although she
sometimes thought his benevolence disposed
him to be rather too lenient to the faults of
mankind, she entertained a profound respect
for his judgment; it was very influential with
her, if it were not always conclusive; she determined, 
therefore, to have an early conversation with him on the subject so near her
heart, and be in a great measure regulated
by his answers, in the immediate steps to be
taken. Every day gave her, what she
thought, melancholy proof of the ill consequences of neglecting 
our duty -- in the increasing intimacy of Colonel Egerton and
Jane.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Here, aunt,&quot; cried John, as he ran over
a paper, &quot;is a paragraph relating to your
favourite youth, our trusty and well beloved
cousin, the Earl of Pendennyss.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Read it,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, with an interest his name never failed to excite.
</para>
<para>
&quot;We noticed to day the equipage of the
gallant Lord Pendennyss before the gates of
Annandale-house, and understand the noble
Earl is last from Bolton castle, Northamptonshire.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;A very important fact,&quot; said Captain
Jarvis sarcastically; &quot;Colonel Egerton and
myself got as far as the village, to pay our respects to him, when we heard he had gone
on to town.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The earl's character, both as a man
and a soldier,&quot; observed the colonel, &quot;gives
him a claim to our attentions, that his rank
would not; it was on that account we would
have called.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Brother,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, &quot;you would
oblige me greatly, by asking his lordship to
waive ceremony; his visits to Bolton castle
will probably be frequent, now we have
peace; and the owner is so much from home,
that we may never see him without some
such invitation.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you want him as a husband for
Emily?&quot; cried John, as he gaily seated himself 
by the side of his sister.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson smiled at an observation,
which reminded her of one of her romantic
wishes; and, as she raised her head to reply,
in the same tone, met the eye of Denbigh
fixed on her, with an expression that kept her
silent: this is really an incomprehensible
young man in some respects, thought the
cautious widow, his startling looks on the
introduction to the colonel, crossing her
mind at the same time; and observing the
doctor opening the door that led to the
baronet's library, Mrs. Wilson, who acted
generally as soon as she had decided, followed him in silence. As their conversations
were known often to relate to little offices of
charity they both delighted in, the movement excited no surprise, and she entered
the library with the doctor, uninterrupted by
any one else.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Doctor,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, impatient to
proceed to the point, &quot;you know my maxim,
prevention is better than cure: this young
friend of yours is very interesting.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you feel yourself in danger?&quot; said
the rector, smiling.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not very imminent,&quot; replied the lady,
laughing good naturedly; and seating herself,
she continued, &quot;who is he? and who was
his father, if I may ask?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;George Denbigh, Madam, both father
and son,&quot; said the doctor gravely.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah, doctor, I am almost tempted to wish
Frank had been a girl; you know what I
wish to learn.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Put your questions in order, dear Madam,&quot; said the doctor, in a kind manner,
&quot;and they shall be answered.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;His principles?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;So far as I can learn, they are good 
 -- his acts, as they have come to my notice,
are highly meritorious, and I hope originated in proper motives; I have seen but
little of him of late years, however, and on
this head, you are nearly as good a judge as
myself; his filial piety,&quot; said the doctor,
dashing a tear from his eye, and speaking
with fervour, &quot;was lovely.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;His temper -- his disposition.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;His temper is under great command,
although naturally ardent; his disposition
eminently benevolent towards his fellowcreatures.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;His connexions.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Suitable,&quot; said the doctor with a smile.
</para>
<para>
His fortune was of but little moment;
Emily would be amply provided, for all the
customary necessaries of her station; and
Mrs. Wilson thanking the divine, returned
to the parlour, easy in her mind, and determind to let things take their own course for
a time, but in no degree to relax the vigilance of her observation.
</para>
<para>
On her return to the room, Mrs. Wilson
observed Denbigh approach Egerton, and
enter into conversation of a general nature; it was the first time any thing more
than unavoidable courtesies had passed between them, 
and the colonel appeared slightly uneasy under his situation; while, on the
other hand, his companion showed an anxiety to be on a more friendly footing than
heretofore -- there was something mysterious
in the feelings manifested by both these
gentlemen, that greatly puzzled the good
lady to account for; and from its complexion, she feared 
one or the other was not entirely free from censure; it could not have
been a quarrel, or their names would have
been familiar to each other; they had both
served in Spain she knew, and excesses were
often committed by gentlemen at a distance
from home, their pride would have prevented where they were anxious to maintain a
character. Gambling, and a few other prominent vices, 
floated through her imagination, until wearied of conjectures where
she had no data from which to discover the
truth, and supposing after all it might be
her imagination only, she turned to more
pleasant reflections.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The bright eyes of Emily Moseley, unconsciously wandered round the brilliant
assemblage at Mr. Haughton's, as she took
her seat, in search of her partner. The
rooms were filled with scarlet coats, and
belles from the little town of F -- , and if
the company were not the most select imaginable, it was disposed to enjoy the passing
moment cheerfully, and in lightness of heart;
as their good hearted host would sing, &quot;to
dance away care:&quot; -- e'er, however, she could
make out to scan the countenances of the
beaux, young Jarvis, decked in the full
robes of his dignity, as captain in the 
 -- foot, approached and solicited the honour of
her hand; the colonel had already secured
her sister, and it was by the instigation of
his friend, Jarvis had been thus early in his
application; Emily thanked him, and pleaded her engagement; the mortified youth, who
had thought dancing with the ladies a favour
conferred on them, from the anxiety his sisters always manifested to get partners; stood
for a few moments in sullen silence; and
then, as if to be revenged on the sex, he determined not to dance the whole evening;
accordingly he withdrew to a room appropriated to the gentlemen, where he found
a few of the military beaux, keeping alive
the stimulus they had brought with them
from the mess-table.
</para>
<para>
As Clara had prudently decided to comport herself as a clergyman's wife, and had
declined dancing in future; Catherine Chatterton was the lady entitled to open the ball,
as superior in years and rank, to any who
were disposed to enjoy the amusement. The
dowager, who in her heart loved to show
her airs upon such occasions, had chosen to
be later than the rest of the family; and
Lucy had to entreat her father to have
patience, more than once, during the interregnum in their sports, created by Lady
Chatterton's fashion; she at length appeared,
attended by her son, and followed by her
daughters, ornamented in all the taste of the
reigning fashions. Doctor Ives and his wife,
who came late from choice, soon appeared,
accompanied by their guest, and the dancing
commenced; Denbigh had thrown aside his
black for the evening, and as he approached
to claim his promised honour, Emily thought
him, if not as handsome, much more interesting 
than Colonel Egerton, who passed
them in leading her sister to the set. Emily
danced beautifully, but perfectly like a lady,
as did Jane: but Denbigh, although graceful in 
his movements, and in time, knew but
little of the art; and but for the assistance of
his partner, would have more than once gone
wrong in the figure; he very gravely asked
her opinion of his performance as he handed
her to a chair, and she laughingly told him,
his movements were but a better sort of
march; he was about to reply, when Jarvis
approached; he had, by the aid of a pint of
wine and his own reflections, wrought himself 
into something of a passion; especially
as he saw Denbigh enter, after Emily had
declined dancing with himself; there was
a gentleman in the corps who unfortunately
was addicted to the bottle, and he fastened
on Jarvis, as a man at leisure to keep him
company, in his favourite libations; wine
openeth the heart, and the captain having
taken a peep at the dancers, and seen the disposition of 
affairs, returned to his bottle companion bursting 
with the indignity offered
to his person; he dropped a hint, and a question 
or two brought the whole grievance
from him.
</para>
<para>
There is a certain set of men in every
service, who imbibe notions of bloodshed,
and indifference to human life, that is revolting 
to humanity, and too often, fatal in its
results; their morals are never correct, and
what little they have sets loosely about them
--in their own cases, their appeals to arms
are not always so prompt; but in that of their
friends, their perceptions of honour are intuitively keen, 
and their inflexibility in preserving it from reproach unbending -- and such
is the weakness of mankind, their tenderness
on points where the nicer feelings of a soldier are involved, 
that these machines of custom -- these thermometers graduated to the
scale of false honour -- usurp the place of reason and benevolence, and become, too often,
the arbiters of life and death to a whole corps.
Such, then, was the confidant to whom Jarvis
communicated the cause of his disgust, and
the consequences may easily be imagined.
As he passed Emily and Denbigh, he threw
a look of fierceness at the latter, which he
meant as an indication of his hostile intentions; 
but which was lost on his rival, who,
at that moment, was filled with passions of
a very different kind from those which Captain 
Jarvis thought agitated his own bosom;
for had his new friend let him alone, he
would have quietly gone home and gone to
sleep.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Have you ever fought,&quot; said Captain
Digby cooly to his companion, as they seated
themselves in his father's parlour, whither
they had retired to make their arrangements
for the following morning.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes,&quot; said Jarvis, with a stupid look,
&quot;I fought once with Tom Halliday at
school.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;At school! my dear friend, you commenced young indeed,&quot; said Digby, helping
himself, &quot;and how did it end?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! Tom got the better, and so I cried
enough,&quot; said Jarvis surlily
</para>
<para>
&quot;Enough! I hope you did not flinch,&quot;
cried his friend, eyeing him keenly; &quot;where
were you hit?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He hit me all over.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;All over -- did you use small shot? How
did you fight?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;With fists,&quot; said Jarvis, yawning; and
his companion seeing how the matter was,
rung for his servant to put him to bed, remaining himself an hour longer to finish the
bottle.
</para>
<para>
Soon after Jarvis had given Denbigh the
look big with his intended vengeance, Colonel Egerton 
approached Emily, asking permission to present Sir Herbert Nicholson,
the lieutenant-colonel of the regiment, and
a gentleman who was ambitious of the honour of her acquaintance, and a friend of
his own; Emily gracefully bowed her assent: soon after, turning her eyes on Denbigh,
who had been speaking to her at the moment,
she saw him looking intently on the two
soldiers, who were making their way through
the crowd to where she sat; he stammered,
said something she could not understand,
and precipitately withdrew; and although
both herself and her aunt sought his figure in
the gay throng that flitted around them, he
was seen no more that evening.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Are you acquainted with Mr. Denbigh,&quot; said Emily to 
her partner, after looking in vain to find his person in the crowd.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Denbigh! Denbigh! I have known one
or two of that name,&quot; replied the gentleman;
&quot;in the army there are several.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes,&quot; said Emily, musing, &quot;he is in the
army;&quot; and looking up, she saw her companion reading her 
countenance with an expression that brought the colour to her
cheeks, with a glow that was painful. Sir
Herbert smiled, and observed the room was
warm -- Emily acquiesced in the remark,
for the first time in her life, conscious of a
feeling she was ashamed to have scrutinized, and glad of any excuse to hide her
confusion.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Grace Chatterton is really beautiful to
night,&quot; said John Moseley to his sister Clara;
&quot;I have a mind to ask her to dance.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do, John,&quot; replied his sister, looking
with pleasure on her beautiful cousin; who
observing the movements of John, as he drew
near to where she sat, moved her face on
either side rapidly, in search of some one
who was apparently not to be found; the
undulations of her bosom perceptibly increased, and John 
was on the point of speaking to her, as the dowager stepped between
them. There is nothing so flattering to the
vanity of a man, as the discovery of emotions
in a young woman, excited by himself, and
which the party evidently wishes to conceal
-- there is nothing so touching -- so sure to
captivate; or if it seem to be affected -- so
sure to disgust.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Now, Mr. Moseley,&quot; cried the mother,
&quot;you must not ask Grace to dance; she can 
refuse you nothing, and she has been up the two
last figures.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your wishes are irresistible, Lady Chatterton,&quot; said John, as he coolly turned on his
heel; on gaining the other side of the room,
he turned to reconnoitre the scene. The
dowager was fanning herself as violently as
if she had been up the two last figures, instead 
of her daughter, while Grace sat with
her eyes fastened on the floor, paler than
usual -- &quot;Grace&quot; -- thought the young man,
&quot;would be very handsome -- very sweet 
-- very, very every thing that is agreeable, if
-- if it were not for mother Chatterton&quot; 
-- and he led out one of the prettiest girls in the
room.
</para>
<para>
Col. Egerton was peculiarly adapted to
the ball room; he danced gracefully and with
spirit; was perfectly at home with all the
usages of the best society, and never neglectful of any of those little courtesies
which have their charm for the moment;
and Jane Moseley, who saw all those she
loved around her, apparently as happy as
herself, found in her judgment, or the convictions 
of her principles, no counterpoise
against the weight of such attractions, all centred, 
as it were, in one effort to please herself; -- his flattery was deep -- was respectful
--his tastes were her tastes -- his opinions
her opinions -- On the formation of their acquaintance,
 they had differed in some trifling
point of poetical criticism, and for near a
month the colonel had maintained his opinion, with a 
show of firmness; but as opportunities were not wanting 
for the discussion, he had felt constrained to yield to her
better judgment -- her purer taste. The conquest of 
Colonel Egerton was complete, and
Jane, who saw in his attentions the submission of a 
heart devoted to her service, began to look forward to the moment, with
trembling, that was to remove the thin barrier 
that existed between the adulation of the
eyes, and the most delicate assiduity to please,
and the open confidence of declared love;
Jane Moseley had a heart to love, and love
strongly; her danger existed in her imagination; 
it was brilliant, unchastened by her
judgment, we had almost said, unfettered
by her principles; -- principles such as are
found in every day maxims and rules of conduct, 
sufficient to restrain her within the
bounds of perfect decorum, she was furnished 
with in abundance; but that principle
which was to teach her submission in opposition 
to her wishes, that principle that could
alone afford her security against the treachery
of her own passions, she was a stranger to.
</para>
<para>
The family of Sir Edward were among the
first to retire, and as the Chattertons had
their own carriage, Mrs. Wilson and her
charge returned alone in the coach of the
former. Emily, who had been rather out of
spirits the latter part of the evening, broke
the silence by suddenly observing, &quot;Colonel 
Egerton is, or will soon be, a perfect
hero.&quot; Her aunt, somewhat surprised, both
with the abruptness and force of the remark,
inquired her meaning -- &quot;Oh, Jane will
make him one, whether or no.&quot; This was
spoken with a show of vexation in her niece
she was unused to; and Mrs. Wilson gravely
corrected her for speaking in a disrespectful
manner of her sister, one whom neither her
years nor situation entitled her, in any measure, to 
advise or control -- there was an impropriety in judging 
so near and dear a relation harshly, even in thought. Emily pressed
the hand of her aunt, as she acknowledged
her error; but added, that she felt a momentary 
irritation at the idea, that a man of
Colonel Egerton's character, should gain the
command over feelings, such as her sister
possessed. Mrs. Wilson kissed the cheek of
her niece, while she inwardly acknowledged
the probable truth of the very remark she
had thought it her duty to censure; that the
imagination of Jane would supply her lover
with those qualities she most honoured
herself, she took as a matter of course;
and that, when the veil was removed she
had helped to throw before her own eyes,
she would cease to respect, and of course,
cease to love him, when too late to remedy
the evil, she greatly feared. But in the 
approaching fate of Jane, she saw new cause
to call forth her own activity, in averting a
similar, or what she thought would prove a
heavier misfortune, from her own charge.
Emily Moseley had just completed her
eighteenth year, and was gifted by nature,
with a vivacity and ardency of feeling that
gave a heightened zest to the enjoyments of
that happy age. She was artless, but intelligent; 
cheerful, with a deep conviction of the
necessity of piety; and uniform in her practice 
of all the important duties required by
her professions. The unwearied exertions
of her aunt, aided by her own quickness of
perception, had made her familiar with the
attainments suitable to her sex and years 
-- For music she had no taste, and the time
which would have been thrown away in endeavouring 
to cultivate a talent she did not
possess, was dedicated, under the discreet
guidance of her aunt, to works which had a
tendency, both to qualify her for the duties
of this life, and fit her for that which comes
hereafter. It might be said, Emily Moseley had
never read a book that contained a sentiment,
or inculcated an opinion, improper for her sex,
or dangerous to her morals; and it was not
difficult for those who knew the fact, to fancy
they could perceive the consequences in her
guileess countenance and innocent deportment. 
Her looks -- her actions -- her thoughts,
wore as much of nature, as the discipline of
her well-regulated mind, and softened manners
could admit of; in person, she was of the
middle size, exquisitely formed, graceful and
elastic in her step, without the least departure 
from her natural movements; her
eye was a dark blue, with an expression of
joy and intelligence; at times it seemed all
soul, and again all heart; her colour rather
high, but varying with every emotion of her
bosom; her feelings strong, ardent, and devoted 
to those she loved. Her preceptress
had never found it necessary to repeat an 
admonition of any kind, since her arrival at
years to discriminate between the right and
the wrong.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I wish,&quot; said Doctor Ives to his wife;
the evening his son had asked their permission to 
address Clara, &quot;Francis had chosen
my little Emily.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Clara is a good girl,&quot; replied his wife,
&quot;she is so mild, so affectionate, that I doubt
not she will make him happy -- Frank might
have done worse at the Hall.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;For himself, he has done well, I hope,&quot;
said the father; &quot;a young woman of Clara's
heart, may make any man happy; but an
union with purity -- sense -- principles, like
those of Emily, would be more -- it would be
blissful.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Ives smiled at her husband's animation, 
as she observed, &quot;you remind me more
of the romantic youth I once knew, than of
the grave divine before me. There is but one
man I know, that I could wish, now, to give
Emily to; it is Lumley -- if Lumley sees
her, he will woo her; and if he woos, he
will win her.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Lumley I believe to be worthy of
her,&quot; cried the rector, as he retired for the
night.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XIII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The following day brought a large party
of the military beaux to the Hall, in acceptance of the 
baronet's hospitable invitation to dinner. Lady Moseley was delighted;
so long as her husband's or her children's
interest had demanded a sacrifice of her love
of society, it had been made without a sigh,
almost without a thought. The ties of
affinity in her were sacred; and to the happiness, the 
comfort of those she felt an interest in, there were few sacrifices of her
own propensities, she would not cheerfully
have made -- it was this very love for her
offspring, that made her anxious to dispose
of her daughters in wedlock; her own marriage had been 
so happy, she naturally concluded it the state most likely to insure the
happiness of her children; and with Lady
Moseley, as with thousands of others, who,
averse or unequal to the labours of investigation, jump to conclusions over the long
line of connecting reasons, marriage was
marriage, a husband was a husband; it is
true, there were certain indispensables, without which, the formation of a connexion
was a thing she considered not within the
bounds of nature; there must be fitness in
fortune, in condition, in education and manners; there must be no glaring evil, although
she did not ask for positive good -- a professor of religion herself, had any one told her
it was a duty of her calling, to guard
against a connexion with any but a christian,
for her girls, she would have wondered at
the ignorance that would embarrass the married state, with 
feelings exclusively belonging to the individual; had any one told her
it were possible to give her child to any but
a gentleman, she would have wondered at
the want of feeling, that could devote the
softness of Jane, or Emily, to the association
with rudeness or vulgarity. It was the misfortune of Lady Moseley, to limit her views
of marriage to the scene of this life, forgetful that every union gives existence to a long
line of immortal beings, whose future welfare depends greatly on the force of early
examples, or the strength of early impressions.
</para>
<para>
The necessity for restriction in their expenditures had ceased, and the baronet and
his wife greatly enjoyed the first opportunity
their secluded situation had given them, to
draw around their board their fellow-creatures of their own stamp -- in the former, it
was pure philanthropy; the same feeling
urged him to seek out and relieve distress in
humble life; -- while in the latter, it was love
of station and seemliness -- it was becoming
the owner of Moseley Hall, and it was what
the daughters of the Benfield family had
done since the conquest.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am extremely sorry,&quot; said the good
baronet at dinner, &quot;Mr. Denbigh declined
our invitation to day; I hope he will ride over
in the evening yet.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Looks of a singular cast were exchanged
between Colonel Egerton and Sir Herbert
Nicholson, at the mention of Denbigh's
name; which, as the latter had just asked
the favour of taking wine with Mrs. Wilson,
did not escape her notice: Emily had innocently mentioned his precipitate retreat the
night before; and he had, when reminded
of his engagement to dine with them that
very day, and promised an introduction to Sir
Herbert Nicholson by John, in her presence,
suddenly excused himself and withdrew; with
an indefinite suspicion of something wrong,
she ventured to address Sir Herbert with,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Did you know Mr. Denbigh in Spain.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I told Miss Emily Moseley, I believe,
last evening, that I knew some of the name,&quot;
replied the gentleman, evasively; and then
pausing a moment, he added with great emphasis, &quot;there is a circumstance connected
with one of that name, I shall ever remember.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It was creditable, no doubt, Sir Herbert,&quot; cried young Jarvis sarcastically; but
the soldier affecting not to hear the question, asked Jane to take wine with him;
Lord Chatterton, however, putting his knife
and fork down gravely, and with a glow of
animation, observed with unusual spirit, &quot;I
have no doubt it did, sir;&quot; Jarvis, in his turn,
affected not to hear this speech, and nothing
further was said, as Sir Edward saw the
name of Mr. Denbigh excited a sensation
amongst his guests he was unable to account
for, and which he soon forgot himself.
</para>
<para>
After the company had retired, Lord Chatterton, however, related to the astonished and
indignant family of the baronet, the substance of the following scene, which he had
been a witness to that morning, while on a
visit to Denbigh at the rectory: as sitting in
the parlour by themselves over their breakfast, a Captain Digby was announced, and
asked in.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have the honour of waiting upon you,
Mr. Denbigh,&quot; said the soldier, with the stiff
formality of a professed duellist, &quot;on behalf
of Captain Jarvis, but will postpone my business until you are at leisure,&quot; glancing his
eye on Chatterton.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I know of no business with Captain
Jarvis,&quot; said Denbigh, politely handing the
stranger a chair, &quot;that Lord Chatterton
cannot be privy to; if he will excuse the interruption.&quot; The nobleman bowed, and
Captain Digby, a little lowered by the rank
of Denbigh's friend, proceeded in a more
easy manner.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Captain Jarvis has empowered me, sir,
to make any arrangement with yourself or
friend, previous to your meeting, which he
hopes may be as soon as possible, if convenient to yourself,&quot; replied the soldier cooly.
</para>
<para>
Denbigh viewed him for a moment with
astonishment, in silence; when recollecting
himself, he said mildly, and without the least
agitation, &quot;I cannot affect, sir, not to understand your 
meaning, but am at a loss to imagine what act of mine can have made Mr.
Jarvis wish to make such an appeal.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Surely Mr. Denbigh cannot think a man
of Captain Jarvis's spirit can quietly submit
to the indignity put upon him last evening,
by your dancing with Miss Moseley, after
she had declined the honour to himself,&quot;
said the captain, with an affectation of an incredulous smile. &quot;My Lord Chatterton
and myself can easily settle the preliminaries,
as Captain Jarvis is much disposed to consult your wishes, Sir, in this affair.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;If he consults my wishes,&quot; said Denbigh,
smiling, &quot;he will think no more about it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;At what time, Sir,&quot; asked Digby, &quot;will
it be convenient to give him the meeting?&quot;
and then, speaking with a kind of bravado
gentlemen of his cast are fond of assuming,
&quot;my friend would not hurry any settlement
of your affairs.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I cannot ever give a meeting to Captain
Jarvis, with hostile intentions,&quot; replied Denbigh, calmly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Sir!&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I decline the combat, Sir,&quot; said Denbigh, speaking with firmness.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your reasons, Sir, if you please,&quot; asked
Captain Digby, compressing his lips, and
drawing up in an air of personal interest.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Surely,&quot; cried Chatterton, who had with
difficulty restrained his feelings, &quot;surely
Mr. Denbigh could never so far forget himself, as to expose Miss Moseley by accepting
this invitation.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your reason, my lord,&quot; said Denbigh
with interest, &quot;would at all times have its
weight; but I wish not to qualify an act of
what I conceive to be principle, by any lesser
consideration -- I cannot meet Captain Jarvis, or any other man, in private combat;
there can exist no necessity for an appeal to
arms, in any society where the laws rule,
and I am averse to blood-shed.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Very extraordinary,&quot; muttered Captain
Digby, somewhat at a loss how to act; but
the calm and collected manner of Denbigh
prevented a reply; and after declining a cup
of tea, a liquor he never drank, he withdrew,
saying, he would acquaint his friend with
Mr. Denbigh's singular notions.
</para>
<para>
Captain Digby had left Jarvis at an inn,
about half a mile from the rectory, for the
convenience of early information of the result of his 
conference. The young man had
walked up and down the room during Digby's absence, 
in a train of reflections entirely new to him; he was the only son of
his aged father and mother, the protector of
his sisters, and he might say, the sole hope of
a rising family; and then, possibly, Denbigh
might not have meant to offend him -- he
might even have been engaged before they
came to the house; or if not, it might have
been inadvertence on the part of Miss Moseley -- 
that Denbigh would offer some explanation he believed, and he had fully made up
his mind to accept it, as his fighting friend
entered. &quot;Well,&quot; said Jarvis, in a low
tone.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He says he will not meet you,&quot; dryly
exclaimed his friend, throwing himself into
a chair, and ordering a glass of brandy and
water.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not meet me,&quot; cried Jarvis, in surprise;
&quot;engaged, perhaps.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Engaged to his conscience,&quot; exclaimed
Digby, with an oath.
</para>
<para>
&quot;To his conscience! I do not know I
rightly understand you, Captain Digby,&quot;
said Jarvis, catching his breath, and raising
his voice a little.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then, Captain Jarvis,&quot; said his friend,
tossing off his brandy, and speaking with
great deliberation, &quot;he says that nothing 
 -- understand me -- nothing will ever make him
fight a duel.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He will not!&quot; cried Jarvis, in a loud
voice.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, he will not,&quot; said Digby, handing
his glass to a waiter for a fresh supply.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He shall.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I don't know how you will make him,&quot;
said Digby, cooly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Make him, I'll -- I'll post him.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Never do that,&quot; said the captain, turning
to him, as he leaned his elbows on the table,
&quot;it only makes both parties ridiculous; but
I'll tell you what you may do -- there's a Lord
Chatterton takes the matter up with warmth;
if I were not afraid of his interest hurting
my promotion, I should have resented something 
that fell from him myself -- he will
fight, I dare say, and I'll just return and 
require an explanation of his words on your
behalf.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No -- no,&quot; said Jarvis, rather hastily,
&quot;he -- he is related to the Moseleys, and I
have views there -- it might injure.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Did you think to forward your views, by
making the young lady the subject of a duel,&quot;
asked Captain Digby sarcastically, and
eyeing his companion with great contempt.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, yes,&quot; said Jarvis, &quot;it would hurt
my views.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Here's to the health of His Majesty's
gallant -- regiment of foot,&quot; cried Captain 
Digby, in a tone of irony, three quarters
drunk, at the mess table, that evening, &quot;and
to its champion, Captain Henry Jarvis.&quot;
One of the corps was present accidentally as
a guest; and the following week the inhabitants of 
F -- saw the regiment in their
barracks marching to slow time after the
body of Horace Digby.
</para>
<para>
Lord Chatterton, in relating the part of the
foregoing circumstances which fell under
his observation, did ample justice to the conduct 
of Denbigh; a degree of liberality
which did him no little credit, as he plainly
saw in that gentleman he had, or soon would
have, a rival in the dearest wish of his heart;
and the smiling approbation with which his
cousin Emily rewarded him for his candour,
almost sickened him with the apprehension
of his being a successful one. The ladies
were not slow in expressing their disgust
with the conduct of Jarvis, or backward
in their approval of Denbigh's forbearance.
Lady Moseley turned with horror from a
picture in which she could see nothing but
murder and bloodshed; but both Mrs. Wilson and her niece, 
secretly applauded a sacrifice of worldly feelings on the altar of
duty; the former admired the consistent refusal of admitting 
any collateral inducements, in explanation of his decision; while
the latter, at the same time she saw the act
in its true colours and elevated principle,
could hardly keep from believing that a regard for her feelings 
had, in a trifling degree, its influence in his declining the 
meeting. Mrs. Wilson saw at once what a hold
such unusual conduct would take on the
feelings of her niece, and inwardly determined to increase, if 
possible, the watchfulness she had invariably kept upon all he said
or did, as likely to elucidate his real character, well knowing 
that the requisites to bring
or keep happiness in the married state, were
numerous and indispensable; and that the
display of a particular excellence, however
good in itself, was by no means conclusive
as to character; in short, that we perhaps
as often meet with a favourite principle, as a
besetting sin.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XIV.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
Sir Edward Moseley had some difficulty
in restraining the impetuosity of his son from
taking some hasty step, in resenting this impertinent 
interference of young Jarvis, in the
conduct of his favourite sister; indeed, he
only yielded to his profound respect to his
father's commands, aided by a strong representation on 
the part of his sister, of the disagreeable consequences of connecting her
name with a quarrel in any manner. It was
seldom the good baronet felt himself called
upon to act as decidedly as on the present
occasion; he spoke to the merchant in warm,
but gentleman-like terms, of the consequences which might 
have resulted to his
own child, from the intemperate act of
his son; exculpated Emily entirely from
censure, by explaining her engagement to
dance with Denbigh, previously to his application; and 
hinting the necessity, if the affair was not amicably 
terminated, of protecting the peace of mind of his daughters
against similar exposures in future, by 
declining the acquaintance of a neighbour he
respected as much as Mr. Jarvis.
</para>
<para>
The merchant was a man of few words,
but great promptitude; he had made his fortune, 
and more than once saved it, 
by his decision; and coolly assuring the baronet he
should hear no more of it, at least in a 
disagreeable way, took his hat and walked home
from the village where the conversation
passed; on arriving at his own house, he found
the family collected, for a morning ride, in the
parlour, and throwing himself into a chair,
he commenced with great violence by saying 
 -- 
   &quot;So, Mrs. Jarvis, you would spoil a very
tolerable book-keeper, by wishing to have
a soldier in your family; and there stands
the puppy who would have blown out the
brains of a deserving young man, if the good
sense of Mr. Denbigh had not denied him the
opportunity.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mercy!&quot; cried the alarmed matron, on
whom Newgate, with all its horrors, floated,
and near which her early life had been
passed, and a contemplation of whose frequent scenes 
had been her juvenile lessons of morality -- &quot;Harry! Harry! would
you murder.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Murder!&quot; echoed her son, looking
askance, as if to see the bailiffs, &quot;no, mother, I 
wanted nothing but what was fair; Mr.
Denbigh would have had an equal chance to
have blown out my brains; I am sure every
thing would have been fair.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Equal chance,&quot; muttered his father, who
had cooled himself, in some measure, by an
extra pinch of snuff, &quot;no, sir, you have no
brains to loose; but I have promised Sir Edward 
that you shall make proper apologies
to himself, his daughter, and Mr. Denbigh;&quot;
this was rather exceeding the truth, but the
alderman prided himself on performing more
than he promised.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Apology,&quot; exclaimed the captain, &quot;why,
sir, the apology is due to me -- ask Colonel
Egerton if he ever heard of an apology being
made by the challenger.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, sure,&quot; said the mother, who having
now made out the truth of the matter,
thought it was likely to be creditable to her
child, &quot;Colonel Egerton never heard of such
a thing -- did you, colonel?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, madam,&quot; said the colonel, hesitatingly, and 
politely handing the merchant his snuff-box, which, in his agitation,
had fallen on the floor, &quot;circumstances
sometimes justify a departure from ordinary
measures; you are certainly right as a rule;
but not knowing the particulars in the present
case, it is difficult for me to decide -- Miss
Jarvis, the tilbury is ready;&quot; and the colonel
bowed respectfully to the merchant, kissed
his hand to his wife, and led their daughter to
his carriage.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you make the apologies?&quot; asked
Mr. Jarvis of his son, as the door closed behind them.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, sir,&quot; replied the captain, sullenly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then you must make your pay answer
for the next six months,&quot; cried the father,
taking a signed draft on his banker from
his pocket, coolly tearing it in two pieces,
and carefully putting the name in his mouth,
and chewing it into a ball.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, alderman,&quot; said his wife, a name
she never used, unless she had something to
gain from her spouse, who loved to hear the
sound of the appellation after he had relinquished 
the office, &quot;it appears to me, that
Harry has shown nothing but a proper spirit
-- you are unkind -- indeed you are.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;A proper spirit -- in what way -- do you
know any thing of the matter?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is a proper spirit for a soldier to fight,
I suppose,&quot; said the wife, a little at a loss to
explain.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Spirit, or no spirit,&quot; observed Mr. Jarvis,
as he left them, &quot;apology, or ten and sixpence.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Harry,&quot; said his mother, holding up her
finger in a menacing attitude, &quot;if you do beg
his pardon, you are no son of mine.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No,&quot; cried Miss Sarah, &quot;it would be
mean.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Who will pay my debts?&quot; asked the son,
looking up at the ceiling.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, I would, my child, if -- if -- I had
not spent my own allowance.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I would,&quot; echoed the sister, &quot;but if we
go to Bath, you know, I shall want my money.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Who will pay my debts,&quot; repeated the
son.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Apology, indeed; who is he, that you, a
son of Alderman -- of -- of Mr. Jarvis, of the
deanery, B -- , Northamptonshire, should
beg his pardon -- a vagrant that nobody
knows.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Who will pay my debts,&quot; said the captain, drumming with his foot.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, Harry,&quot; exclaimed the mother,
&quot;do you love money better than honour -- a
soldier's honour?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, mother; but I like good eating and
drinking -- think, mother, its a cool five hundred.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Harry,&quot; cried the mother, in a rage, &quot;you
are not fit for a soldier; I wish I were in your
place.&quot;
</para>
<para>
I wish, with all my heart, you had been for
an hour this morning, thought the son; and,
after arguing for some time longer, they compromised, by agreeing 
to leave it to the decision of Colonel Egerton, who, the mother
did not doubt, would applaud her maintaining
the Jarvis dignity, a family his interest in
was but little short of what he felt for his
own -- so he had told her fifty times -- and
the captain determined within himself, to
touch the five hundred, let the colonel decide 
as he would; but the colonel's decision
prevented this disobedience to the commands
of one parent, in order to submit to the 
requisition of the other. The question was put
to him by Mrs. Jarvis, on his return from the
airing, with no doubt the decision would
be favourable to her opinion; the colonel
and herself, she said, never disagreed; and
the lady was right -- for wherever his interest
made it desirable to convert Mrs. Jarvis to
his side of the question, Egerton had a
manner of doing it, that never failed to succeed.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, madam,&quot; said he, with one of his
most agreeable smiles, &quot;apologies are different things at 
different times; you are certainly right in your sentiments, as relates to a
proper spirit in a soldier; but no one can
doubt the spirit of the captain, after the
stand he took in the affair; if Mr. Denbigh
would not meet him, (a very extraordinary
measure, indeed, I confess,) what can he do
more? he cannot make a man fight against his
will, you know.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;True, true,&quot; cried the matron, impatiently, &quot;I do not want 
him to fight; heaven forbid! but why should he, the challenger, beg
pardon? -- I am sure, to have the thing regular -- Mr. Denbigh 
is the one to ask forgiveness.&quot; The colonel felt at a little loss how
to reply, when Jarvis, in whom the thoughts
of his five hundred pounds had worked a
mighty revolution, exclaimed 
 -- 
   &quot;You know, mother, I accused him -- that
is, suspected him of dancing with Miss
Moseley against my right to her; now you
find that was a mistake, and so I had better
act with dignity, and confess my error.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, by all means,&quot; cried the colonel,
who saw the danger of an embarrassing rupture between the families 
otherwise, &quot;delicacy to your sex requires that, ma'am, from
your son;&quot; and he accidentally dropped a letter as he spoke.
</para>
<para>
&quot;From Sir Edgar, colonel?&quot; asked Mrs.
Jarvis, as he stooped to pick it up.
</para>
<para>
&quot;From Sir Edgar, madam, and he begs to
be remembered to yourself and family.&quot;
Mrs. Jarvis bowed in what she intended for
a graceful bend, and sighed -- a casual observer 
might have thought, with maternal
anxiety for the reputation of her child -- but it
was conjugal regret, that the political obstinacy 
of the alderman, had prevented his
carrying up an address, and thus becoming 
 -- Sir Timothy -- . Sir Edgar's heir prevailed, 
 and the captain received permission
to do what he had done already.
</para>
<para>
On leaving the room, after the first
discussion, and before the appeal, he had
hastened to his father with his concessions.
The old gentleman knew too well the influence 
of five hundred pounds, to doubt their
effects in the present instance, and had ordered 
his carriage for the excursion -- it came,
and to the hall they proceeded; the captain
found his intended antagonist there, and in
a rather uncouth manner, made the required
concession. He was restored to his former
favour -- no great distinction -- and his visits
to the hall suffered, but with a dislike Emily
could never conquer, or at all times conceal.
</para>
<para>
Denbigh was standing with a book in his
hand, when Jarvis commenced his speech to
the baronet and his daughter, and was apparently 
much engaged with its contents, as
the captain blundered through. It was necessary, 
the captain saw by a glance of his
father's eyes, to say something to the gentleman, who 
had delicately withdrawn to a distant window. 
His speech was made here too,
and Mrs. Wilson could not avoid stealing a
look at them; Denbigh smiled and bowed in
silence. It is enough, thought the widow;
the offence was not against him, it was
against his maker; he should not arrogate to
himself, in any manner, the right to forgive, or
require apologies -- the whole is consistent. 
 -- The subject was never afterwards alluded to;
Denbigh appeared to have forgotten it; and
Jane sighed gently as she hoped the colonel
was not a duellist.
</para>
<para>
Several days passed, before the deanery
ladies could forgive the indignity their family 
had sustained, sufficiently to resume
their customary intercourse; like all other
grievances, where the passions are chiefly interested, 
it was forgotten in time, and things
put in some measure on their former footing.
The death of Digby served to increase the
horror of the Moseleys, and Jarvis himself
felt rather uncomfortable, on more accounts
than one, at the fatal termination of the unpleasant business.
</para>
<para>
Chatterton, who to his friends had not hesitated 
to avow his attachment to his cousin,
but who had never proposed for her, as his
present views and fortune were not, in his
estimation, sufficient for her proper support;
had pushed every interest he possessed, and left
no steps unattempted an honourable man could
resort to, to effect his object. This desire to 
provide for his sisters, had been backed by the
ardour of a passion that had reached its crisis;
and the young peer, who could not, in the
present state of things, abandon the field to
a rival so formidable as Denbigh, even to
further his views to preferment, was waiting
in anxious suspense the decision on his application: 
a letter from his friend informed him,
his opponent was likely to succeed; that, in
short, all hopes of his lordship's success had
left him -- Chatterton was in despair. On
the following day, however, he received a
second letter from the same friend, announcing his 
appointment; after mentioning
the fact, he went on to say -- &quot;The cause of
this sudden revolution in your favour is unknown to 
me, and unless your lordship has
obtained interest I am ignorant of, it is one
of the most singular instances of ministerial
caprice I have ever heard of.&quot; Chatterton
was as much at a loss as his friend, but it
mattered not; he could now offer to Emily
-- it was a patent office, to a large amount in
receipts, and a few years would amply portion his 
sisters; that very day he proposed, and was refused.
</para>
<para>
Emily had a difficult task to avoid selfreproach, 
in regulating her deportment to the
peer. She was fond of Chatterton as a relation -- 
as her brother's friend -- 
as the brother of Grace, and even on his own account;
but it was the fondness of a sister; his manner -- his words, 
which although never addressed to herself, were sometimes 
overheard unintentionally, and sometimes reached
her through her sisters, left her in no doubt
of his attachment; she was excessively
grieved at the discovery, and innocently appealed to her aunt for 
directions how to proceed; of his intentions she had no doubt, but
at the same time he had not put her in a situation 
to dispel his hopes; encouragement, in
the usual meaning of the term, she gave to
him, or no one else. There are no little attentions 
that lovers are fond of showing to
their mistresses, and which mistresses are
fond of receiving, that Emily ever permitted
to any gentleman -- no rides -- no walks -- no
tete-a-tetes; always natural and unaffected,
there was a simple dignity about her that forbade 
the request, almost the thought, in the
gentlemen of her acquaintance; Emily had
no amusements, no pleasures of any kind,
in which her sisters were not her companions;
and if any thing was on the carpet, that required 
an attendant, John was ever ready; he
was devoted to her; the decided preference she
gave him over every other man, upon such
occasions, flattered his affections; and he
would, at any time leave even Grace Chatterton, 
to attend his sister -- all 
this was without affectation, and generally without notice.
Emily so looked the delicacy and reserve she
acted without ostentation, that not even her
own sex had affixed to her conduct the epithet of 
squeamish; it was difficult, therefore,
for her to do any thing, which would show
Lord Chatterton her disinclination to his
suit, without assuming a dislike she did not
feel, or giving him slights neither good breeding 
or good nature could justify; at one time,
indeed, she expressed a wish to return to
Clara; but this Mrs. Wilson thought would
only protract the evil, and she was compelled
to wait his own time. The peer himself did
not rejoice more in his ability to make the
offer, than Emily did to have it in her power
to decline it; her rejection was firm and 
unqualified, but uttered with a grace and
tenderness to his feelings, that bound her
lover tighter than ever in her chains, and
he resolved on immediate flight as his only
recourse.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hope nothing unpleasant has occurred
to Lord Chatterton,&quot; said Denbigh, with
great interest, as he reached the spot where
the young peer stood leaning his head
against a tree, on his route from the rectory
to the hall.
</para>
<para>
Chatterton raised his face as he spoke;
there were evident traces of tears on it, and
Denbigh, shocked, was delicately about to
proceed, as the baron caught his arm.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mr. Denbigh,&quot; said the young peer, in a
voice almost choaked with emotion, &quot;may
you never know the pain I have felt this
morning -- Emily -- Emily Moseley -- is lost to
me -- forever.&quot;
</para>
<para>
For a moment, the blood rushed to the
face of Denbigh, and his eyes flashed with
a look that Chatterton could not stand; he
turned, as the voice of Denbigh, in those remarkable 
tones which distinguished it from
every other voice he had ever heard, uttered,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Chatterton, my lord, we are friends, I
hope -- I wish it from my heart.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Go, Mr. Denbigh -- go; you were going
to Miss Moseley -- do not let me detain you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am going with you, Lord Chatterton,
unless you forbid it,&quot; said Denbigh, with
emphasis, slipping his arm through that of
the peer's.
</para>
<para>
For two hours they walked together in the
baronet's park, and when they appeared at
dinner, Emily wondered why Mr. Denbigh
had taken a seat next her mother, instead of
his usual place between herself and aunt. In
the evening, he announced his intention of
leaving B -- for a short time with Lord
Chatterton; they were going to London together, 
but he hoped to return within ten
days. This sudden determination caused
some surprise, but as the dowager supposed,
it was to secure the new situation, and the
remainder of their friends thought it might
be business, it was soon forgotten, but much
regretted for the time. They left the Hall
that night to proceed to an inn, from which
they could obtain a chaise and horses; and
the following morning, when the baronet's
family assembled around their social breakfast 
the peer and his companion were many
miles on their route to the metropolis.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XV.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
Lady Chatterton, finding that little was to
be expected in her present situation, excepting 
what she looked forward to, from the
varying admiration of John Moseley to her
youngest daughter, determined to accept an
invitation of some standing, to a nobleman's
seat about fifty miles from the hall; and in order 
to keep things in their proper places,
leave Grace with her friend, who had expressed 
a wish to that effect; accordingly, the
day succeeding the departure of her son,
she proceeded on her expedition, accompanied by her 
willing assistant in her matrimonial speculations.
</para>
<para>
Grace Chatterton was by nature retiring
and delicate; but her feelings were acute,
and on the subject of female propriety, sensitive 
to a degree, that the great want of it in
a relation she loved as much as her mother,
had possibly in some measure increased; her
affections were too single in their objects to
have left her long in doubt, as to their nature
with respect to the baronet's son; and it was
one of the most painful orders she had ever
received, that compelled her to accept her
cousin's invitation -- her mother was peremptory, 
and Grace was obliged to comply.
Every delicate feeling she possessed revolted
at the step; the visit itself was unwished for
on her part; but there did exist a reason
which had reconciled her to it -- the wedding
of Clara; but now, to remain after all her
family had gone, in the house where resided
the man, who had as yet never solicited
those affections she had been unable to
withhold; it was humiliating -- it was degrading 
her in her own esteem, and she could
not endure it.
</para>
<para>
It is said that women are fertile in inventions 
to further their schemes of personal
gratification, vanity, or even mischief; it may
be -- it is true -- but the writer of these pages
is a man -- one who has seen much of the
sex, and he is happy to have an opportunity
of paying a tribute to female purity and female truth; 
that there are hearts so disinterested as to lose the considerations of self,
in advancing the happiness of those they love
-- that there are minds so pure, as to recoil
with disgust from the admission of deception,
indelicacy, or management -- he knows, for
he has seen it from long and close examination; 
he regrets, that the very artlessness of
those who are most pure in the one sex,
subjects them to the suspicions of the grosser
materials which compose the other. He believes 
that innocency, singleness of heart,
ardency of feeling, and unalloyed shrinking
delicacy, sometimes exist in the female bosom,
to an extent that but few men are happy
enough to discover, and most men believe
incompatible with the frailties of human
nature. Grace Chatterton possessed no little 
of what may almost be called this ethereal
spirit; and a visit to Bolton parsonage was
immediately proposed by her to Emily. The
latter, too innocent herself to suspect the
motives of her cousin, was happy to be allowed to devote 
to Clara a fortnight, uninterrupted by the noisy round of 
visiting and congratulations which had attended her first
week; and Mrs. Wilson and the two girls left
the hall, the same day with the Dowager
Lady Chatterton. Francis and Clara were
happy to receive them, and they were immediately domesticated 
in their new abode. Doctor Ives and his wife had postponed an annual
visit to a relation of the former, on account
of the marriage of their son, and now availed
themselves of the visit of Clara's friends to
perform their own engagements. B -- appeared in some measure 
deserted, and Egerton had the field almost to himself. 
Summer had arrived, and the country bloomed in
all its luxuriance of vegetation; every thing
was propitious to the indulgence of the softer
passions; and Lady Moseley, ever a strict
adherent to forms and decorum, admitted the
intercourse between Jane and her admirer
to be carried to as great lengths as those
forms would justify; still the colonel was not
explicit, and Jane, whose delicacy dreaded
the exposure of her feelings that was involved 
in his declaration, gave or sought no
marked opportunities for the avowal of his
passion; yet they were seldom separate, and
both Sir Edward and his wife looked forward to 
their future union, as a thing not to
be doubted. Lady Moseley had given up
her youngest child so absolutely to the government 
of her aunt, that she seldom
thought of her future establishment; she had
that kind of reposing confidence in Mrs. Wilson's 
proceedings, that feeble minds ever bestow on those 
who are much superior to them;
and she even approved of a system in many respects, 
which she could not endeavour to imitate; her 
affection for Emily was not, however,
to be thought less than what she felt for her
other children; she was in fact her favourite,
and had the discipline of Mrs. Wilson admitted 
of so weak an interference, might
have been injured as such.
</para>
<para>
John Moseley had been able, by long observation, 
to find out exactly the hour they
breakfasted at the deanery; the length of
time it took Egerton's horses to go the distance 
between that house and the hall;
and on the sixth morning after the departure
of his aunt, John's bays were in his phaeton,
and allowing ten minutes for the mile and a
half to the park gates, John had got happily
off his own territories, before he met the tilbury 
travelling eastward -- I am not to know
which road the colonel may turn, thought
John -- and after a few friendly, but rather
hasty greetings, the bays were in full trot to
Bolton parsonage.
</para>
<para>
&quot;John,&quot; said Emily, holding out her hand
affectionately, and smiling a little archly, as
he approached the window where she stood,
&quot;you should take a lesson in driving from
Frank; you have turned more than one hair,
I believe.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How is Clara,&quot; cried John, hastily,
taking the offered hand, with a kiss, &quot;and
aunt Wilson?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Both well, brother, and out walking this
fine morning.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How happens it you are not with them,&quot;
inquired the brother, throwing his eyes round
the room; &quot;have they left you alone?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, Grace has this moment left the
room.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well, Emily,&quot; said John, taking his seat
very composedly, but keeping his eyes on
the door, &quot;I have come to dine with you;
I thought I owed Clara a visit, and have
managed nicely to give the colonel the
go-by.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Clara will be happy to see you, dear
John,&quot; said Emily, &quot;and so will aunt, and
so am I&quot; -- as she drew aside his fine hair
with her fingers to cool his forehead.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And why not Grace, too?&quot; asked John,
with a look of a little alarm.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Grace, too, I expect -- but here she
is, to answer for herself.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Grace said but little on her entrance, but
her eyes were brighter than usual, and she
looked so contented and happy, that Emily
observed to her, in an affectionate manner,
</para>
<para>
&quot;I knew the Eau-de-Cologne would do
your head good.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Is Miss Chatterton unwell,&quot; said Moseley, with a look of interest.
</para>
<para>
&quot;A slight head ache,&quot; said Grace, faintly,
&quot;but I feel better.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Want of air and exercise; my horses
are at the door; the phaeton will hold three
easily; run, sister, for your hats,&quot; almost
pushing Emily out of the room as he spoke.
In a few minutes the horses might have been
suffering for air, but surely not for exercise.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I wish,&quot; cried John, with impatience,
when at the distance of a couple of miles
from the parsonage, &quot;that gentleman had
driven his gig out of the road.&quot;
</para>
<para>
There was a small group on one side of
the road, consisting of a man, woman, and
several children. The owner of the gig
had alighted for some purpose, and was
in the act of speaking to them, as the
phaeton approached at a great rate.
</para>
<para>
&quot;John,&quot; cried Emily, in terror, &quot;you
never can pass -- you will upset us.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There is no danger, dear Grace,&quot; said
the brother, endeavouring to check his
horses; he succeeded in part, but not so as
to prevent his passing at a spot where the
road was narrow; his wheel hit violently
against a stone, and some of his works gave
way; the gentleman immediately hastened
to his assistance -- it was Denbigh.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Miss Moseley!&quot; cried he, in a voice of
the tenderest interest, &quot;you are not hurt in
the least, I hope.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No,&quot; said Emily, recovering her breath,
&quot;only frightened;&quot; and taking his hand, she
sprang from the carriage.
</para>
<para>
Miss Chatterton found courage to wait
quietly for the care of John; his &quot;dear
Grace,&quot; had thrilled on her every nerve; and
she afterwards often laughed at Emily for
her terror when there was so little danger 
-- the horses were not in the least frightened,
and after a little patching, John declared all
was safe. To ask Emily to enter the carriage again, 
was to exact no little sacrifice of
her feelings to her reason; and she stood in
a suspense that too plainly showed, the terror
she had been in had not left her.
</para>
<para>
&quot;If,&quot; said Denbigh, modestly, &quot;If Mr.
Moseley will take the ladies in my gig I will
drive the phaeton to the hall, as it is rather
unsafe for so heavy a load.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, no, Denbigh,&quot; said John, coolly,
&quot;you are not used to such mettled nags as
mine -- it would be unsafe for you to drive them;
if, however, you will be good enough to take
Emily into your gig -- Grace Chatterton, I
am sure, is not afraid to trust my driving,
and we might all get back as well as ever.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Grace gave her hand almost unconsciously
to John, and he handed her into the phaeton,
as Denbigh stood willing to execute his part
of the arrangement, but too diffident to speak;
it was not a moment for affectation, if Emily
had been capable of it, and blushing with
the novelty of her situation, she took her
place in the gig; Denbigh stopped and
turned his eyes on the little group with
which he had been talking, and at that moment 
they caught the attention of John also;
he inquired of Denbigh their situations; their
tale was a piteous one -- their distress evidently 
real; the husband had been gardener
to a gentleman in a neighbouring county, and
he had been lately discharged, to make way,
in the difficulty of the times, for a relation of
the steward, who was in want of the place,
and suddenly thrown on the world with a
wife and four children, with but the wages
of a week for his and their support; they
had travelled thus far on the way to a neighbouring 
parish, where he said he had a right
to, and must seek, public assistance; their
children were crying for hunger, and the
mother, who was a nurse, had been unable
to walk further than where she sat, but had
sunk on the ground overcome with fatigue,
and weak from the want of nourishment.
Neither Emily or Grace could refrain from
tears at the recital of their heavy woes; the
want of sustenance was something so shocking in itself; 
and brought, as it were, immediately before their eyes, 
the appeal was irresistible. John forgot his bays -- forgot even
Grace, as he listened to the affecting story
related by the woman, who was much revived
by some nutriment Denbigh had obtained
from a cottage near them, and to which they
were about to proceed by his directions, as
Moseley interrupted them; his hand shook
-- his eyes glistened as he took his purse from
his pocket, and gave several guineas from it
to the mendicant; Grace thought John had
never appeared so handsome as the moment
he handed the money to the gardener; his
face glowed with the unusual excitement,
and his symmetry had lost the only charm he
wanted in common -- softness. Denbigh, after
waiting patiently until Moseley had bestowed
his alms, gravely repeated his directions for
their proceeding to the cottage, and the carriages moved on.
</para>
<para>
Emily revolved in her mind during their
short ride, the horrid distress she had witnessed; it had taken a strong hold on her
feelings; like her brother, she was warmhearted and compassionate, if we may use
the term, to excess, and had she been prepared with the means, the gardener would
have reaped a double harvest of donations; it
struck her at the moment, unpleasantly, that
Denbigh had been so backward in his liberality -- 
the man had rather sullenly displayed half
a crown as his gift, in contrast with the
golden shower of John's generosity; it had
been even somewhat offensive in its exhibition, 
and urged the delicacy of her brother
to a more hasty departure, than under other
circumstances he would, just at the moment, have felt 
disposed to. Denbigh, however, had taken no notice of the indignity,
and continued his directions in the same
mild and benevolent manner he had used
</para>
<para>
during the interview. Half a crown was
but little, thought Emily, for a family that
was starving, though; and unwilling to judge
harshly of one she had begun to value so
highly, she came to the painful conclusion,
her companion was not as rich as he deserved. 
Emily had not yet to learn that
charity was in proportion to the means of the
donor, and a gentle wish insensibly stole
over her, that Denbigh might in some way,
become more richly endowed with the good
things of this world; until this moment her
thoughts had never turned on his temporal
condition -- she knew he was an officer in the
army; but of what rank, or even of what
regiment, she was ignorant -- he had frequently 
touched in his conversations on the
customs of the different countries he had
seen; he had served in Italy -- in the north
of Europe -- in the West Indies -- in Spain.
Of the manners of the people, of their characters 
in their countries, he spoke not unfrequently, 
with a degree of intelligence, a
liberality, a justness of discrimination, that
had charmed his auditors; but on the point
of personal service he had maintained a silence that
 was inflexible, and a little surprising; more 
 particularly of that part of
his history which related to the latter country; 
from all which, she was rather inclined
to think his rank not as conspicuous as she
thought his merit entitled him to, and that
possibly he felt an awkwardness of contrasting 
it with the more elevated station of
Colonel Egerton; the same idea had struck
the whole family, and prevented from delicacy 
any inquiries which might be painful;
he was so connected with the mournful event
of his father's death, that no questions could
be put with propriety to the doctor's family;
and if Francis had been more communicative
to Clara, she was too good a wife to mention it, 
and her own family possessed of too
just a sense of propriety, to touch upon
points that might bring her conjugal fidelity
in question.
</para>
<para>
Denbigh appeared himself a little abstracted
during the ride, but his questions concerning
Sir Edward and her friends were kind and affectionate; 
as they approached the house, he
suffered his horse to walk; after some hesitation, he 
took a letter from his pocket, and
handing it to her, said,
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hope Miss Moseley will not think me
impertinent, in becoming the bearer of a letter from her 
cousin, Lord Chatterton; he requested it so earnestly, 
that I could not refuse
taking what I am sensible is a great liberty,
for it would be deception, did I affect to be ignorant 
of his admiration, or his generous
treatment of a passion she cannot return 
 -- Chatterton,&quot; and he smiled mournfully, &quot;is
yet too true in his devotion to cease his commendations.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily blushed painfully, but took the letter 
in silence, and as Denbigh pursued the
topic no farther, the little distance they had
to go, was rode in silence; on entering the
gates, however, he said, inquiringly, and with
much interest,
</para>
<para>
&quot;I sincerely hope I have not given offence
to your delicacy, Miss Moseley -- Lord Chatterton has 
made me an unwilling confidant 
-- I need not say the secret is sacred on more
accounts than one.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Surely not, Mr. Denbigh,&quot; replied Emily,
in a low tone, and the gig stopping she hastened to 
accept the assistance of her brother to
alight.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well, sister,&quot; cried John, with a laugh,
&quot;Denbigh is a disciple to Frank's system of
horse-flash -- hairs smooth enough here, I
see; Grace and I thought you would never
get home.&quot; Now, John fibbed a little, for
neither Grace or himself, had thought in the
least about them, or any thing else but each
other, from the moment they separated until
the gig arrived.
</para>
<para>
Emily made no reply to this speech, and
as the gentlemen were engaged in giving directions 
concerning their horses, she seized
the opportunity to read Chatterton's letter.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I avail myself of the return of my
friend Mr. Denbigh to that happy family,
from which reason requires my self-banishment, 
to assure my amiable cousin of my
continued respect for her character, and to
convince her of my gratitude for the tenderness 
she has manifested to feelings she cannot
return; I may even venture to tell her what
few women would be pleased to hear, but
what I know Emily Moseley too well to
doubt, for a moment, will give her unalloyed
pleasure -- that owing to the kind, the benevolent, 
the brotherly attentions of my true
friend, Mr. Denbigh, I have already gained
a peace of mind and resignation I once
thought was lost to me for ever. Ah! Emily,
my beloved cousin, in Denbigh you will find,
I doubt not, a mind -- principles congenial to
your own; it is impossible that he could see
you, without wishing to possess such a treasure; and, 
if I have a wish that is now uppermost in my 
heart, it is, that you may learn
to esteem each other as you ought, and, I
doubt not, you will become as happy as you
deserve; what greater earthly blessing can I
implore upon you!
</para>
<para>
Chatterton.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily, while reading this epistle, felt a confusion 
but little inferior to what would have
oppressed her had Denbigh himself been at her
feet, soliciting that love Chatterton thought
him so worthy of possessing; and when
they met, could hardly look in the face a
man who, it would seem, had been so openly
selected by another, as the being fittest to be
her partner for life. The unaltered manner
of Denbigh himself, however, soon convinced 
her that he was entirely ignorant of
the contents of the note he had been the
bearer of, and greatly relieved her from the
awkwardness his presence had at first occasioned.
</para>
<para>
Francis soon returned, accompanied by his
wife and aunt, and was overjoyed to find
the guest who had so unexpectedly arrived
in his absence. His parents had not yet returned 
from their visit, and Denbigh, of
course, would remain at his present quarters.
John promised to continue with them for a
couple of days; and the thing was soon settled to 
their perfect satisfaction. Mrs. Wilson knew 
the great danger of suffering young
people to be inmates of the same house too
well wantonly to incur the penalties; but
her visit had nearly expired, and it might
give her a better opportunity of judging Denbigh's 
character; and Grace Chatterton,
though too delicate to follow herself, was
well contented to be followed, especially
when John Moseley was the pursuer.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XVI.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
&quot;I am sorry, aunt, Mr. Denbigh is not
rich,&quot; said Emily to Mrs. Wilson, after they
had retired in the evening, and almost unconscious 
of what she uttered. The latter looked
at her neice in surprise, at the abrupt remark,
and one so very different from the ordinary
train of Emily's reflections, as she required
an explanation. Emily slightly colouring at
the channel her thoughts had insensibly
stolen into, gave her aunt an account of their
adventures in the course of their morning's
ride, and touched lightly on the difference
in the amount of the alms of her brother and
Mr. Denbigh.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The bestowal of money is not always
an act of charity,&quot; observed Mrs. Wilson,
gravely, and the subject was dropped;
though neither ceased to dwell on it in their
thoughts, until sleep closed their eyes.
</para>
<para>
The following day Mrs. Wilson invited
Grace and Emily to accompany her in a
walk; the gentlemen having preceded them
in pursuit of their different avocations. Francis 
had his regular visits of spiritual consolation; John had gone to the hall for his
pointers and fowling piece, the season for
woodcock having arrived; and Denbigh had
proceeded no one knew whither. On gaining the 
high-road, Mrs. Wilson desired her
companions to lead to the cottage, where the
family of the mendicant gardener had been
lodged, and thither they soon arrived. On
knocking at the door, they were immediately
admitted to an outer room, in which was the
wife of the labourer who inhabited the building, engaged 
in her customary morning employments. They explained the motives of
their visit, and were told the family they
sought were in an adjoining room, but she
</para>
<para>
rather thought at that moment engaged with
a clergyman, who had called a quarter of an
hour before them. &quot;I expect, my lady, its the
new rector, who every body says is so good to
the poor and needy; but I have not found time
yet to go to church to hear his reverence
preach, ma'am,&quot; curtseying and handing the
fresh dusted chairs to her unexpected visiters;
the ladies seated themselves -- too delicate to
interrupt Francis in his sacred duties, and
were silently waiting his appearance; when
a voice was distinctly heard through the
thin petition, the first note of which undeceived 
them as to the person of the gardener's visiter.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It appears then, Davis, by your own confession,&quot; 
said Denbigh, mildly, but in a tone
of reproof, &quot;that your frequent acts of intemperance, 
have at least given ground for
the steward in procuring your discharge, if it
has not justified him from what was his duty
to your common employer.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is hard, sir,&quot; replied the man, sullenly,
&quot;to be thrown on the world with a family like
mine, to make way for a younger man with
but one child.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It may be unfortunate for your wife and
children,&quot; said Denbigh, &quot;but just, as respects 
yourself. I have already convinced
you, that my interference or reproof is not
an empty one; carry the letter to the person
to whom it is directed, and I pledge you, you
shall have a new trial; and should you conduct 
yourself soberly, and with propriety,
continued and ample support; the second
letter will gain your children immediate admission 
to the school I mentioned; and I
now leave you, with an earnest injunction to
remember that habits of intemperance, not
only disqualify you to support those who
have such great claims on your protection,
but inevitably leads to a loss of those powers
which are necessary to insure your own eternal welfare.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;May Heaven bless your honour,&quot; cried
the woman, with fervour, and evidently in
tears, &quot;both for what you have said and
what you have done. Thomas only wants
to be taken from temptation, to become a
sober man again -- an honest one he has ever
been, I am sure.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have selected a place for him,&quot; replied
Denbigh, &quot;where there is no exposure from
improper companions, and every thing now
depends upon himself under Providence.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson had risen from her chair on
the first intimation given by Denbigh of his
intention to go, but had paused at the door to
listen to this last speech; when beckoning
her companions, she hastily withdrew, having
first made a small present to the woman of
the cottage, and requested her not to mention
their having called.
</para>
<para>
&quot;What becomes, now, of the comparative
charity of your brother and Mr. Denbigh,
Emily?&quot; asked Mrs. Wilson, as they gained
the road, on their return homeward. Emily
was not accustomed to hear any act of
John slightly spoken of, without at least
manifesting some emotion, which betrayed
her sisterly regard; but on the present occasion 
she chose to be silent; while Grace,
after waiting in expectation that her cousin
would speak, ventured to say timidly,
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am sure, dear madam, Mr. Moseley
was very liberal, and the tears were in his
eyes, while he gave the money; I was looking 
directly at him the whole time.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;John is compassionate by nature,&quot; continued Mrs. 
Wilson, with an almost imperceptible smile. &quot;I have 
no doubt his sympathies were warmly enlisted on behalf of
this family; and possessing much, he gave
liberally; I have no doubt he would have
undergone personal privation to have relieved
their distress, and endured both pain and
labour, with such an excitement before him;
but what is that to the charity of Mr. Denbigh;&quot; and she paused.
</para>
<para>
Grace was unused to contend, and least of
all, with Mrs Wilson; but unwilling to abandon John 
to such comparative censure, with
increased animation, she said,
</para>
<para>
&quot;If bestowing freely, and feeling for the
distress you relieve, be not commendable,
madam, I am sure I am ignorant what is.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That compassion for the woes of others
is beautiful in itself, and the want of it an 
invariable evidence of corruption from too
much, and ill-governed, intercourse with the
world, I am willing to acknowledge, my
dear Grace,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, kindly, &quot;but
the relief of misery, where the heart has not
undergone this hardening ordeal, is only
a relief to our own feelings -- this is compassion; but 
christian charity is a higher order of duty: it enters into every sensation
of the heart -- disposes us to judge, as well as
act favourably to our fellow creatures -- is
deeply seated in the sense of our own unworthiness -- 
keeps a single eye in its dispensations of temporal benefits, 
to the everlasting happiness of the objects of its bounty
-- is consistent -- well regulated -- in short,&quot;
and Mrs. Wilson's pale cheek glowed with
an unusual richness of colour, &quot;it is a humble attempt 
to copy after the heavenly example of our Redeemer, in sacrificing ourselves
to the welfare of others, and does, and must
proceed from a love of his person, and an
obedience to his mandates.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Mr. Denbigh, aunt,&quot; exclaimed.
Emily, the blood mantling to her cheeks with
a sympathetic glow, and losing the consideration 
of John in the strength of her
feeling, &quot;his charity you think to be thus.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;So far, my child, as we can attribute
motives from the complexion of the conduct,&quot;
said her aunt, with lessened energy, &quot;such
appears to have been the charity of Mr.
Denbigh.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Grace was silenced, if not convinced; and
the ladies continued their walk, lost in their
own reflections, until they reached a bend in
the road which would hide the cottage from
their view. Emily involuntarily turned her
head as they arrived at this spot, and saw
that Denbigh had approached to within a few
paces of them. On joining them, he commenced 
his complimentary address in such a
way as convinced them the cottager had been
true to the injunction given her by Mrs. Wilson.
No mention was made of the gardener, and
Denbigh commenced a lively description of
Italian scenery, which their present situation
reminded him of. The discourse was maintained 
with great interest by himself and
Mrs. Wilson, on this subject, for the remainder of their walk.
</para>
<para>
It was yet early when they reached the
parsonage, where they found John, who had
driven to the hall to breakfast, already returned, and 
who instead of pursuing his favourite amusement of shooting, laid down his
gun as they entered, observing, &quot;it is rather
soon yet for the woodcocks, and I believe I will
listen to your entertaining conversation, ladies,
for the remainder of the morning.&quot; He threw
himself upon a sofa at no great distance
from Grace, and in such a position as enabled
him, without rudeness, to study the features
of her lovely face, while Denbigh read
aloud to the ladies, at their request, Campbell's 
beautiful description of wedded love in
Gertrude of Wyoming.
</para>
<para>
There was a chastened correctness in the
ordinary manner of Denbigh which wore the
appearance of the influence of his reason,
and subjection of the passions, that, if any
thing, gave him less interest with Emily than
had it been marked by an evidence of
stronger feeling; but on the present occasion,
the objection was removed; his reading was
impressive; he dwelt on those passages which
had most pleased himself, with a warmth of
eulogium fully equal to her own undisguised
sensations. In the hour occupied in their
reading this exquisite little poem, and commenting on 
its merits and sentiments, Denbigh gained more on her imagination than in
all their former intercourse; his ideas were
as pure, as chastened, and almost as vivid as
the poet's; and Emily listened to his periods
with intense attention, as they flowed from
him in language as glowing as his ideas. The
poem had been first read to her by her brother,
and she was surprised to discover how she
had overloked its beauties on that occasion;
even John acknowledged that it certainly appeared a 
different thing now from what he
then thought it; but Emily had taxed his
declamatory power, in the height of the
pheasant season; and some how or other,
John had now conceited, that Gertrude was
just such a delicate, feminine, warm-hearted
domestic girl, as Grace Chatterton. As Denbigh closed 
the book, and entered into a general conversation with Clara and her sister.
John followed Grace to a window, and,
speaking in a tone of unusual softness, he
said,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you know, Miss Chatterton, I have
accepted your brother's invitation to go into
Suffolk this summer, and that you are to be
plagued with me and my pointers again.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Plagued, Mr. Moseley,&quot; said Grace, in a
voice softer than his own, &quot;I am sure -- I am
sure, we none of us think you, or your dogs
ever a plague.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah! Grace,&quot; and John was about to become what he 
had never been before -- sentimental -- as he saw the 
carriage of Chatterton, containing the dowager and 
Catherine, entering the parsonage gates.
</para>
<para>
Pshaw! thought John, there comes mother Chatterton -- &quot;Ah! Grace,&quot; said John,
&quot;there are your mother and sister returned
already.&quot; -- &quot;Already!&quot; said the young lady;
and, for the first time in her life, she felt
rather unlike a dutiful child; at least, five
minutes could have made no great difference to her mother, and she would have so
liked to hear what it was John Moseley
meant to have said; for the alteration in his
manner, convinced her that his first &quot;ah!
Grace,&quot; was to have been continued in a
something different language, from what his
second &quot;ah! Grace,&quot; was ended.
</para>
<para>
Young Moseley and her daughter standing together at the open window, caught the
attention of Lady Chatterton, the moment
she got a view of the house; and she entered with a 
good humour she had not felt
since the disappointment of her late expedition on 
behalf of Catherine. The gentleman she had determined on for her object in
this excursion had been taken up by another
rover, acting on her own account, and
backed by a little more wit, and a good deal
more money, than what Kate could be fairly
thought to possess. Nothing further in that
quarter offering in the way of her occupation, 
she turned her horses' heads towards
London, that great theatre, on which there
never was a loss for actors. The salutations
had hardly passed before turning to John,
she exclaimed, with what she intended for a
most motherly smile, &quot;what not shooting
this fine day, Mr. Moseley? I thought you
never missed a day in the season.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is rather early yet, my lady,&quot; said John,
cooly, and something alarmed by the expression of her countenance.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh!&quot; continued the dowager, in the
same strain, &quot;I see how it is, the ladies have
too many attractions for so gallant a young
man as yourself.&quot; Now, as Grace, her own
daughter, was the only lady of the party who
could reasonably be supposed to have much
influence over John's movements -- a young
gentleman seldom caring as much for their
own, as other people's sisters, this may be
fairly set down as a pretty broad hint of the
thoughts the dowager entertained of the state
of things; and John saw it, and Grace saw
it. -- The former cooly replied, &quot;why, upon
the whole, if your ladyship will excuse the
neglect, I will try a shot this fine day;&quot; and
in five minutes, Carlo and Rover were both
delighted. -- Grace kept her place at the
window, from a feeling she could not define,
and perhaps was unconscious of, until the
gate closed, and the shrubbery hid the sportsman 
from her sight, and then she withdrew
to her room to -- weep.
</para>
<para>
Had Grace Chatterton been a particle less
delicate -- less retiring -- blessed with a managing 
mother, as she was, John Moseley would not have thought a moment
about her; but on every occasion when the
dowager made any of her open attacks,
Grace discovered so much distress, so much
unwillingness to second them, that a suspicion 
of a confederacy never entered his
brain. It is not to be supposed that Lady
Chatterton's manoeuvres were limited to the
direct and palpable schemes we have mentioned; no -- 
these were the effervescence,
the exuberance of her zeal; but as is generally the case, they sufficiently proved the
ground-work of all her other machinations;
none of the little artifices of -- placing -- of
leaving alone -- of showing similarity of tastes
--of compliments to the gentlemen, were
neglected; this latter business she had contrived 
to get Catherine to take off her hands;
but Grace could never pay a compliment in
her life, unless changing of colour, trembling, 
undulations of the bosom, and such
natural movements can be called so; but she
loved dearly to receive them from John
Moseley.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well, my child,&quot; said the mother, as she
seated herself by the side of her daughter,
who hastily endeavoured to conceal her tears,
&quot;when are we to have another wedding? I
trust every thing is settled between you and
Mr. Moseley by this time.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mother! Mother!&quot; said Grace, nearly
convulsed with the bitterness of her regret,
&quot;Mother, you will break my heart, indeed
you will;&quot; and she hid her face in the clothes
of the bed by which she sat, and wept with
a feeling of despair.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Tut, my dear,&quot; replied the dowager, not
noticing her anguish, or mistaking it for
shame, &quot;you young people are fools in these
matters, but Sir Edward and myself will arrange 
every thing as it should be.&quot; The
daughter now not only looked up, but sprang
from her seat, her hands clasped together, her
eyes fixed in almost horror; her cheek pale
as death; but the mother had retired, and
Grace sank back in her chair with a sensation of 
disgrace, of despair, which could not
have been surpassed, had she readily merited
the heavy weight of obloquy and shame she
thought about to be heaped upon her.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XVII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The succeeding morning, the whole party,
with the exception of Denbigh, returned to
the Hall. Nothing had transpired out of the
ordinary course of the colonel's assiduities;
and Jane, whose sense of propriety forbad
the indulgence of tete-a-tetes, and such little
accompaniments of every-day attachments,
was rejoiced to see a sister she loved, and an
aunt she respected, once more in the bosom
of her family.
</para>
<para>
The dowager impatiently waited an opportunity 
to effect, what she intended for a
master-stroke of policy in the disposal of
Grace. Like all other managers, she thought
no one equal to herself in devising ways and
means, and was unwilling to leave any thing
to nature. Grace had invariably thwarted
all her schemes, by her obstinacy; and as she
thought young Moseley really attached to her,
she determined, by a bold stroke, to remove
the impediments of false shame, and the
dread of repulse, which she believed alone
kept the youth from an avowal of his wishes;
thus, also, get rid at once of a plague that had
annoyed her not a little -- her daughter's delicacy.
</para>
<para>
Sir Edward spent an hour every morning
in his library, overlooking his accounts, and
other necessary employments of a similar nature; and 
it was here she determined to have
the conference.
</para>
<para>
&quot;My Lady Chatterton, you do me honour,&quot; 
said the baronet, handing her a chair,
on her entrance.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Upon my word, cousin,&quot; cried the dowager, &quot;you have 
a very convenient apartment here,&quot; looking around her in affected
admiration of all she saw. The baronet replied, and a 
short discourse on the arrangements of the whole house, insensibly led to
the taste of his mother, the Hon. Lady
Moseley, (a Chatterton,) until having warmed
the feelings of the old gentleman, by some
well-timed compliments of that nature, she
ventured on the principle object of her visit.
&quot;I am happy to find, baronet, you are so well
pleased with the family as to wish to make
another selection from it; I sincerely hope it
may prove as judicious as the former one.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Sir Edward was a little at a loss to understand 
her meaning, although he thought it
might allude to his son, who he had some
time suspected had views on Grace Chatterton, 
willing to know the truth, and rather
pleased to find John had selected a young
woman he really loved in his heart, he observed,
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am not sure I rightly understand your
ladyship.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No!&quot; cried the dowager, in well-counterfeited 
affectation of surprise, &quot;perhaps
after all my maternal anxiety has deceived
me then: Mr. Moseley could hardly have
ventured to proceed without your approbation.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have ever declined influencing any of
my children, Lady Chatterton,&quot; said the baronet, 
&quot;and John is not ignorant of my sentiments; 
I hope, however, you allude to an
attachment to Grace?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I did certainly, Sir Edward,&quot; said the
lady hesitatingly; &quot;I may be deceived, but
you must know the feelings, and a young
woman ought not to be trifled with.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;My son is incapable of trifling, I hope,&quot;
cried Sir Edward with animation, &quot;and least
of all with Grace Chatterton. No, my lady,
you are right; if he has made his choice, he
should not be ashamed to avow it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I would not wish on any account, to
hurry matters,&quot; said the dowager, &quot;but the
report which is abroad, will prevent other
young men from putting in their claims, Sir
Edward,&quot; -- (sighing) -- I have a mother's
feelings: if I have been hasty, your goodness
will overlook it,&quot; and Lady Chatterton withdrew 
with her handkerchief at her eyes, to
conceal the tears -- that did not flow.
</para>
<para>
Sir Edward thought all was natural and
as it should be, and he sought an early conference with his son.
</para>
<para>
&quot;John,&quot; said the father, ta kng his hand
kindly, &quot;you have no reason to doubt my
affection or compliance to your wishes;
fortune is a thing out of the question with a
young man of your expectations;&quot; and Sir
Edward, in his eagerness to smooth the way,
went on: &quot;you can live here, or occupy my
small seat in Wiltshire. I can allow you
five thousand a year with much ease to myself. 
Indeed, your mother and myself would
both straighten ourselves, to add to your
comforts; but it is unnecessary -- we have
enough, and you have enough.&quot; Sir Edward 
would in a few minutes have settled
every thing to the dowager's perfect satisfaction, 
had not John interrupted him, by the
exclamation of, &quot;what do you allude to,
father?&quot; in a tone of astonishment.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Allude to,&quot; said Sir Edward simply,
&quot;why Grace Chatterton, my son.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Grace Chatterton, Sir Edward; what
have I to do with Grace Chatterton?&quot; cried
his child, colouring a little.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Her mother has made me acquainted
with your proposals,&quot; said the baronet,
&quot;and&quot; 
 -- 
   &quot;Proposals!&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Attentions I ought to have said; and
you have no reason to apprehend any thing
from me, my child.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Attentions!&quot; said John haughtily; &quot;I
hope Lady Chatterton does not accuse me of
improper attentions to her daughter.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, not improper, my son,&quot; said his father, &quot;she is pleased.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;She is,&quot; cried John impatiently, &quot;but I
am displeased, that she undertakes to put
constructions on my acts, that no attention
or words of mine will justify.&quot;
</para>
<para>
It was Sir Edward's turn now to be surprised. 
He had thought he was doing his
son a kindness, when he had only been forwarding 
the dowager's schemes: but averse
to contention, and wondering at his cousin's
mistake, which he at once attributed to her
anxiety, he told John he was sorry there had
been any misapprehension, and left him.
&quot;No, no,&quot; said Moseley internally, as he
paced up and down his father's library,
&quot;my lady dowager, you are not going to
force a wife down my throat. If you do, I
am mistaken; and Grace, if Grace&quot; -- and
John softened and began to feel unhappy a
little, but his anger prevailed.
</para>
<para>
From the moment Grace Chatterton conceived a 
dread of her mother's saying any
thing to Sir Edward, her whole conduct was
altered. She could hardly look any of the
family in the face, and her most ardent wish
was, that they might depart. John she
avoided as she would an adder, although it
nearly broke her heart to do so.
</para>
<para>
Mr. Benfield had staid longer than usual,
and now wished to return. John Moseley
eagerly seized the opportunity; and the very
day after the conversation in the library, he
went to Benfield Lodge as a dutiful nephew,
to see his venerable uncle safely restored
once more to the abode of his ancestors.
</para>
<para>
Lady Chatterton now perceived, when too
late, she had overshot her mark, and at the
same time she wondered at the reason of
such a strange result, from such well digested and 
well conducted plans; she determined never again to interfere between her
daughter and the baronet's heir; concluding,
with a nearer approach to the truth than
always accompanied her deductions, that
neither resembled ordinary lovers, in their
temperament or opinions.
</para>
<para>
Perceiving no further use in remaining any
longer at the Hall, she took her leave, and
accompanied by both her daughters, proceeded 
to the capital, where she expected to meet
her son.
</para>
<para>
Dr. Ives and his wife returned to the rectory 
on the same day, and Denbigh resumed
his abode under their roof immediately. The
intercourse between the rector's family and
Sir Edward's was renewed, with all its former friendly confidence.
</para>
<para>
Col. Egerton began to speak of his departure also, 
but hinted his intentions of visiting
L -- at the period of the baronet's visit to
his uncle, before he proceeded to town in the
winter.
</para>
<para>
L -- was a small village on the coast,
within a mile of Benfield Lodge; and from
its natural convenience, had been resorted to
by the neighbouring gentry, for the benefit of
sea bathing. The baronet had promised Mr.
Benfield his visit should be made at an earlier day 
than usual, in order to gratify Jane
with a visit to Bath, before they went to
London, and at which town they were promised by Mrs. 
Jarvis the pleasure of her society, and that of her son and daughters.
</para>
<para>
Precaution is a word of simple meaning in itself, but various are the ways
adopted by different individuals in this life to
enforce its import; and not a few are the
evils which are thought necessary to guard
against. To provide in season against the
dangers of want, personal injury, loss of character, 
and a great many other such acknowledged misfortunes, 
has become a kind of instinctive process of our natures. The few
exceptions which exist, only go to prove the
rule: in addition to these, almost every man
has some ruling propensity to gratify, to advance 
which, his ingenuity is ever on the
alert -- or some apprehended evil to avert,
which calls all his prudence into activity.
Yet how seldom is it exerted, in order to give
a rational ground to expect permanent happiness in wedlock.
</para>
<para>
Marriage is called a lottery, and it is thought,
like all other lotteries, there are more blanks
than prizes; yet is it not made more precarious 
than it ought to be, by our neglect of
that degree of precaution, which we would
be ridiculed for omitting in conducting our
every day concerns? Is not the standard of
testing the probability of matrimonial felicity,
placed too low? Ought we not to look more
to the possession of principles than to the
possession of wealth? Or is it at all justifiable 
in a christian to commit a child, a daughter, to 
the keeping of a man who wants the
very essential they acknowledge most necessary to 
constitute a perfect character? Most
men revolt at infidelity in a woman -- and
most men, however licentious themselves,
look for, at least, the exterior of religion in
their wives. The education of their children
is a serious responsibility; and although seldom 
conducted on such rules as will stand
the test of reason, is not to be entirely shaken
off: they choose their early impressions should
be correct -- their infant conduct at least blameless. 
And are not one half mankind of the
male sex? Are precepts in religion, in morals, only 
for females? Are we to reverse the
theory of the Mahommedans, and though we
do not believe it, act as if men had no souls?
Is not the example of the father as important
to the son, as that of the mother to the daughter? 
In short, is there any security against
the commission of enormities, but a humble
and devout dependance on the assistance of
that Almighty Power, which is alone able to
hold us up against temptation.
</para>
<para>
Uniformity of taste, is no doubt necessary
to what we call love, at least to think so; but
is not taste acquired? Would our daughters
admire a handsome deist if properly impressed with 
a horror of its doctrines, sooner than
they now would a handsome Mahommedan?
We would refuse our children to a pious dissenter, 
to give them to impious members of
the establishment; we make the substance
less than the shadow.
</para>
<para>
Our principal characters are possessed of
these diversified views of the evils to be averted. 
Mrs. Wilson considers christianity an
indispensible requisite in the husband to be
permitted to her charge, and watches against
the possibility of any other gaining the affections 
of Emily. Lady Chatterton considers
the want of an establishment, as the one sin
not to be forgiven, and directs her energies
to prevent this evil; while John Moseley
looks upon a free will as the birthright of an
Englishman, and is at the present moment
anxiously alive to prevent the dowager's
making him the husband of Grace, the thing
of all others he most desires.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XVIII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
John Moseley returned from L -- within the week, 
and appeared as if his whole
delight consisted in knocking over the inoffensive 
birds. His restlessness induced him
to make a Jarvis his companion; for although
he abhorred the captain's style of pursuing
the sport, being in his opinion both out of
rule and without taste, yet he was a constitutional fidget, 
and suited his own moving propensities at the moment. Egerton 
and Denbigh were both frequently at the Hall, but
generally gave their time to the ladies, neither
being much inclined to the favourite amusement of John.
</para>
<para>
There was a little arbour within the walls
of the park, which had been for years the retreat 
from the summer heats to the ladies of
the Moseley family; even so long as the youth
of Mrs. Wilson it had been in vogue, and she
loved it with a kind of melancholy pleasure,
as the spot where she had first listened to the
language of love, from the lips of her late
husband; into this arbour the ladies had one
day retired during the warmth of a noon-day
sun, with the exception of Lady Moseley,
who had her own engagements in the house.
Between Egerton and Denbigh there was
maintained a kind of courtly intercourse,
which prevented any disagreeable collision
from their evident dislike. Mrs. Wilson
thought on the part of Denbigh, it was the
forbearance of a principled indulgence to another's 
weakness; while the colonel's otherwise
uniform good-breeding, was hardly able to conceal 
a something, amounting to very near repugnance, 
with which he admitted the association. Egerton had taken his seat on the
ground, near the feet of Jane; and Denbigh
had stationed himself on a bench placed without the 
arbour, but so near as to have the full
benefit of the shade of the noble oak, whose
branches had been trained, so as to compose
its principal covering. It might have been
accident, that gave each his particular situation; 
but it is certain they were so placed,
as not to be in sight of each other, and so
that the Colonel was convenient to hand Jane
her scissors, or any other little implement
of her work that she occasionally dropped,
and so that Denbigh could read every lineament 
of the animated countenance of Emily
as she listened to his description of the 
curiosities of Egypt, a country in which he had
spent a few months while attached to the
army in Sicily. In this situation we will
leave them for an hour, happy in the society
of each other, while we trace the rout of John
Moseley and his companion, in their pursuit
of woodcock, on the same day.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you know, Moseley,&quot; said Jarvis, who
began to think he was a favourite with John,
&quot;that I have taken if into my head, this Mr.
Denbigh was very happy to plead his morals
for not meeting me; he is a soldier, but I
cannot find out what battles he has been in.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Captain Jarvis,&quot; said John coolly, &quot;the
less you say about that business the better;
call in Rover.&quot; Now another of Jarvis's 
recommendations was a set of lungs that might
have been heard a half a mile with great
ease on a still morning.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why,&quot; said Jarvis rather humbly, &quot;I am
sensible, Mr. Moseley, I was very wrong as
regards your sister; but don't you think it a
little odd in a soldier not to fight when properly called upon.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I suppose Mr. Denbigh did not think
himself properly called upon,&quot; said John;
&quot;or perhaps he had heard what a great shot
you were.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Six months before his appearance in B -- ,
Captain Jarvis had been a clerk in the counting 
room of Jarvis, Baxter &amp; Co. and had
never held fire-arms of any kind in his hand,
with the exception of an old blunderbuss,
which had been a kind of sentinel over the
iron chest for years. On mounting the
cockade, he had taken up shooting as a martial exercise, inasmuch 
as the burning of gunpowder was an attendant of the recreation.
He had never killed but one bird in his life,
and that was an owl, of whom he took the
advantage of day-light and his stocking feet,
to knock off a tree in the deanery grounds
very early after his arrival. In his trials with
John, he sometimes pulled trigger at the same
moment with his companion; and as the
bird generally fell, why he had certainly an
equal claim to the honour. He was fond of
warring with crows, and birds of the larger
sort, and invariably went provided with small
balls fitted to the bore of his fowling piece for
such accidental rencontres. He had another
habit, which was not a little annoying to
John, and who had several times tried in vain
to break him of, that of shooting at marks.
If birds were not plenty, he would throw up
a chip, and sometimes his hat, by the way of
shooting on the wing.
</para>
<para>
As the day was excessively hot, and the
game kept close, John felt willing to return
from such unprofitable labour. The captain
now commenced his chip firing, which in a
few minutes was succeeded by his hat.
</para>
<para>
&quot;See, Moseley, see, I have hit the band,&quot;
cried the captain, delighted to find he had at
last wounded his old antagonist; &quot;I don't
think you can beat that yourself.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am not sure I can,&quot; said John, slipping
a handful of gravel in the muzzle of his piece
slily, &quot;but I can do as you did, try.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do,&quot; cried the captain, pleased to get
his companion down to his own level of amusement, &quot;are you ready?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, throw.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Jarvis threw, and John fired; the hat fairly bounced -- &quot;Have I hit it?&quot; asked John
coolly, while reloading the barrel he had discharged.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Hit it?&quot; said the captain, looking ruefully at his hat, &quot;it looks like a cullender;
but Moseley, your gun don't scatter well;
here must have been a dozen shot have gone
through in a place.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It does look rather like a cullender,&quot;
said John, as he overlooked his companion's
observations on the state of his beaver, &quot;and
by the size of some of the holes, one that has
been a good deal used.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The reports of the fowling pieces announced to the party in the arbour the return of
the sportsmen; it being an invariable practice with John Moseley, to discharge his gun
before he came in, and Jarvis had imitated
him, from a wish to be, what he called, in
rules.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mr. Denbigh,&quot; said John archly, as he
put down his gun, &quot;Captain Jarvis has got
the better of his hat at last.&quot; Denbigh smiled
without speaking; and the captain, unwilling
to have any thing to say to a gentleman to
whom he had been obliged to apologize for
his five hundred pounds, went into the arbour to 
show the mangled condition of his
head-piece to the colonel, on whose sympathies he 
felt a kind of claim, being of the
same corps. John complained of thirst, and
went to a little run of water, but a short distance 
from them, in order to satisfy it. The
interruption of Jarvis was particularly unseasonable. 
Jane was relating, in a manner peculiar to herself, and in which was mingled
that undefinable exchange of looks lovers are
so fond of, some incident of her early life to the
colonel, that greatly interested him; knowing
the captain's foibles, he pointed with his
finger, as he said,
</para>
<para>
&quot;There is one of your enemies, a hawk.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Jarvis threw down his hat, and ran with
boyish eagerness to drive away the intruder.
In his haste, he caught up the gun of John
Moseley, and loading it rapidly, threw in a
ball from his usual stock; but whether it was
that the hawk saw and knew him, or whether
it saw something else it liked better, it made
a dart for the baronet's poultry yard at no
great distance, and was out of sight in a minute. 
Seeing his mark had vanished, the
captain laid the piece where he had found it,
and recovering his old train of ideas, picked
up his hat again.
</para>
<para>
&quot;John,&quot; said Emily, as she approached
him affectionately, &quot;you were too warm to
drink.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Stand off, sir,&quot; cried John playfully, 
having taken up his gun from against the body
of the tree, and dropping it towards her 
 -- 
   Jarvis had endeavoured to make an appeal
to the commiseration of Emily, in favour of
his neglected beaver, and was within a few
feet of them; at this moment, recoiling from
the muzzle of the gun, he exclaimed, &quot;it is
loaded.&quot; &quot;Hold,&quot; cried Denbigh, in a voice
of horror, as he sprang between John and his
sister. Both were too late; the piece was
discharged. Denbigh turning to Emily, and
smiling mournfully, gazed for a moment at
her, with an expression of tenderness, of
pleasure of sorrow, so blended, that she retained 
the recollection of it for life, and then
fell at her feet.
</para>
<para>
The gun dropt from the nerveless grasp of
young Moseley. Emily sunk in insensibility
by the side of her preserver. Mrs. Wilson
and Jane stood speechless and aghast. The
colonel alone retained a presence of mind so
necessary to devise the steps to be immediately 
taken. He sprung to the examination
of Denbigh; his eyes were open, and his
recollection perfect: they were fixed in intense 
observation on the inanimate body
which laid by his side.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Leave me, Colonel Egerton,&quot; he said,
speaking with difficulty, and pointing in the
direction of the little run of water, &quot;assist
Miss Moseley -- your hat -- your hat will answer.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Accustomed to scenes of blood, and not
ignorant that time and care were the remedies to be applied to the wounded man,
Egerton flew to the stream, and returning
immediately, by the help of her sister and
Mrs. Wilson, soon restored Emily to life.
The ladies and John had now begun to act.
</para>
<para>
The tenderest assiduities of Jane were devoted to her 
sister, while Mrs. Wilson, observing her niece to be uninjured by any thing
but the shock, assisted John in supporting the
wounded man.
</para>
<para>
He spoke, requesting to be carried to the
house; and Jarvis was despatched for help:
within half an hour, Denbigh was placed on
a couch in the mansion of Sir Edward, and
quietly waiting for that professional aid,
which could only decide on his probable fate.
The group assembled in the room, were
waiting in fearful expectation the arrival of
the surgeons, in pursuit of whom messengers
had been sent, both to the barracks in F 
 -- and to the town itself. Sir Edward sat by
the side of the sufferer, holding one of his
hands in his own, now turning his tearful
eyes on that daughter who had so lately been
rescued as it were from the certainty of death
in mute gratitude and thanksgiving; and now
dwelling on the countenance of him, who,
by barely interposing his bosom to the blow,
had incurred in his own person, the imminent
danger of a similar fate, with a painful sense
of his perilous situation, and devout and earnest 
prayers for his safety. Emily was with her
father, as with the rest of his family, a decided
favourite; and no reward would have been
sufficient, no gratitude lively enough, in the
estimation of the baronet, to compensate the
defender of such a child. She sat between
her mother and Jane, with a hand held by
each, pale and opprest with a load of gratitude, of 
thanksgiving, of wo, that almost
bowed her to the earth. Lady Moseley and
Jane were both sensibly touched with the deliverance of 
Emily, and manifested the interest they took in her by the tenderest caresses,
while Mrs. Wilson sat calmly collected within herself, 
occasionally giving those few directions which were necessary 
under the circumstances, and offering up her silent 
petitions in behalf of the sufferer. John had
taken horse immediately for F -- , and Jarvis 
had volunteered to go to the rectory and
Bolton. Denbigh inquired frequently and
with much anxiety for Dr. Ives; but the rector 
was absent from home on a visit to a sick
parishioner, and it was late in the evening
before he arrived. Within three hours of the
accident, however, Dr. Black, the surgeon of
the -- th, reached the Hall, and immediately 
proceeded to the examination of the wound.
The ball had penetrated the right breast, and
gone directly through the body; it was extracted with 
very little difficulty, and his attendant acquainted the anxious friends of
Denbigh, the heart had certainly, and he
hoped the lungs had escaped uninjured; the
ball was a very small one, and the danger to
be apprehended was from fever: he had taken the usual 
precautions against it, and
should it not set in with a violence greater
than he apprehended at present, the patient
might be abroad within the month; &quot;but,&quot;
continued the surgeon with the hardened indifference 
of his profession, &quot;the gentleman
has had a narrow chance in the passage of
the ball itself; half an inch would have settled his 
accounts with this world.&quot; This information greatly relieved the family, and
orders were given to preserve a silence in the
house that would favour the patient's disposition to 
quiet, or, if possible, sleep.
</para>
<para>
Dr. Ives now reached the Hall. Mrs.
Wilson had never seen the rector in the agitation, or want of self-command he was in,
as she met him at the entrance of the house 
 -- &quot;Is he alive? -- is there hope? -- where is
George?&quot; -- cried the doctor as he caught the
extended hand of Mrs. Wilson; she briefly
acquainted him with the surgeon's report,
and the reasonable ground there was to expect Denbigh would survive the injury. 
-- &quot;May God be praised,&quot; said the rector, in a
suppressed voice, and he hastily withdrew
into a parlour. Mrs. Wilson followed him
slowly and in silence, but was checked on her
opening the door, with the sight of the rector
on his knees, and the big tear stealing down his
venerable cheeks in quick succession. &quot;Surely,&quot; thought 
the widow, as she drew back unnoticed, &quot;a youth capable of exciting such
affection in a man like Dr. Ives, as he now
manifests, cannot be an unworthy one.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Denbigh hearing of the arrival of his friend
desired to see him alone: their conference
was short, and the rector returned from it with
increased hopes of the termination of this
dreadful accident. He immediately left
the hall for his own house, with a promise of returning early on the following
morning.
</para>
<para>
During the night, however, the symptoms
became unfavourable; and before the return
of Dr. Ives, Denbigh was in a state of delirium from 
the height of his fever, and the apprehensions of his 
friends renewed with additional force.
</para>
<para>
&quot;What, what, my good sir, do you think
of him?&quot; said the baronet to the family physician, with an emotion that the danger of his
dearest child would not have exceeded, and
within hearing of most of his children, who
were collected in the anti-chamber of the
room Denbigh was placed in. &quot;It is impossible to say, 
Sir Edward,&quot; replied the physician, &quot;he refuses all medicines, and unless
this fever abates, there is but little hopes of
his recovery.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily stood during this question and answer, motionless, pale as death, and with
her hands clasped together; betraying by
the workings of her fingers in a kind of
convulsive motion, the intensity of her interest; she had seen the draught prepared,
which it was so desirable for Denbigh to
take, and it now stood rejected on a table in
view through the open door of his room
--almost breathless she glided to where it
was put, and taking it in her hand, she approached the bed, by which sat John alone,
listening with a feeling of despair to the
wanderings of the sick man; Emily hesitated once or twice, as she drew near to
Denbigh; her face had lost the paleness
of anxiety, and glowed with some other
emotion.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mr. Denbigh -- dear Denbigh,&quot; said
Emily, with energy, and unconsciously dropping her 
voice into the softest notes of persuasion; &quot;will you refuse me? -- me, Emily
Moseley, whose life you have saved?&quot; and
she offered him the salutary beverage.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Emily Moseley!&quot; repeated Denbigh, after
her, and in those tones so remarkable to his
natural voice, &quot;is she safe? I thought she
was killed -- dead;&quot; and then, as if 
recollecting somewhat, he gazed intently on her
countenance -- his eye became less fiery 
-- his muscles relaxed -- he smiled, and took
without opposition the prescribed medicines
from her hand. He still wandered in his language, 
but his physician, profiting by the
command Emily possessed over his patient,
increased his care, and by night his fever
had abated, and before morning he was in a
profound sleep. During the whole day, it
was thought necessary to keep Emily by the
side of his bed; but at times it was no
trifling tax on her feelings to remain there;
he spoke of her by name in the tenderest
manner, although incoherently, and in terms
that restored to the blanched cheeks of the
distressed girl, more than the richness of
their native colour. His thoughts were not
confined to Emily, however; he talked of
his father -- of his mother, and frequently
spoke of his poor deserted Marian -- the latter 
name he dwelt on in the language of the
warmest affection -- condemned his own desertion 
of her -- and, taking Emily for her,
would beg her forgiveness -- tell her, her
sufferings had been enough, and that he
would return and never leave her again. At
such moments, his nurse would sometimes
show, by the paleness of her cheeks again,
her anxiety for his health, and then, as he 
addressed her by her proper appellation, all her
emotions appeared absorbed in a sense of the
shame his praises overwhelmed her with, as
he became more placid with the decrease of
his fever. Mrs Wilson succeeded her in
the charge of the patient; and she retired to
seek that repose she so greatly needed. On
the second morning after receiving the wound,
he dropped into a deep sleep, from which he
awoke perfectly refreshed and collected in
his mind. The fever had left him, and his
attendants pronounced, with the usual caution to 
prevent a relapse, his recovery certain. It were 
impossible to have communicated any intelligence more grateful to all the
members of the Moseley family; for Jane
had even lost sight of her own lover, from her
sympathy in the fate of a man she supposed
to be her sister's.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XIX.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The recovery of Denbigh was as rapid
as the most sanguine expectation of his
friends could justify; and in ten days from
the accident, he left his bed, and would sit for
an hour or two at a time in his dressing
room, where Mrs. Wilson, accompanied by
Jane or Emily, would come and read to him,
such books as they knew he was fond of;
and it was a remark of Sir Edward's gamekeeper, that the woodcocks had become so
tame, during the time Mr. Moseley was shut
up in attendance on his friend, that Captain
Jarvis was at last seen bringing home one.
</para>
<para>
As Jarvis felt something like a consciousness, that but for his folly, the accident would
not have happened; and also something very
like shame, for the manner he had shrunk
from the danger Denbigh had met, he pretended a recal to his regiment then on duty
near London, and left the deanery. He went
off as he came in -- in the colonel's tilbury,
and accompanied by his friend and his
pointers. John, who saw them pass from the
windows of Denbigh's dressing-room, fervently 
prayed he might never come back
again -- the chip-shooting poacher.
</para>
<para>
Colonel Egerton had taken leave of Jane
the evening preceding, with the assurance of
the anxiety he should look forward to the
moment of their meeting at L -- , wither
he intended repairing, as soon as the corps he
belonged to had gone through its annual review. 
Jane had followed the bent of her
natural feelings too much, during the period
of Denbigh's uncertain fate, to think much
on her lover, or any thing else but her
rescued sister and her preserver; but now
the former was pronounced in safety, and the
latter, by the very re-action of her grief, was
if possible happier than ever. Jane dwelt in
melancholy sadness on the perfections of the
man who had taken with him the best affections (as she thought) of her heart -- with
him, all was perfect; his morals were unexceptionable, 
his manners showed it; his tenderness of disposition manifest -- they had
wept together over the distresses of more
than one fictitious heroine; his temper, how
amiable! he was never angry -- she had
never seen it; his opinions -- his tastes, how
correct! they were her own; his form, his
face, how agreeable, her eyes had seen it,
and her heart acknowledged it; besides, his
eyes confessed the power of her own charms;
he was brave, for he was a soldier -- in short,
as Emily had predicted, he was a hero -- for
he was Colonel Egerton.
</para>
<para>
Had Jane been possessed of less exuberance of fancy, she might have been a little
at a loss to have identified all those good
properties with her hero, or had she possessed a matured 
or well regulated judgment to have controlled that fancy, they
might possibly have assumed a different appearance. 
No explanation had taken place
between them, however; Jane knew, both
by her own feelings, and the legends of love,
from its earliest days, that the moment of
parting was generally a crisis in affairs of the
heart; and with a backwardness, occasioned
by her modesty, had rather avoided, than
sought an opportunity to favour the colonel's
wishes. Egerton had not been over anxious
to come to the point, and every thing was
left as heretofore -- neither, however, appeared 
to doubt in the least the state of the other's
affections; and there might be said to exist
between them, one of those not unusual engagements, 
by implication, which it would
have been (in their own estimation) a breach
of faith to have receded from, but which,
like all other bargains that are loosely made,
are sometimes violated, if convenient. Man
is a creature that, experience has sufficiently
proved, it is necessary to keep in his proper
place in society, by wholesome restrictions;
and we have often thought it a matter of regret, 
that some well-understood regulations
did not exist, by which it became not only
customary, but incumbent on him, to proceed in his road to the temple of hymen 
 -- we know that it is ungenerous, ignoble, almost 
unprecedented, to doubt the faith, the
constancy, of a male paragon; yet, somehow, as 
the papers occasionally give us a
sample of such infidelity -- as we have sometimes 
seen a solitary female brooding over
her woes in silence, and with the seemliness
of feminine decorum, shrinking from the discovery 
of its cause and its effects she has in
vain hoped to escape; or which the grave
has revealed for the first time; we cannot
but wish, that either the watchfulness of the
parent, or a sense of self-preservation in the
daughter, would for the want of a better,
cause them to adhere to those old conventional forms 
of courtship, which requires a
man to speak to be understood, and a woman
to answer to be committed.
</para>
<para>
There was a little parlour in the house of
Sir Edward Moseley, that was the privileged 
retreat of none but the members of
his own family; it was here that the ladies
were accustomed to withdraw into the bosom
of their domestic quietude, when occasional
visiters had disturbed their ordinary intercourse, and 
many were the hasty and unreserved communications it had witnessed from
the sisters, in their stolen flights from the
gayer scenes of the principal apartments; it
might be said to be sacred to the pious feelings 
of the domestic affections. Sir Edward
would retire to it when fatigued with his
occupations, certain of finding some one of
those he loved to draw his thoughts off from
the cares of life to the little incidents of his
children's happiness; and Lady Moseley,
even in the proudest hours of her reviving
splendour, seldom passed the door without
looking in, with a smile, on the faces she
might find there; it was, in fact, the room in
the large mansion of the baronet, expressly
devoted, by long usage and common consent,
to the purest feelings of human nature. Into
this apartment Denbigh had gained admission, 
as the one nearest to his own room,
and requiring the least effort of his returning 
strength to reach, and, perhaps, by an
undefinable feeling of the Moseleys which
had begun to connect him with themselves 
 -- partly from his winning manners, and partly
by the sense of the obligation he had laid
them under.
</para>
<para>
One warm day, John and his friend had
sought this retreat, in expectation of meeting
his sisters, who they found, however, on
inquiry, had walked to the arbour; after remaining 
conversing for an hour by themselves, John was called 
away to attend to a
pointer that had been taken sick, and Denbigh
 throwing a handkerchief over his head
to guard against the danger of cold, quietly
composed himself on one of the comfortable
sofas of the room, with a disposition to
sleep; before he had entirely lost his consciousness, 
a light step moving near him,
caught his ear; believing it to be a servant
unwilling to disturb him, he endeavoured to
continue in his present mood, until the quick,
but stifled breathing, of some one nearer to
him than before, roused his curiosity; he
commanded himself. however, sufficiently to
remain quiet; a blind of a window near him
was carefully closed; a screen drawn from
a corner and placed so as sensibly to destroy
the slight draught of air in which he laid
himself from the excessive heat; and other
arrangements were making, but with a care
to avoid disturbing him, that rendered them
hardly audible -- presently the step approached 
him again, the breathing was quicker
though gentle, the handkerchief moved 
 -- but the hand was withdrawn hastily as if
afraid of itself -- another effort was successful, 
and Denbigh stole a glance through his
dark lashes, on the figure of Emily as she
stood over him in the fullness of her charms,
and with a face, in which glowed an emotion
of interest he had never witnessed in it before; it 
undoubtedly was gratitude. For a
moment she gazed on him, as her colour increased in 
richness. His hand was carelessly thrown over an arm of the sofa; she
stooped towards it with her face gently, but
with an air of modesty that shone in her
very figure -- Denbigh felt the warmth of her
breath, but her lips did not touch it. Had
Denbigh been inclined to judge the actions
of Emily Moseley harshly, it were impossible to mistake the movement for any thing
but the impulse of natural feeling -- there
was a pledge of innocence, of modesty in
her countenance, that would have prevented
any misconstruction; and he continued
quietly awaiting what the preparations on
her little mahogany secretary were intended
for.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson entertained a great abhorrence of 
what is commonly called accomplishments in a woman; she knew that too
much of that precious time, which could
never be recalled, was thrown away in endeavouring 
to acquire a smattering in what,
if known, could never be of use to the
party, and what can never be well known
but to a few, whom nature, and long practice, 
have enabled to conquer; yet as her
mind had early manifested a taste for painting, 
and a vivid perception of the beauties of
nature, her inclination had been indulged,
and Emily Moseley sketched with great
neatness and accuracy, and no little despatch. It 
would have been no subject of surprise, had admiration, 
or some more powerful feeling, betrayed to the maid, 
the deception which the young man, whose features
she was now studying, was practising on
her unsuspicion. She had entered the room
from her walk, warm and careless; her hair,
than which none was more beautiful, had
strayed on her shoulders, freed from the confinement 
of the comb, and a lock was finely
contrasted with the rich colour of her cheek,
that almost burnt with the exercise and the
excitement -- her dress, white as the first
snow of the winter; her looks, as she now
turned them on the face of the sleeper, and
now betrayed by their animation the success of her art, formed a picture in itself,
that Denbigh might have been content to
have gazed on forever. Her back was to a
window, that threw its strong light on the
paper; whose figures were reflected, as she
occasionally held it up to study its effect
in a large mirror, so fixed that Denbigh
caught a view of her subject -- he knew it
at a glance -- the arbour -- the gun -- himself,
all were there; it appeared to have been
drawn before -- it must have been, from its
perfect state, and Emily had seized a favourable moment to complete his resemblance.
Her touches were light and finishing, and as
the picture was frequently held up for consideration, 
he had some time allowed for
studying it. His own resemblance was
strong; his eyes were turned on herself, to
whom Denbigh thought she had not done
ample justice -- but the man who held the
gun, bore no likeness to John Moseley, except 
in dress. A slight movement of the
muscles of the sleeper's mouth, might have
betrayed his consciousness, had not Emily
been too intent on the picture, as she turned
it in such a way, that a strong light fell on
the recoiling figure of Captain Jarvis -- the 
resemblance was wonderful -- Denbigh thought
he would have known it, had he seen it in the
academy itself. The noise of some one approaching 
closed the port-folio -- it was only
a servant; yet Emily did not resume her
pencil. Denbigh watched her motions, as
she put the picture carefully in a private
drawer of the secretary -- reopened the blind,
replaced the screen, and laid the handkerchief, 
the last thing, on his face, with a movement almost imperceptible to himself.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is later than I thought it,&quot; said Denbigh, 
looking at his watch, &quot;I owe an apology, 
Miss Moseley, for making so free with
your parlour; but I was too lazy to move.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Apology! Mr. Denbigh,&quot; cried Emily,
with a colour varying with every word she
spoke, and trembling, at what she thought
the nearness of detection, &quot;you have no
apology to make for your present debility;
and surely -- surely, least of all to me.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I understand from Mr. Moseley,&quot; continued 
Denbigh, with a smile, &quot;that our
obligation is at least mutual; to your perseverance 
and care, Miss Moseley, after
the physicians had given me up, I believe
I am, under Providence, indebted for my recovery.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily was not vain, and least of all addicted
to a display of any of her acquirements; very
few even of her friends knew she ever held a
pencil in her hand; yet did she now unaccountably 
throw open her port-folio, and
offer its contents to the examination of her
companion; it was done almost instantaneously, 
and with great freedom, though not
without certain flushings of the face, and
heavings of the bosom, that would have
eclipsed Grace Chatterton in her happiest
moments of natural flattery. Whatever might
have been the wishes of Mr. Denbigh, to
pursue a subject which had begun to grow
extremely interesting, both from its import
and the feelings of the parties it would
have been rude to have declined viewing the
contents of a lady's port-folio. The drawings 
were, many of them, interesting, and the
exhibiter of them now appeared as anxious
to remove them in haste, as she had but the
moment before been to direct his attention to
her performance. Denbigh would have given
much to have dared to ask for the paper so
carefully secreted in the private drawer; but
neither the principal agency he had himself
in the scene, nor delicacy to his companion's
evident wish for concealment, would allow of
the request.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Doctor Ives! how happy I am to see
you,&quot; said Emily, hastily closing her portfolio, 
and before Denbigh had gone half
through its contents, &quot;you have become almost a 
stranger to us, since Clara has left us.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, no, my little friend, never a stranger,
I hope, at Moseley Hall,&quot; cried the doctor,
pleasantly; &quot;George, I am happy to see you
look so well -- you have even a colour 
 -- there is a letter for you from Marian.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Denbigh took the letter eagerly, and retired to 
a window to peruse it -- his hand
shook as he broke the seal, and his interest in
the writer or its contents, could not have escaped the notice of any observer, however
indifferent.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Now, Miss Emily, if you will have the
goodness to order me a glass of wine and
water, after my ride, believe me, you will do
a very charitable act,&quot; cried the doctor, as
he took his seat on the sopha. Emily was
standing by the little table, deeply musing on
the qualities of her port-folio; for her eyes
were fixed on its outside intently, as if she
expected to see its contents through the
leather covering.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Miss Emily Moseley,&quot; continued the
doctor, gravely, &quot;am I to die of thirst or not,
this warm day.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you wish any thing, Doctor Ives,&quot;
said Emily, as he passed her in order to ring
the bell.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Only a servant to get me some wine and
water.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why did you not ask me, my dear sir,&quot;
said Emily, as she threw open a cellaret, and
handed him what he wanted.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There, my dear, there is a great plenty,&quot;
said the doctor, with an arch expression, &quot;I
really thought I had asked you thrice -- but I
believe you were studying something in that
port-folio.&quot; Emily blushed, and endeavoured
to laugh at her own absence of mind; but
she would have given the world to know who
Marian was.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XX.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
As a month had elapsed since the receiving
of his wound, Denbigh took an opportunity
one morning at breakfast, where he was well
enough now to meet his friends, to announce
his intention of trespassing no longer on
their kindness, but of returning that day to
the rectory; the communication distressed
the whole family, and the baronet turned to
him in the most cordial manner, as he took
one of his hands, and said, with an air of
solemnity,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mr. Denbigh, I could wish you to make
this house your home; Doctor Ives may
have known you longer, and may have ties
of blood upon you, but I am certain he cannot 
love you better; and are not the ties of
gratitude as binding as those of blood?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Denbigh was affected by the kindness of
Sir Edward's manner, as he replied,
</para>
<para>
&quot;The regiment I belong to, Sir Edward, will
be reviewed next week, and it has become my
duty to leave here; there is one it is proper I
should visit, a near connexion, who is acquainted 
with the escape I have met with,
and wishes naturally to see me; besides, my
dear Sir Edward, she has many causes of
sorrow, and it is a debt I owe her affection to
endeavour to relieve them.&quot; It was the first
time he had ever spoken of his family, or
hardly of himself; and the silence which
prevailed, plainly showed the interest the
listeners took in the little he uttered.
</para>
<para>
That connexion, thought Emily, I wonder if her name be Marian. But nothing
further passed, excepting the affectionate regrets of her father, 
and the promises of Denbigh to visit them again before he left B -- ,
and of joining them at L -- immediately
after the review he spoke of. As soon as he
had breakfasted, John drove him in his phaeton to the rectory.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson, like the rest of the baronet's
family, had been too deeply impressed with
the debt they owed to this young man, to interfere 
with her favourite system of caution,
against too great an intimacy between her
niece and her preserver. Close observation,
and the opinion of Dr. Ives, had prepared
her to give him her esteem; but the gallantry,
the self-devotion he had displayed to Emily,
was an act calculated to remove heavier objections 
than she could imagine as likely to
exist, to his becoming her husband -- that he
meant it, was evident from his whole deportment of late. 
Since the morning the portfolio was produced, Denbigh had given a
more decided preference to her niece. The
nice discrimination of Mrs. Wilson would not
have said his feelings had become stronger,
but that he laboured less to conceal them 
 -- that he loved her niece, she suspected from
the first fortnight of their acquaintance, and
it had given additional stimulus to her investigation into her character -- but to doubt it,
after stepping between her and death, would
have been to have mistaken human nature.
There was one qualification, she would have
wished to have been certain he possessed;
before this accident, she would have made
it an indispensible one; but the gratitude 
 -- the affections of Emily, she believed now to
be too deeply engaged to make the strict inquiry 
she otherwise would have done, and
she had the best of reasons for believing that
if Denbigh were not a professing Christian,
he was at least a strictly moral man, and assuredly, one 
who well understood the beauties of a religion, she almost 
conceived it impossible for any impartial and intelligent
man to resist long; perhaps Mrs. Wilson,
owing to circumstances without her control,
had in some measure interfered with her
system -- like others, had, on finding it impossible 
to conduct so that reason would justify 
all she did, began to find reasons for
what she thought best to be done under
the circumstances. Denbigh had, however,
both by his acts and his opinions, created
such an estimate of his worth, in the breast
of Mrs. Wilson, that there would have been
but little danger of a repulse, had no fortuitous 
accident helped him in his way to her favour.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Who have we here,&quot; said Lady Moseley;
&quot;a landaulet and four -- the Earl of Bolton,
I declare;&quot; and Lady Moseley turned from
the window, with that collected grace she so
well loved, and so well knew how to assume,
to receive her noble visiter. Lord Bolton
was a bachelor of sixty-five, who had long
been attached to the court, and had retained
much of the manners of the old school; his
principle estate was in Ireland, and most of
that time which his duty at Windsor did
not require, he gave to the improvement of
his Irish property; thus, although on perfectly 
good terms with the baronet's family,
they seldom met -- with General Wilson he
had been at college, and to his widow he 
always showed much of that regard he had
invariably professed to her husband. The
obligation he had conferred, unasked, on
Francis Ives, was one conferred on all his
friends; and his reception was now warmer
than usual.
</para>
<para>
&quot;My Lady Moseley,&quot; said the earl, bowing on her hand, 
&quot;your looks do ample justice to the air of Northamptonshire. I hope
your ladyship enjoys your usual health;&quot; and
then waiting her equally courteous answer,
he paid his compliments, in succession, to all
the members of the family; a mode undoubtedly well 
adapted to discover their several conditions, but not a little tedious in
its operations, and somewhat tiresome to the
legs.
</para>
<para>
&quot;We are under a debt of gratitude to your
lordship,&quot; said Sir Edward, in his simple and
warm-hearted way, &quot;that I am sorry it is
not in our power to repay more amply than
by our thanks.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The earl was, or affected to be, surprised,
as he required an explanation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The living at Bolton, my lord,&quot; said
Lady Moseley, with dignity. &quot;Yes,&quot; 
continued her husband; &quot;your lordship, in giving
the living to Frank, did me a favour, equal
to what you would have done, had he been
my own child -- and unsolicited too, my lord,
it was an additional compliment.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The earl sat rather uneasy during this
speech, but the love of truth prevailed, for
he had been too much round the person of
our beloved sovereign, not to retain all the
impressions of his youth; and after a little
struggle with his self love, answered,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not unsolicited, Sir Edward. I have
no doubt had my better fortune allowed me
the acquaintance of my present rector, his
own merit would have obtained, what a sense
of justice requires I should say was granted
to an applicant, the ear of royalty would not
have been deaf to.&quot;
</para>
<para>
It was the turn of the Moseleys now to
look surprised, and Sir Edward ventured to
ask an explanation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It was my cousin, the Earl of Pendennyss, 
who applied to me for it, as a favour
done to himself; and Pendennyss is a man not
to be refused any thing.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Lord Pendennyss,&quot; exclaimed Mrs.
Wilson, with animation, &quot;and in what way
came we to be under this obligation to his
lordship?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He did me the honour of a call, during
my visit to Ireland, madam,&quot; replied the
earl, &quot;and on inquiring of my steward after
his old friend, Doctor Stevens, learnt his
death, and the claims of Mr. Ives; but the
reason he gave me, was his interest in the
widow of General Wilson,&quot; bowing with
much solemnity to the lady as he spoke.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am gratified to find the earl yet remembers 
us,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, struggling
to restrain her tears; &quot;are we to have the
pleasure of seeing him soon?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I received a letter from him yesterday,
saying he should be here in all next week,
madam;&quot; and turning pleasantly to Jane and
her sister, he continued, &quot;Sir Edward, you
have here rewards fit for heavier services, and
the earl is a great admirer of female charms.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Is he not married, my lord?&quot; asked the
baronet, with great simplicity.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, baronet, nor engaged; but how long
he will remain so after his hardihood in venturing 
into this neighbourhood, will, I trust,
depend on one of these young ladies.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Jane looked grave -- for trifling on love was
heresy in her estimation; but Emily laughed,
with an expression in which a skilful physiognomist 
might have read -- if he means me,
he is mistaken.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your cousin, Lord Chatterton, has found
interest, Sir Edward,&quot; continued the peer,
&quot;to obtain his father's situation; and if reports
speak truth, he wishes to become more nearly
related to you, baronet.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I do not well see how that can happen,&quot;
said Sir Edward, with a smile, and who had
not art enough to conceal his thoughts, &quot;unless he takes my sister, here.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The cheeks of both the young ladies now
vied with the rose; and the peer observing he
had touched on forbidden ground, added,
&quot;Chatterton was fortunate to find friends able
to bear up against the powerful interest of
Lord Haverford.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;To whom was he indebted for the place,
my lord?&quot; asked Mrs. Wilson.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It was whispered at court, madam,&quot; said
the earl, sensibly lowering his voice, and
speaking with an air of mystery, a lord of
the bed-chamber is fonder of, than a lord of
the council-board, &quot;that His Grace of 
Derwent threw the whole of his parliamentary
interest into the scale on the baron's side 
 -- but you are not to suppose,&quot; raising his hand
gracefully, with a wave of rejection, &quot;that
I speak from authority; only a surmise, Sir
Edward -- only a surmise, my lady.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Is not the name of the Duke of Derwent, Denbigh?&quot; inquired Mrs. Wilson, with
a thoughtful manner.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Certainly, madam -- Denbigh,&quot; replied
the earl, with a gravity with which he always
spoke of dignities, &quot;one of our most ancient
names, and descended on the female side,
from the Plantagenets and Tudors.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He now rose to take his leave, and on
bowing to the younger ladies, laughingly
repeated his intention of bringing his cousin
(an epithet he never omitted) Pendennyss to
their feet.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you think, sister,&quot; said Lady Moseley,
after the earl had retired, &quot;that Mr. Denbigh
is of the house of Derwent?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I cannot say,&quot; replied Mrs. Wilson,
musing, &quot;yet it is odd -- Chatterton told me
of his acquaintance with Lady Harriet Denbigh, 
but not with the duke.&quot; As this was
spoken in the manner of a soliloquy, it received 
no answer, and was in fact but little
attended to by any of the party, excepting
Emily, who glanced her eye once or twice
at her aunt as she was speaking, with an interest 
the name of Denbigh never failed to
excite. Harriet was, she thought, a pretty
name, but Marian was a prettier; if, thought
Emily, I could know a Marian Denbigh,
I am sure I could love her, and her name
too.
</para>
<para>
The Moseleys now began to make their
preparations for their departure to L -- ,
and the end of the succeding week was fixed
for the period at which they were to go;
Mrs. Wilson urged a delay of two or three
days, in order to give her an opportunity of
meeting with the Earl of Pendennyss, a
young man in whom, although she had relinquished her former romantic wish of
uniting him to Emily, in favour of Denbigh,
she yet felt a deep interest, growing out of his
connexion with the last moments of her husband, and his uniformly high character.
</para>
<para>
Sir Edward accordingly acquainted his
uncle, that on the following Saturday he
might expect to receive himself and family,
intending to leave the hall in the afternoon
of the preceding day, and reach Benfield
Lodge to dinner; this arrangement once
made, and Mr. Benfield notified of it, was unalterable, the old man holding a variation
from an engagement a deadly sin. The week
succeeding the accident, which had nearly
proved so fatal to Denbigh, the inhabitants
of the hall were surprised with the approach
of a being, as singular in his manners and
dress, as the equipage which conveyed him
to the door of the mansion -- the latter consisted 
of a high-backed, old-fashioned sulky,
loaded with leather and large headed brass
nails; wheels at least a quarter larger in 
circumference than those of the present day,
and wings on each side, large enough to have
supported a full grown roc, in the highest
regions of the upper air -- it was drawn by a
horse, once white, but whose milky hue was
tarnished, through age, with large and numerous 
red spots, and whose mane and tail did
not appear to have suffered by the shears
during the present reign. The being who
alighted from this antiquated vehicle, was tall
and excessively thin, wore his own hair
drawn over his almost naked head, into a
long thin cue, which reached half way down
his back, closely cased in numerous windings of 
leather, or skin of some fish. His
drab coat was in shape between a frock and
close-body -- close-body, indeed, it was; for
the buttons, which were in size about equal
to an old-fashioned China saucer, were
buttoned to the very throat, and thereby setting 
off his shapes to peculiar advantage; his
breeches were buckskin, and much soiled;
his stockings blue yarn, although it was midsummer; 
and his shoes provided with buckles
of dimensions proportionate to the aforesaid buttons; 
his age might have been seventy, but his walk was quick, 
and the movements of his whole system showed great 
activity both of mind and body. He was ushered into the room where the gentlemen
were sitting, and having made a low and extremely modest bow, deliberately put on
his spectacles, thrust his hand into an outside
pocket of his coat, and produced, from under
its huge flaps, a black leather pocket-book,
about as large as a good sized octavo volume;
after examining the multitude of papers it
contained carefully, he selected a letter, and
having returned the pocket-book to its ample apartment, read aloud -- 
&quot;For Sir Edward Moseley, bart. of Moseley Hall, B -- ,
Northamptonshire -- with care and speed, by
the hands of Mr. Peter Johnson, steward of
Benfield Lodge, Norfolk;&quot; and dropping
his sharp voice, he stalked up to where the
baronet stood, and presented the epistle, with
another reverence.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah, my good friend Johnson,&quot; said Sir
Edward, as soon as he delivered his errand,
(for until he saw the contents of the letter,
he had thought some accident had occurred
to his uncle,) &quot;this is the first visit you have
ever honoured me with; come, take a
glass of wine before you go to your dinner
-- drink that you hope it may not be the
last.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Sir Edward Moseley, and you honourable 
gentlemen, will pardon me,&quot; replied the
steward, in his solemn keys, &quot;this is the
first time I was ever out of his majesty's
county of Norfolk, and I devoutly wish it
may prove the last -- Gentlemen, I drink
your honourable healths.&quot;
</para>
<para>
This was the only real speech the old man
made during his visit, unless an occasional
monosyllabic reply to a question could be
thought so. He remained, by Sir Edward's
positive order, until the following day; for
having delivered his message, and received
its answer, he was about to take his departure 
that evening, thinking he might get
a good piece on his road homeward, as it
wanted a half an hour yet to sundown. On
the following morning, with the sun, he was
on his way to the house in which he had
been born, and which he had never left for
twenty-four hours at a time, in his life. In
the evening, as he was ushered in by John
(who had known him from his own childhood,
and loved to show him attentions) to the
room in which he was to sleep, he broke,
what the young man called, his inveterate
silence, with, &quot;young Mr. Moseley -- young
gentleman -- might I presume -- to ask -- to see
the gentleman.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;What gentleman?&quot; cried John, in astonishment, both 
at the request, and his speaking so much.
</para>
<para>
&quot;That saved Miss Emmy's life, sir.&quot; John
now fully comprehendod him, and led the
way to Denbigh's room; he was asleep, but
they were admitted to his bed-side; the
steward stood for good ten minutes, gazing
on the sleeper in silence; and John observed,
as he blew his nose, on regaining his own
apartment, his little gray eyes twinkled with
a lustre, that could not be taken for any thing
but a tear.
</para>
<para>
As the letter was as characteristic of the
writer, as its bearer was of his vocation,
we may be excused giving it at length.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Dear Sir Edward and Nephew,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your letter reached the lodge too late to
be answered that evening, as I was about
to step into my bed; but I hasten to write
my congratulations; remembering the often
repeated maxim of my kinsman Lord Gosford, that letters 
should be answered immediately; indeed, a neglect of it had very nigh
brought about an affair of honour between the
earl and Sir Stephens Hallett. Sir Stephens
was always opposed to us in the house of
commons of this realm; and I have often
thought it might have been something passed
in the debate itself, which commenced the
correspondence, as the earl certainly told him
as much, as if he were a traitor to his king
and country.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But it seems that your daughter Emily,
has been rescued from death, by the grandson of General Denbigh, who sat with us in
the house -- Now I always had a good opinion of this young Denbigh, who reminds
me every time I look at him, of my late brother, your father-in-law, that was; and I
send my steward, Peter Johnson, express to
the hall, in order that he may see the sick
man, and bring me back a true account of
how he fares; for should he be wanting for
any thing within the gift of Roderic Benfield,
he has only to speak to have it; not that I
suppose, nephew, you will willingly allow
him to suffer for any thing, but Peter is a
man of close observation, although he is of
few words, and may suggest something beneficial, 
that might escape younger heads 
 -- I pray for -- that is, I hope, the young man
will recover, as your letter gives great hopes,
and if he should want any little matter to
help him along in his promotion in the army,
as I take it he is not over wealthy, you
or a life of service, could entitle me to receive.&quot; 
The baronet smiled his assent to a
request he already understood, and Denbigh
withdrew.
</para>
<para>
John Moseley had insisted on putting the
bays into requisition to carry Denbigh for
the first stage, and they now stood caparisoned 
for the jaunt, with their master in a less
joyous mood than common, waiting the appearance of his companion.
</para>
<para>
Emily delighted in their annual excursion
to Benfield Lodge; she was beloved so
warmly, and returned the affection of its
owner so sincerely, that the arrival of the
day never failed to excite that flow of spirits
which generally accompanies anticipated
pleasures, ere experience has proved how
trifling are the greatest enjoyments the scenes
of this life bestow. Yet as the day of their
departure drew near, her spirits sunk in 
proportion, and on the morning of Denbigh's
leave-taking, Emily seemed any thing but
excessively happy; there was a tremour in
her voice, and redness about her eyes, that
alarmed Lady Moseley with the apprehension 
she had taken cold; but as the paleness
of her cheeks were immediately succeeded
with as fine a brilliancy of colour, as the
heart could wish, the anxious mother allowed
herself to be persuaded by Mrs. Wilson, there
was no danger, and accompanied her sister
to her own room for some purpose of domestic economy. 
It was at this moment Denbigh entered; he had paid his adieus to the
matrons at the door, and been directed by
them to the little parlour in quest of Emily.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have come to make my parting compliments, Miss Moseley,&quot; 
said he, in a tremulous voice, as he ventured to hold forth
his hand; &quot;may heaven preserve you,&quot; he
continued, holding it in fervour to his bosom,
and then dropping it, he hastily retired, as if
unwilling to trust himself any longer to utter
all he felt. Emily stood a few moments, pale,
and almost inanimate, as the tears flowed rapidly from 
her eyes, and then sought a
shelter in a seat of the window for her person and her 
sorrows. Lady Moseley, on returning, was again alarmed lest the draught
would increase her indisposition; but her
sister, observing that the window commanded
a view of the road, thought the air too mild
to do her injury.
</para>
<para>
The personages who composed the society
at B -- , had now, in a great measure, separated, 
in pursuit of their duties or their
pleasures. The merchant and his family left
the deanery for a watering place. Francis
and Clara had gone on a little tour of pleasure in the northern counties, to take L 
 -- in their return homeward; and the morning
arrived for the commencement of the baronet's journey 
to the same place. The carriages had been ordered, and servants were
running in various ways, busily employed in
their several occupations, when Mrs. Wilson,
accompanied by John and his sisters, returned 
from a walk they had taken to avoid
the bustle of the house. A short distance
from the park gates, an equipage was observed 
approaching, creating by its numerous
horses and attendants, a dust which drove
the pedestrians to one side of the road; an
uncommonly elegant and admirably fitted
travelling barouche and six rolled by, with
the graceful steadiness of an English equipage; 
several servants on horseback were in
attendance, and our little party were struck
with the beauty of the whole establishment.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Can it be possible, Lord Bolton drives
such elegant horses,&quot; cried John, with the
ardour of a connoisseur in that noble animal;
&quot;they are the finest set in the kingdom.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Jane's eye had seen, through the clouds of
dust, the armorial bearings, which seemed to
float in the dark glossy pannels of the carriage,
and answered, &quot;it is an earl's coronet, but
they are not the Bolton arms.&quot; Mrs. Wilson and Emily 
had noticed a gentleman reclining at his ease, as the 
owner of the gallant show; but its passage was too rapid to
enable them to distinguish the features of
the courteous old earl; indeed, Mrs. Wilson
remarked, she thought him a younger man
than her friend.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pray, sir,&quot; said John, to a tardy groom,
as he civilly walked his horse by the ladies,
&quot;who has passed us in the barouche?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;My Lord Pendennyss, sir.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pendennyss!&quot; exclaimed Mrs. Wilson,
with a tone of regret, &quot;how unfortunate!&quot;
she had seen the day named for his visit
pass without his arrival, and now, as it was
too late to profit by the opportunity, he had
come for the second time into her neighbourhood. 
Emily had learnt by the solicitude of
her aunt, to take an interest in the young
peer's movements, and desired John to ask a
question or two of the groom.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Where does your lord stop, to-night?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;At Bolton Castle, sir, and I heard my lord
tell his valet that he intended staying one
day hereabouts, and on the day after the
morrow he goes to Wales, your honour.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I thank you, friend,&quot; said John; and the
man spurred his horse after the cavalcade.
The carriages were at the door, and Sir Edward 
had been hurrying Jane to enter, as a
servant, in a rich livery, and well mounted,
galloped up and delivered a letter for Mrs.
Wilson, who on opening it read the following:
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Earl of Pendennyss begs leave to
present his most respectful compliments to
Mrs. Wilson, and the family of Sir Edward
Moseley -- Lord Pendennyss will have the
honour of paying his respects in person at
any moment that the widow of his late invaluable 
friend, lieutenant-general Wilson,
will please to appoint.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Bolton Castle, Friday evening.&quot;
</para>
<para>
To this note Mrs. Wilson, bitterly regretting 
the necessity which compelled her to
forego the pleasure of meeting her paragon,
wrote in reply a short letter, disliking the
formality of a note.
</para>
<para>
&quot;My Lord,
</para>
<para>
&quot;I sincerely regret, that an engagement
which cannot be postponed, compels us to
leave Moseley Hall within the hour, and
must, in consequence, deprive us of the pleasure of 
your intended visit. But as circumstances have connected your lordship with
some of the dearest, although the most melancholy 
events of my life, I earnestly beg
you will no longer consider us as strangers to
your person, as we have long ceased to be
to your character. It will afford me the
greatest pleasure to hear that there will be a
prospect of our meeting in town this winter,
where I may find a more fitting opportunity
of expressing those grateful feelings so long
due to your lordship, from your sincere friend,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Charlotte Wilson.
&quot;Moseley Hall, Friday morning.&quot;
</para>
<para>
With this answer the servant was despatched, and the carriages moved on. John had
induced Emily to trust herself once more to
the bays and his skill; but on perceiving the
melancholy of her aunt, she insisted on exchanging 
seats with Jane, who had accepted
a place in the carriage of Mrs. Wilson. No
objection being made, Mrs. Wilson and her
niece rode the first afternoon together in her
travelling chaise. The road run within a quarter 
of a mile of Bolton Castle, and the ladies
endeavoured in vain to get a glimpse of the
person of the young nobleman. Emily was
willing to gratify her aunt's propensity to
dwell on the character and history of her favourite, 
and hoping to withdraw her attention
gradually from more unpleasant recollections,
asked several trifling questions relating to
those points.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The earl must be very rich, aunt, from
the style he maintains.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Very, my dear; his family I am unacquainted with, but I understand his title is an
extremely ancient one; and some one, I belive Lord Bolton, mentioned that his estates
in Wales alone, exceeded fifty thousand a
year.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Much good might be done,&quot; said Emily
thoughtfully, &quot;with such a fortune.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Much good is done,&quot; cried her aunt with
fervour. &quot;I am told by every one who knows
him, his donations are large and frequent.
Sir Herbert Nicholson said he was extremely simple in his habits, and it leaves large
sums at his disposal every year.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The bestowal of money is not always
charity,&quot; said Emily with an arch smile and
slight colour. Mrs. Wilson smiled in her turn
as she answered, &quot;not always, but it is charity 
to hope for the best.&quot; &quot;Sir Herbert
knew him then?&quot; said Emily -- &quot;Perfectly
well; they were associated together in the
service for several years, and he spoke of him
with a fervour equal to my warmest expectations.&quot; The Moseley arms in F -- , was
kept by an old butler of the family, and Sir
Edward every year, going and coming to
L -- , spent a night under its roof. He was
received by its master with a respect that none
who ever knew the baronet well, could withhold 
from his goodness of heart and many virtues.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well, Jackson,&quot; said the baronet kindly
as he was seated at the supper table, &quot;how
does custom increase with you -- I hope you
and the master of the Dun Cow are more
amicable than formerly.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, Sir Edward,&quot; replied the host, who
had lost a little of the deference of the servant in 
the landlord, but none of his real respect, 
&quot;Mr. Daniels and I are more upon a
footing of late than we was, when your goodness 
enabled me to take the house; then he
got all the great travellers, and for more than a
twelvemonth I had not a title in my house
but yourself and a great London doctor, that
was called here to see a sick person in the
town. He had the impudence to call me the
knight, barrowknight, your honour, and we
had a quarrel upon that account.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am glad, however, to find you are gaining in the 
rank of your customers, and trust,
as the occasion has ceased, you will be more
inclined to be good-natured to each other.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, as to good-nature, Sir Edward, I
lived with your honour ten years, and you
must know somewhat of my temper,&quot; said
Jackson, with the self-satisfaction of an
approving conscience; &quot;but Sam Daniels is a
man who is never easy unless he is left quietly at the 
top of the ladder; however,&quot; continued 
the host, with a chuckle, &quot;I have given
him a dose lately.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How so, Jackson?&quot; inquired the baronet, 
willing to gratify the man's evident wish
to relate his triumphs.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your honour must have heard mention
made of a great lord, one Duke of Derwent;
well, Sir Edward, about six weeks agone he
past through with my Lord Chatterton.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Chatterton!&quot; exclaimed John, interrupting 
him, &quot;has he been so near us again, and
so lately?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, Mr. Moseley,&quot; replied Jackson with
a look of importance; &quot;they dashed into my
yard with their chaise and four, with five
servants, and would you think it, Sir Edward,
they had'nt been in the house ten minutes,
before Daniel's son was fishing from the servants, 
who they were; I told him, Sir Edward
--dukes don't come every day.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How came you to get his grace away
from the Dun Cow -- chance?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, your honour,&quot; said the host, 
pointing to his sign, and bowing reverently to his
old master, &quot;the Moseley Arms did it. Mr.
Daniels used to taunt me with having worn
a livery, and has said more than once he
could milk his cow, but that your honour's
arms would never lift me into a comfortable
seat for life; so I just sent him a message by
the way of letting him know my good fortune, your honour.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And what was it?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Only that your honour's arms had shoved
a duke and a baron into my house -- that's
all.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And I suppose Daniels' legs shoved your
messenger out of his house,&quot; said John with
a laugh.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, Mr. Moseley; Daniels would hardly
dare do that: but yesterday, your honour,
yesterday evening, beat every thing. Daniels
was seated before his door, and I was taking
a pipe at mine, Sir Edward, as a coach and
six, with servants upon servants, drove down
the street; it got near us, and the boys were
reining the horses into the yard of the Dun
Cow, as the gentleman in the coach saw my
sign: he sent a groom to inquire who kept
the house; I got up your honour, and told
him my name, sir. Mr. Jackson, said his
lordship, my respect for the family of Sir 
Edward Moseley is too great not to give my
custom to an old servant of his family.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Indeed,&quot; said the baronet; &quot;pray who
was my lord?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Earl of Pendennyss, your honour.
Oh, he is a sweet gentleman, and he asked all
about my living with your honour, and about
madam Wilson.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Did his lordship stay the night,&quot; inquired Mrs. Wilson, 
excessively gratified at a discovery of the disposition manifested by the
earl towards her.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, madam, he left here after breakfast.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;What message did you send the Dun Cow
this time, Jackson?&quot; cried John laughing.
Jackson looked a little foolish, but the question 
being repeated, he answered -- &quot;Why,
sir, I was a little crowded for room, and so
your honour, so I just sent Tom across the
street, to know if Mr. Daniels could'nt keep
a couple of the grooms.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Tom got his head broke.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, Mr. John, the tankard missed him;
but if -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Very well,&quot; cried the baronet, willing to
change the conversation, &quot;you have been so
fortunate of late, you can afford to be generous; 
and I advise you to cultivate harmony
with your neighbour, or I may take my arms
down, and you may lose your noble visiters 
-- see my room prepared.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, your honour,&quot; said the host, and
bowing respectfully, he withdrew.
</para>
<para>
&quot;At least, aunt,&quot; cried John pleasantly,
&quot;we have the pleasure of supping in the
same room with the puissant earl, albeit
there be twenty-four hours difference in the
time.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I sincerely wish there had not been that
difference,&quot; observed his father, taking his
sister kindly by the hand.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Such an equipage must have been a harvest indeed to 
Jackson,&quot; remarked the mother; and they broke up for the evening.
</para>
<para>
The whole establishment at Benfield Lodge
were drawn up to receive them on the following 
day in the great hall, and in the centre
was fixed the upright and lank figure of its
master, with his companion in leanness, 
honest Peter Johnson, on his right.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have made out, Sir Edward and my Lady 
Moseley, to get as far as my entrance to
receive the favour you are conferring upon me.
It was a rule in my day, and one invariably
practised by all the great nobility, such as
Lord Gosford -- and -- and -- his sister, the 
lady Juliana Dayton, always to receive and
quit their guests in the country at the great
entrance; and in conformity -- ah, Emmy
dear,&quot; cried the old gentleman, folding her in
his arms as the tears rolled down his cheek,
and forgetting his speech in the warmth of his
feeling, &quot;you are saved to us again; God be
praised -- there, that will do, let me breathe 
-- let me breathe&quot; -- and then by the way of
getting rid of his softer feelings, he turned
upon John; &quot;so, youngster, you would be
playing with edge tools, and put the life of
your sister in danger. No gentlemen held a
gun in my day; that is, no gentlemen about
the court. My Lord Gosford had never killed
a bird in his life, or drove his horse; no sir,
gentlemen then were not coachmen. Peter,
how old was I before I took the reins of the
chaise, in driving round the estate -- the time
you had broke your arm; it was -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
Peter, who stood a little behind his master,
in modest retirement, and who had only
thought his elegant form brought thither to
embellish the show, when called upon, advanced a step, 
made a low bow, and answered in
his sharp key:
</para>
<para>
&quot;In the year 1798, your honour, and the
38th of his present majesty, and the 64th
year of your life, sir, June the 12th, about meridian.&quot; 
Peter had dropped back as he finished; but recollecting himself, regained his
place with a bow, as he added, &quot;new style.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How are you, old style?&quot; cried John,
with a slap on the back, that made the steward jump again.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mr. John Moseley -- young gentleman&quot; 
-- a term Peter had left off using to the baronet
within the last ten years, &quot;did you think 
-- to bring home -- the goggles?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh yes,&quot; said John gravely, and he produced them from
 his pocket, most of the party having entered the parlour, and put them
carefully on the bald head of the steward 
-- &quot;There Mr. Peter Johnson, you have your
property again. safe and sound.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Mr. Denbigh said he felt much indebted to your consideration in sending
them,&quot; said Emily soothingly, as she took
them off with her beautiful hands.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah Miss Emmy,&quot; said the steward with
one of his best bows, &quot;that was -- a noble
act; God bless him;&quot; and then holding up
his finger significantly, &quot;but the fourteenth
codicil -- to master's will,&quot; and Peter laid his
finger alongside his nose, as he nodded his
head in silence,
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hope the thirteenth contains the name
of honest Peter Johnson,&quot; said the young
lady, who felt herself uncommonly well
pleased with the steward's conversation just
then.
</para>
<para>
&quot;As witness, Miss Emmy -- witness to all 
-- but God forbid,&quot; said the steward with solemnity, 
&quot;I should ever live to see the proving of them; no, Miss Emmy, master has
done for me what he intended, while I had
youth to enjoy it. I am rich, Miss Emmy 
-- good three hundred a year.&quot; Emily, who
had seldom heard as long a speech as the old
man's gratitude drew from him, expressed her
pleasure to hear it, and shaking him kindly
by the hand, left him for the parlour.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Niece,&quot; said Mr. Benfield, having 
scanned the party closely with his eyes, &quot;where
is Colonel Denbigh?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Colonel Egerton, you mean, sir,&quot; interrupted Lady Moseley.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, my Lady Moseley,&quot; replied her uncle
with great formality, &quot;I mean Colonel Denbigh. 
I take it he is a colonel by this time,&quot;
looking expressively at the baronet; &quot;and
who is fitter to be a colonel or a general, than
a man who is not afraid of gunpowder.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Colonels must have been scarce in your
youth, sir,&quot; cried John, who had rather a 
mischievous propensity to start the old man on
his hobby.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, jackanapes, gentlemen killed one
another then, although they did not torment
the innocent birds: honour was as dear to a
gentleman of George the second's court, as
to those of his grandson's, and honesty too,
sirrah -- ay, honesty. I remember when we
were in, there was not a man of doubtful in,
tegrity in the ministry, or on our side even;
and then again, when we went out, the opposition 
benches were filled with sterling
characters, making a parliament that was correct 
throughout; can you show me such a thing at this day?
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XXI.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
A few days after the arrival of the Moseleys at 
the lodge, John drove his sisters to the
little village of L -- , which at that time was
thronged with an unusual number of visiters.
It had among other of its fashionable arrangements 
for the accommodation of its guests,
one of those circulaters of good and evil, a
public library. Books are, in a great measure, the 
instruments of controlling the opinions of a nation 
like ours. They are an engine, alike powerful to save as to destroy.
It cannot be denied, that our libraries contain
as many volumes of the latter, as the former
description; for we rank amongst the latter,
that long catalogue of idle productions, which,
if they produce no other evil, lead to the misspending 
of time, our own perhaps included.
But we cannot refrain expressing our regret,
that such formidable weapons in the cause of
morality, should be suffered to be wielded by
any indifferent or mercenary dealer, who undoubtedly 
will consult rather the public tastes
than their private good; the evil may be remediless, 
yet we love to express our sentiments, though we should suggest nothing new
or even profitable. Into one of these haunts
of the idle then, John Moseley entered with a
lovely sister leaning on either arm. Books
were the entertainers of Jane, and instructors
of Emily. Sir Edward was fond of reading
of a certain sort -- that which required no
great depth of thought, or labour of research;
and like most others who are averse to contention, 
and disposed to be easily satisfied,
the baronet sometimes found he had harboured opinions 
on things not exactly reconcilable with 
the truth, or even with each
other. It is quite as dangerous to give up
your faculties to the guidance of the author
you are perusing, as it is unprofitable to be
captiously scrutinizing every syllable he may
happen to advance; and Sir Edward was, if
any thing, a little inclined to the dangerous
propensity. Unpleasant, Sir Edward Moseley never 
was. Lady Moseley very seldom
took a book in her hand: her opinions were
established to her own satisfaction on all 
important points, and on the minor ones, she
made it a rule to coincide with the popular
feeling. Jane had a mind more active than
her father, and more brilliant than her mother; 
and if she had not imbibed injurious
impressions from the unlicensed and indiscriminate reading 
she practised, it was more owing to the fortunate circumstance, that the
baronet's library contained nothing extremely
offensive to a pure taste, or dangerous to good
morals, than to any precaution of her parents against the 
deadly, the irretrievable injury, to be sustained from ungoverned liberty
in this respect to a female mind. On the
other hand, Mrs. Wilson had inculcated the
necessity of restraint, in selecting the books
for her perusal, so strenuously on her niece,
that what at first had been the effects of obedience and submission, had now settled into
taste and habit; and Emily seldom opened a
book, unless in search of information; or if
it were the indulgence of a less commendable
spirit, it was an indulgence chastened by a
taste and judgment that lessened the danger,
if it did not entirely remove it.
</para>
<para>
The room was filled with gentlemen and
ladies; and while John was exchanging his
greetings with several of the neighbouring
gentry of his acquaintance, his sisters were
running hastily over a catalogue of the books
kept for circulation, as an elderly lady, of 
foreign accent and dress, entered, and depositing
a couple of religious works on the counter,
inquired for the remainder of the set. The
peculiarity of her idiom, and nearness to the
sisters, caused them both to look up at the
moment, and to the surprise of Jane, her sister 
uttered a slight exclamation of pleasure.
The foreigner was attracted by the sound,
and after a moment's hesitation, respectfully
curtsied. Emily advancing, kindly offered
her hand, and the usual inquiries after each
other's welfare succeeded. To the questions
asked after the friend of the matron, Emily
learnt with some surprise, and no less satisfaction, 
that she resided in a retired cottage,
about five miles from L -- , where they had
been for the last six months, and where they 
expected to remain for some time, &quot;until she
could prevail on Mrs. Fitzgerald to return to
Spain, a thing, now there was peace, she did
not despair of.&quot; After asking leave to call
on them in their retreat, and exchanging good
wishes, the Spanish lady withdrew; and as
Jane had made her selection, was followed
immediately by John Moseley and his sisters.
Emily, in their walk home, acquainted her
brother, that the companion of their Bath incognita 
had been at the library, and that for
the first time she had learnt their young acquaintance 
was, or had been, married, and her
name. John listened to his sister with the interest 
which the beautiful Spaniard had excited at the time 
they first met; and laughingly told her, he could not 
believe their unknow friend had ever been a wife; to satisfy
this doubt, and to gratify a wish they both
had to renew their acquaintance with the foreigner, they agreed to drive to the cottage
the following morning, accompanied by Mrs.
Wilson, and Jane, if she would go; but the
next day was the one appointed by Egerton
for his arrival at L -- , and Jane, under a
pretence of writing letters, declined the ride.
She had carefully examined the papers since
his departure; had seen his name included
in the arrivals at London, and at a later day
had read an account of the review by the
commander in chief of the regiment to which
he belonged. He had never written to any
of her friends of his movements, but judging
from her own feelings, she did not in the least
doubt he would be as punctual as love could
make him. Mrs. Wilson listened to her niece's
account of the unexpected interview in the library 
with pleasure, and cheerfully promised
to accompany them in their morning's excursion, as 
she had both a wish to alleviate sorrow, 
and a desire to better understand the
character of this accidental acquaintance of
Emily's.
</para>
<para>
Mr. Benfield and the baronet had a long
conversation in relation to Denbigh's fortune
the morning after their arrival; and the old
man was loud in his expression of dissatisfaction at the 
youngster's pride. As the baronet, however, in the fulness of his affection
and simplicity, betrayed to his uncle his expectation of an union between Denbigh and
his daughter, Mr. Benfield became contented with this reward; one fit, he thought, for
any services; -- on the whole, &quot;it was best, as
he was to marry Emmy, he should sell out of
the army, and as there would be an election
soon, he would bring him into parliament 
 -- yes -- yes -- it did a man so much good to sit
one term in the parliament of this realm -- to
study human nature; all his own knowledge
in that way, was raised on the foundations
laid in the house.&quot; To this, Sir Edward cordially assented, 
and the old gentleman separated, happy in their arrangements to advance
the welfare of two beings they so sincerely
loved.
</para>
<para>
Although the care and wisdom of Mrs.
Wilson had prohibited the admission of any
romantic or enthusiastic expectations of happiness into the day-dreams of her charge;
yet the buoyancy of health, of hope, of youth,
of innocence, had elevated Emily to a height
of enjoyment, hitherto unknown to her usually placid and 
disciplined pleasures. Denbigh certainly mingled in most of her thoughts,
both of the past and the future, and she had
strode on the threshold of that fantastic edifice, 
in which Jane ordinarily resided. Emily
was in that situation, perhaps the most dangerous 
to a young female christian: her
heart, her affections, were given to a man, to
appearance, every way worthy of possessing
them, it is true; but she had admitted a rival 
in her love to her Maker; and to keep
those feelings distinct, to bend the passions in
due submission to the more powerful considerations of 
endless duty, of unbounded gratitude, is one 
of the most trying struggles of
christian fortitude. We are much more apt
to forget our God in prosperity, than adversity; -- 
the weakness of human nature drives us
to such assistance in distress, but vanity and
worldly mindedness, often induce us to imagine 
we control the happiness we only enjoy.
</para>
<para>
Sir Edward and Lady Moseley could see
nothing in the prospect of the future but lives
of peace and contentment for their children.
Clara was happily settled, and her sisters
were on the eve of making connexions with
men of family, condition and certain character; 
what more could be done for them? they
must, like other people, take their chances in
the lottery of life; they could only hope and
pray for their prosperity, and this they did
with great sincerity. Not so Mrs. Wilson; she
had guarded the invaluable charge entrusted
to her keeping with too much assiduity, too
keen an interest, too just a sense of the awful
responsibility she had undertaken, to desert
her post at the moment her watchfulness was
most required. By a temperate, but firm and
well-chosen conversation, she kept alive the
sense of her real condition in her niece, and
laboured hard to prevent the blandishments of
life, supplanting the lively hope of enjoying
another existence; she endeavoured, by her
pious example, her prayers, and her judicious
allusions, to keep the passion of love in the
breast of Emily, secondary to the more important object of her creation, and by the aid
of kind and Almighty Providence, her labours, though arduous, were crowned with
success.
</para>
<para>
As the family were seated round the table
after dinner, on the day of their walk to the
library, John Moseley, awaking from a reverie, 
exclaimed suddenly to his sister 
 -- 
   &quot;Which do you think the handsomest,
Emily, Grace Chatterton or Mrs. Fitzgerald?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily laughed aloud as she answered,
&quot;Grace, certainly; do you not think so, brother?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, sometimes; don't you think Grace
looks like her mother at times?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh no, she is the image of Chatterton.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;She is very like yourself, Emmy dear,&quot;
said Mr. Benfield, who was listening to their
conversation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Me, dear uncle; I have never heard it remarked before.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, yes, she is as much like you as she
can stare; I never saw as great a resemblance excepting 
between you and Lady Juliana -- Lady Juliana, Emmy, was a beauty
in her day; very like her uncle, old Admiral
Griffin -- you can't remember the admiral 
 -- he lost an eye in a battle with the Dutch, and
part of his cheek in a frigate when a young
man fighting the Dons. Oh, he was a pleasant old gentleman; many a guinea has he
given me when I was a boy at school.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And he looked like Grace Chatterton, uncle, 
did he?&quot; cried John with a smile.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, sir, he did not; who said he looked
like Grace Chatterton, jackanapes?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, I thought you made it out, sir; but
perhaps it was the description that deceived
me -- his eye and cheek, uncle.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Did Lord Gosford leave children, uncle?&quot; 
inquired Emily, and throwing a look
of reproach at John.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, Emmy dear; his only child, a son,
died at school; I shall never forget the grief
of poor Lady Juliana. She postponed a visit
to Bath three weeks on account of it. A
gentleman who was paying his addresses to
her at the time, offered then, and was refused
-- indeed, her self-denial raised such an admiration 
of her in the men, that immediately
after the death of young Lord Dayton, no
less than seven gentlemen offered and were
refused in one week. I heard Lady Juliana
say, that what between lawyers and suitors,
she had not a moment's peace,&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Lawyers!&quot; cried Sir Edward, &quot;what
had she to do with lawyers?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, Sir Edward, six thousand a year
fell to her by the death of her nephew; and
there were trustees and deeds to be made out
-- poor young woman, she was so affected,
Emmy, I don't think she went out for a week
-- all the time at home reading papers, and
attending to her important concerns. Oh!
she was a woman of taste; her mourning, and
liveries, and new carriage, were more admired 
than those of any one about the court. Yes,
yes, the title is extinct; I know of none of the
name now. The Earl did not survive his
loss but six years, and the countess died 
broken-hearted, about a twelvemonth before
him.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Lady Juliana, uncle,&quot; inquired
John, &quot;what became of her, did she marry?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The old man helped himself to a glass of
wine, and looked over his shoulder to see if
Peter was at hand. Peter, who had been
originally butler, had made it a condition of
his preferment, that whenever there was company, 
he should be allowed to preside at the
sideboard, was now at his station. Mr. Benfield 
seeing his old friend near him, ventured
to talk on a subject he seldom trusted himself with in company.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, yes -- yes -- she did marry, it's true,
although she did tell me she intended to
die a maid; but -- hem -- I suppose -- hem -- it
was compassion for the old viscount, who
often said he could not live without her; and
then it gave her the power of doing so much
good, a jointure of five thousand a year added to her own 
income: yet -- hem -- I do
confess I did not think she would have chosen such an old 
and infirm man -- but -- Peter give me a glass of claret.&quot; Peter handed
the claret, and the old man proceeded. 
 -- &quot;They say he was very cross to her, and
that, no doubt, must have made her unhappy, she was so very tender-hearted.&quot;
</para>
<para>
How much longer the old gentleman would
have continued in this strain, it is impossible
to say; but he was interrupted by the opening of the parlour
 door, and the sudden appearance on its threshold of Denbigh. 
Every countenance glowed with pleasure at this
unexpected return to them of their favourite;
and but for the prudent caution in Mrs. Wilson, 
of handing a glass of water to her niece,
the surprise might have proved too much for
her. His salutations were returned by the
different members of the family, with a cordiality 
that must have told him how much he
was valued by all its branches; and after
briefly informing them that his review was
over, and that he had thrown himself into a
chaise and travelled post until he had rejoined 
them, he took his seat by Mr. Benfield,
who received him with a marked preference,
exceeding what he had shown to any man
who had ever entered his doors, Lord Gosford himself not excepted. Peter removed
from his station behind his master's chair to
one where he could face the new comer; and
after wiping his eyes until they filled so rapidly 
with water, that at last he was noticed
by the delighted John to put on the identical
goggles which his care had provided for Denbigh in 
his illness. His laugh drew the attention of 
the rest to the honest steward, and
when Denbigh was told this was Mr. Benfield's 
ambassador to the Hall on his account,
he rose from his chair, and taking the old
man by the hand, kindly thanked him for his
thoughtful consideration for his weak eyes.
</para>
<para>
Peter took the offered hand in both his
own, and after making one or two unsuccessful 
efforts to speak, he uttered, &quot;thank
you, thank you, may Heaven bless you,&quot; and
burst into tears. This stopt the laugh, and
John followed the steward from the room,
while his master exclaimed, wiping his eyes,
&quot;kind and condescending; just such another
as my old friend, the Earl of Gosford.&quot;
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XXII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
At the appointed hour, the carriage of
Mrs. Wilson was ready to convey herself
and niece to the cottage of Mrs. Fitzgerald.
John was left behind, under the pretence of
keeping Denbigh company in his morning
avocations, but really because Mrs. Wilson
doubted the propriety of his becoming a visiting 
acquaintance at a house, tenanted as the
cottage was represented to be. John was too
fond of his friend to make any serious objections, 
and was satisfied for the present, by
sending his compliments, and requesting his
sister to ask permission for him to call in one
of his early morning excursions, in order to
pay his personal respects.
</para>
<para>
They found the cottage a beautiful and
genteel, though very small and retired dwelling, almost hid by the trees and shrubs
which surrounded it, and its mistress on its
little piazza, expecting the arrival of Emily.
Mrs. Fitzgerald was a Spaniard under twenty, of 
a melancholy, yet highly interesting
countenance; her manners were soft and retiring, 
but evidently bore the impression of
good company, if not of high life. She was
extremely pleased with this renewal of attention 
on the part of Emily, and expressed her
gratitude to both ladies for this kindness in
seeking her out in her solitude. She presented 
her more matronly companion to them, by
the name of Donna Lorenza; and as nothing
but good feelings prevailed, and useless ceremony 
was banished, the little party were soon
on terms of friendly intercourse. The young
widow (for such her dress indicated her to
be) did the honours of her house with graceful 
ease, and conducted her visiters into her
little grounds, which, together with the cottage, gave 
evident proofs of the taste and elegance of its occupant. The establishment
she supported she represented as very small;
two women and an aged man servant, with
occasionally a labourer for her garden and
shrubbery. They never visited; it was a
resolution she had made on fixing her residence, but if Mrs. Wilson and Miss Moseley
would forgive her rudeness in not returning
their call, nothing would give her more satisfaction than a frequent renewal of their
visits. Mrs. Wilson took so deep an interest 
in the misfortunes of so young a female,
and was so much pleased with the modest
resignation of her manner, that it required
little persuasion on the part of the recluse
to obtain a promise of repeating her visit
soon. Emily mentioned the request of John,
and Mrs. Fitzgerald received it with a mournful 
smile, as she replied that Mr. Moseley
had laid her under such an obligation in
their first interview, she could not deny
herself the pleasure of again thanking him
for it; but she must be excused if she desired 
they would limit their attendants to
him, as there was but one gentleman in England 
whose visits she admitted, and it was
seldom indeed he called; he had seen her
but once since she had resided in Norfolk.
</para>
<para>
After giving a promise not to suffer any
one else to accompany them, and promising
an early call again, our ladies returned to
Benfield Lodge in season to dress for dinner.
On entering the drawing-room, they found
the elegant person of Colonel Egerton leaning 
on the back of the chair of Jane. He
had arrived during their absence, and sought
out immediately the baronet's family; his
reception, if not as warm as that given to
Denbigh, was cordial from all but the master
of the house; and even he was in such
spirits by the company around him, and the
prospects of Emily's marriage, (which he
considered as settled,) that he forced himself
to an appearance of good will he did not feel.
Colonel Egerton was either deceived by his
manner, or too much a man of the world to
discover his suspicion, and every thing in
consequence was very harmoniously, if not
sincerely, conducted between them.
</para>
<para>
Lady Moseley was completely happy: if
she had the least doubts before, as to the intentions 
of Egerton, they were now removed.
His journey to that unfashionable wateringplace, was 
owing to his passion; and however she might at times have doubted as to Sir
Edgar's heir, Denbigh she thought a man
of too little consequence in the world, to
make it possible he would neglect to profit by
his situation in the family of Sir Edward
Moseley. She was satisfied with both connexions. 
Mr. Benfield had told her, General
Sir Frederic Denbigh was nearly allied to
the Duke of Derwent, and Denbigh had said
the general was his grandfather. Wealth,
she knew Emily would possess from both
her uncle and aunt; and the services of the
gentleman had their due weight upon the
feelings of the affectionate mother. The
greatest care of her maternal anxiety was removed, 
and she looked forward to the peaceful enjoyment 
of the remnant of her days in
the bosom of her descendants. John, the
heir to a baronetcy, and 15,000 pounds a
year, might suit himself; and Grace Chatterton 
she thought would be likely to prove the
future Lady Moseley. Sir Edward, without
entering so deeply into anticipation of the
future as his lady, experienced an equal degree of contentment; and it would have been
a difficult task to have discovered in the
island a roof, under which there resided at
the moment more happy countenances than
at Benfield Lodge; for as its master had insisted 
on Denbigh's becoming an inmate, he
was obliged to extend his hospitality in an
equal degree to Colonel Egerton: indeed,
the subject had been fully canvassed between
him and Peter the morning of his arrival, and
was near being decided against his admission,
when the steward, who had picked up all the
incidents of the arbour scene from the servants, (and of 
course with many exaggerations,) mentioned to his master 
that the colonel was very active in his assistance, and
that he even contrived to bring water to revive 
Miss Emmy a great distance in the hat
of Captain Jarvis, which was full of holes,
Mr. John having blown it off the head of the
captain without hurting a hair, in firing at a
woodcock. This molified the master a little,
and he agreed to suspend his decision for further observation. 
At dinner, the colonel happening to admire the really handsome face of
Lord Gosford, as delineated by Sir Joshua
Reynolds, and which graced the dining room
of Benfield Lodge, its master, in a moment of
unusual kindness, gave the invitation; it was
politely accepted, and the colonel at once domesticated.
</para>
<para>
The face of John Moseley alone, at times,
exhibited evidences of care and thought, and
at such moments, it might be a subject of
doubt, whether he thought the most of Grace
Chatterton or her mother: if the latter, the
former was sure to lose ground in his estimation, 
a serious misfortune to John, not to be
able to love Grace without alloy. His letters from 
her brother, mentioned his being
still at Denbigh castle, in Westmoreland, the
seat of his friend the Duke of Derwent; and
John thought one or two of his encomiums
on Lady Harriet Denbigh, the sister of his
grace, augured that the unkindness of Emily
might in time be forgotten. The dowager
and her daughters were at the seat of a maiden 
aunt in Yorkshire, where, as John knew
no male animal was allowed admittance, he
was tolerably easy at the disposition of things.
Nothing but legacy-hunting, he knew, would
induce the dowager to submit to such a banishment 
from the other sex; but that was
so preferable to husband-hunting, he was satisfied. 
&quot;I wish,&quot; said John mentally, as
he finished the perusal of his letter, &quot;mother
Chatterton would get married herself, and
she might let Kate and Grace manage for
themselves: Kate would do very well, I dare
say, and how would Grace make out.&quot; John
sighed, and whistled for Dido and Rover.
</para>
<para>
In the manners of Colonel Egerton there
was the same general disposition to please,
and the same unremitted attention to the
wishes and amusements of Jane; they had
renewed their poetical investigations, and
Jane eagerly encouraged a taste which afforded 
her delicacy some little colouring for the
indulgence of an association different from the
real truth, and which in her estimation was
necessary to her happiness. Mrs. Wilson
thought the distance between the two suitors
for the favour of her nieces, was if any thing
increased by their short separation, and particularly 
noticed on the part of the colonel an
aversion to Denbigh that at times painfully
alarmed her, by exciting apprehensions for
the future happiness of the precious treasure
she had prepared herself to yield to his solicitations, 
whenever properly proffered. In the
intercourse between Emily and her preserver,
as there was nothing to condemn, so there
was much to admire. The attentions of
Denbigh were pointed, although less exclusive 
than those of the colonel; and the aunt
was pleased to observe, that if the manners
of Egerton had more of the gloss of life,
those of Denbigh were certainly distinguished by 
a more finished delicacy and propriety:
the one appeared the influence of custom and
association, with a tincture of artifice; the
other, benevolence, with a just perception of
what was due to others, and with an air of
sincerity when speaking of sentiments and
principles, that was particularly pleasing to
the watchful widow: at times, however, she
could not but observe an air of restraint, if
not of awkwardness, about him, that was a
little surprising. It was most observable in
mixed society, and once or twice her imagination 
pictured his sensations into something
like alarm. These unpleasant interruptions
to her admiration of the manners and appearance 
of Denbigh, were soon forgotten in her
just appreciation of the more solid parts of his
character -- these appeared literally unexceptionable; 
and when momentary uneasiness
would steal over her, the remembrance of the
opinion of Dr. Ives, his behaviour with Jarvis, 
his charity, and chiefly his self-devotion
to her niece, would not fail to drive the 
disagreeable thoughts from her mind. Emily
herself moved about, the image of joy and innocence -- 
if Denbigh was near her, she was
happy; if absent, she suffered no uneasiness;
her feelings were so ardent, and yet so pure,
that jealousy had no admission: perhaps no
circumstances existed to excite this neverfailing 
attendant of the passion; but as the
heart of Emily was more enchained than her
imagination, her affections were not of the
restless nature of ordinary attachments, though
more dangerous to her peace of mind in the
event of an unfortunate issue. With Denbigh she 
never walked or rode alone. He
had never made the request, and her delicacy
would have shrunk from such an open manifestation 
of her preference; but he read to
her and her aunt; he accompanied them in
their little excursions; and once or twice
John noticed that she took the offered hand
of Denbigh to assist her over any little impediment 
in their course, instead of her usual
unobtrusive custom of taking his arm on such
occasions. &quot;Well, Miss Emily,&quot; thought
John, &quot;you appear to have chosen another
favourite,&quot; on her doing this three times in
succession in one of their walks; &quot;how strange
it is, women will quit their natural friends for
a face they have hardly seen.&quot; John forgot
his own -- &quot;there is no danger, dear Grace,&quot;
when his sister was almost dead with apprehension. 
But John loved Emily too well to
witness her preference to another with satisfaction, 
even though Denbigh was the favourite, a feeling which soon wore away by
custom and reflection. Mr. Benfield had
taken it into his head, that if the wedding of
Emily could be solemnised while the family
was at the lodge, it would render him the
happiest of men, and how to compass this
object, was the occupation of a whole morning's 
contemplation. Happily for Emily's
blushes, the old gentleman harboured the most
fastidious notions of female delicacy, and
never in conversation made the most distant
allusion to the expected connexion. He,
therefore, in conformity with these feelings,
could do nothing openly; all would be the
effect of management, and as he thought Peter 
one of the best contrivers in the world, to
his ingenuity he determined to refer the arrangement. 
The bell rang -- &quot;send Johnson
to me, David;&quot; in a few minutes the drab
coat and blue yarn stockings entered his
dressing room with the body of Mr. Peter
Johnson snugly cased within them. &quot;Peter,&quot;
commenced Mr. Benfield, pointing kindly to
a chair, which the steward respectfully declined, 
&quot;I suppose you know that Mr. Denbigh, the grandson of General Denbigh, who
was in parliament with me, is about to marry
my little Emmy.&quot; Peter smiled as he bowed
his assent. &quot;Now, Peter, a wedding would
of all things make me most happy; that is,
to have it here in the lodge: it would remind
me so much of the marriage of Lord Gosford,
and the bridemaids -- I wish your opinion
how to bring it about before they leave here:
Sir Edward and Anne decline interfering,
and Mrs. Wilson I am afraid to speak to on
the subject.&quot; Peter was not a little alarmed
by this sudden requisition on his inventive
faculties, especially as a lady was in the case;
but as he prided himself on serving his master, 
and loved the hilarity of a wedding in his
heart, he cogitated for some time in silence,
when having thought a preliminary question
or two necessary, he broke it with saying,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Every thing, I suppose, master, is settled
between the young people?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Every thing, I take it, Peter.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Sir Edward and my lady?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Willing; perfectly willing.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Madam Wilson, sir.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Willing, Peter, willing.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Mr. John and Miss Jane?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;All willing; the whole family willing, to
the best of my belief.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There is the Rev. Mr. Ives and Mrs.
Ives, master.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;They wish it, I know; don't you think
they wish others as happy as themselves, Peter?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No doubt they do, master: well then, as
every body is willing, and the young people
agreeable, the only thing to be done, sir, is -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Is what, Peter?&quot; exclaimed his impatient master, observing him to hesitate.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, sit, to send for the priest, I take
it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pshaw! Peter Johnson, I know that myself,&quot; replied 
the dissatisfied old man; &quot;cannot you help me to a better plan?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, master,&quot; said Peter, &quot;I would have
done as well for Miss Emmy and your honour, as I would have done for myself: now.
sir, when I courted Patty Steele, your honour, in the year of our Lord one thousand
seven hundred and sixty-five, I should have
been married but for one difficulty, which
your honour says is removed in the case of
Miss Emmy.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;What was that, Peter,&quot; asked his master
in a tender tone.
</para>
<para>
&quot;She was'nt willing, sir.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Very well, poor Peter,&quot; replied Mr.
Benfield mildly, you may go; and the steward, bowing low, withdrew. The similarity
of their fortunes in love, was a strong link in
the sympathies which bound the master and
man together, and the former never failed to
be softened by an allusion to Patty; his want
of tact, on the present occasion, after much
reflection, he attributed to his never sitting
in parliament.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XXIII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson and Emily, in the fortnight
they had been at Benfield Lodge, had paid
frequent and long visits to the cottage; and
each succeeding interview left a more favourable 
impression of the character of its
mistress, and a greater certainty that she was
unfortunate; she, however, alluded very slightly 
to her situation or former life; she was a
protestant, to the great surprise of Mrs.
Wilson; and one that misery had made
nearly acquainted with the religion she professed. 
Their conversations chiefly turned
on the customs of her own, as contrasted
with those of her adopted country, or in a
pleasant exchange of opinions, which the
ladies possessed in complete unison. One
morning John had accompanied them and
been admitted; Mrs. Fitzgerald received him
with the frankness of an old acquaintance,
though with the reserve of a Spanish lady.
His visits were permitted under the direction
of his aunt, but no other of the gentlemen were included amongst her guests.
Mrs. Wilson had casually mentioned, in the
absence of her niece, the interposition of
Denbigh between her and death; and Mrs.
Fitzgerald was pleased at the noble conduct
of the gentleman so much as to express a desire 
to see him; but the impressions of the
moment appeared to have died away, as
nothing more was said by either lady on the
subject, and was apparently forgotten. Mrs.
Fitzgerald was found one morning, weeping
over a letter she held in her hand, and the
Donna Lorenza endeavouring to console her.
The situation of this latter lady was somewhat 
doubtful; she appeared neither wholly
a friend or a menial; in the manners of the
two there was a striking difference; although
the Donna was not vulgar, she was far from
the polish of her more juvenile friend, and
Mrs. Wilson considered her in a station between a 
housekeeper and a companion. After hoping that no unpleasant intelligence
occasioned the distress they witnessed, the
ladies were about delicately to take their
leave, but Mrs. Fitzgerald intreated them to
remain.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your kind attention to me, dear madam,
and the goodness of Miss Moseley, give you
a claim to know more of the unfortunate
being your sympathy has greatly assisted to
attain her peace of mind; this letter is from
the gentleman you have heard me speak of,
as once visiting me, and though it has struck
me with an unusual force, it contains no more
than I expected to hear, perhaps no more
than I deserve to hear.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hope your friend has not been unnecessarily harsh; 
severity is not the best way, always, of effecting repentance, 
and I feel certain that you, my young friend, can have been
guilty of no offence that does not rather require 
gentle than stern reproof,&quot; said Mrs.
Wilson.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I thank you, dear madam, for your indulgent 
opinion of me, but although I have
suffered much, I am free to confess, it is a
merited punishment; you are, however, mistaken as 
to the source of my present sorrow;
Lord Pendennyss is the cause of grief, I believe, 
to no one, much less to me.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Lord Pendennyss!&quot; exclaimed Emily,
in surprise, unconsciously looking at her aunt.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pendennyss!&quot; reiterated Mrs. Wilson,
with animation, &quot;and is he your friend
too?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, madam; to his lordship I owe every
thing -- honour -- comfort -- religion -- and even
life itself.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson's cheek glowed with an unusual colour, 
at this discovery of another act
of benevolence and virtue, in the young nobleman 
whose character she had so long
admired, and whose person she had in vain
wished to meet.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You know the earl then,&quot; inquired Mrs.
Fitzgerald.
</para>
<para>
&quot;By reputation, only, my dear,&quot; said Mrs.
Wilson; &quot;but that is enough to convince me
a friend of his must be a worthy character,
if any thing were wanting to make us your
friends.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The conversation was continued for some
time, and Mrs. Fitzgerald saying she did not
feel equal just then to the undertaking, would
the next day, if they would honour her with
another call, make them acquainted with the
incidents of her life, and the reasons she had
for speaking in such terms of Lord Pendennyss. The 
promise to see her then, was cheerfully made by Mrs. 
Wilson, and her confidence accepted; not from a desire to gratify
an idle curiosity, but a belief that it was necessary 
to probe a wound to cure it; and a correct
opinion, that herself would be a better adviser for a young and lovely woman, than
even Pendennyss; for the Donna Lorenza
she could hardly consider in a capacity to
offer her advice, much less dictation. They
then took their leave, and Emily, during their
ride, broke the silence with exclaiming,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Wherever we hear of Lord Pendennyss,
aunt, we hear of him favourably.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;A certain sign, my dear, he is deserving
of it; there is hardly any man who has not
his enemies, and those are seldom just; but
we have met with none of the earl's yet.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Fifty thousand a year will make many
friends,&quot; observed Emily, with a smile.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Doubtless, my love, or as many enemies; 
but honour, life, and religion, my
child, are debts not owing to money, in this
country, at least.&quot;
</para>
<para>
To this remark Emily assented, and after
expressing her own admiration of the character 
of the young nobleman, dropped into
a reverie; -- how many of his virtues she
identified with the person of Mr. Denbigh,
it is not, just now, our task to enumerate;
but judges of human nature may easily determine -- 
and that without having sat in the
parliament of this realm.
</para>
<para>
The same morning this conversation occurred at the cottage, Mr. and Mrs. Jarvis,
with their daughters, made their unexpected
appearance at L -- . The arrival of a postchaise and four, with a gig, was an event
soon circulated through the little village, and
the names of its owners reached the lodge
just as Jane had allowed herself to be persuaded 
by the colonel to take her first walk
with him unaccompanied by a third person 
 -- walking is much more propitious to declarations 
than riding; whether it was premeditated on 
the part of the colonel or not, or
whether he was afraid that Mrs. Jarvis, or
some one else, would interfere, he availed
himself of his opportunity, and had hardly
got out of hearing of her brother and Denbigh, 
before he made Jane an explicit offer
of his hand; the surprise was so great, that
some time elapsed before the distressed girl
could reply; this she, however, at length did,
but incoherently; she referred him to her parents, 
as arbiters of her fate, well knowing
that her wishes had long been those of her
father and mother; with this the colonel was
obliged to be satisfied for the present. But
their walk had not ended, before he gradually
drew from the confiding girl, an acknowledgment that should her parents decline his
offer, she would be very little less miserable
than himself; indeed, the most tenacious
lover might have been content with the
proofs of regard that Jane, unused to control
her feelings, allowed herself to manifest on
this occasion. Egerton was in raptures; a
life devoted to her, would never half repay
her condescension; and as their confidence
increased with their walk, Jane re-entered
the lodge with a degree of happiness in her
heart, she had never before experienced; the
much dreaded declaration -- her own distressing 
acknowledgments, were made, and
nothing further remained but to live -- to be
happy. She flew into the arms of her
mother, and hiding her blushes in her bosom,
acquainted her with the colonel's offer and
her own wishes. Lady Moseley, who was
prepared for such a communication, and had
rather wondered at its tardiness, kissed her
daughter affectionately, as she promised to
speak to her father for his approbation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But,&quot; she added, with a degree of formality and caution, 
which had better preceded than have followed the courtship, &quot;we
must make the usual inquiries, my child, into
the fitness of Colonel Egerton, as a husband
for our daughter; and once assured of that,
you have nothing to fear.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The Baronet was requested to grant an
audience to Colonel Egerton, who now appeared 
as determined to expedite things, as
he had been dilatory before. On meeting
Sir Edward, he made known his pretensions
and hopes. The father, who had been previously 
notified by his wife, of what was
forthcoming, gave a general answer, similar
to her speech to their daughter, and the colonel 
bowed in acquiescence.
</para>
<para>
In the evening, the Jarvis family favoured
the inhabitants of the lodge with a visit, and
Mrs. Wilson was struck with the singularity
of their reception of the colonel -- Miss Jarvis, especially, was rude to both him and
Jane, and it struck all who witnessed it, as
a burst of jealous feeling for disappointed
hopes; but to no one, excepting Mrs. Wilson,
did it occur, that the conduct of the gentleman could 
be at all implicated in the transaction. Mr. Benfield was happy to see again
under his roof, the best of the trio of Jarvises
he had known, and something like sociability
prevailed in the party. There was to be a
ball, Miss Jarvis remarked, at L -- , on the
following day, which would help to enliven
the scene a little, especially as there were a
couple of frigates lying at anchor, a few
miles off, and the officers were expected to
join the party; this intelligence had but little
effect on the ladies of the Moseley family,
yet as their uncle desired that, if invited,
they would go, out of respect to his neighbours, 
they cheerfully assented. During the
evening, Mrs. Wilson observed Egerton in
familiar conversation with Miss Jarvis, and
as she had been been notified of his situation
with respect to Jane, she determined to watch
narrowly into the causes of so singular a
change of deportment in the young lady.
Mrs. Jarvis retained her respect for the colonel 
in full force, and called out to him
across the room a few minutes before she
departed 
 -- 
   &quot;Well, colonel, I am happy to tell you
I have heard very lately from your uncle, Sir
Edgar.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Indeed, madam,&quot; replied the colonel,
starting, &quot;he was well, I hope.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Very well, the day before yesterday; his
neighbour, old Mr. Holt, is a lodger in the
same house with us at L -- , and as I
thought you would like to hear, I made particular 
inquiries about the baronet&quot; -- the
word baronet was pronounced with emphasis,
and a look of triumph, as if it would say,
you see we have baronets as well as you; as
no answer was made by Egerton, excepting
an acknowledging bow -- the merchant and
his family departed.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well, John,&quot; cried Emily, with a smile,
&quot;we have heard more good, to day, of our
trusty and well-beloved cousin, the Earl of
Pendennyss.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Indeed,&quot; exclaimed her brother; &quot;you
must keep Emily for his lordship, positively,
aunt, she is almost as great an admirer of him
as yourself.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I apprehend it is necessary she should be
quite as much so, to become his wife,&quot; said
Mrs. Wilson.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Really,&quot; said Emily, more gravely, &quot;if
all one hears of him be true, or half even,
it would be no difficult task to admire him.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Denbigh was standing leaning on the
back of a chair, in a situation where he
could view the animated countenance of
Emily as she spoke, and Mrs. Wilson noticed
an uneasiness and changing of colour in him,
that appeared uncommon from so trifling an
excitement. Is it possible, she thought, Denbigh 
can harbour so mean a passion as envy;
he walked away, as if unwilling to hear
more, and appeared much engrossed with his
own reflections for the remainder of the
evening; there were moments of doubting,
which crossed the mind of Mrs. Wilson,
with a keenness of apprehension proportionate to her 
deep interest in Emily, with respect to 
certain traits in the character of
Denbigh; and this, what she thought a
display of unworthy feeling, was one of
them. In the course of the evening, the
cards for the expected ball arrived and were
accepted; as this new arrangement for the
morrow interfered with their intended vist to
Mrs. Fitzgerald, a servant was sent with a
note of explanation in the morning, and a
request that on the following day the promised 
communication would be made; to
this the recluse assented; and Emily
prepared for the ball with a recollection of
melancholy pleasure, of the consequences
which grew out of the last one she attended;
melancholy at the fate of Digby, and pleasure
 at the principles manifested by Denbigh
on the occasion. The latter, however, with
a smile, excused himself from the party,
telling Emily he was so awkward, that he
feared some unpleasant consequences to himself or 
his friends would arise from his inadvertencies, 
did he venture again with her into such an assembly.
</para>
<para>
Emily sighed gently, as she entered the
carriage of her aunt early in the afternoon,
leaving Denbigh in the door of the lodge,
and Egerton absent on the execution of some
business; the former to amuse himself as
he would until the following morning, and
the latter to join them in the dance in the
evening.
</para>
<para>
The arrangement included an excursion
on the water, attended by the bands from the
frigates, a collation, and in the evening a
ball. One of the vessels was commanded
by a Lord Henry Stapleton, a fine young
man, who, struck with the beauty and appearance of 
the sisters, sought an introduction with the baronet's family, and engaged
the hand of Emily for the first dance. His
frank and gentlemanlike deportment was
pleasing to his new acquaintances; the more
so, as it was peculiarly suited to their 
situation at the moment. Mrs. Wilson was in
unusual spirits, and maintained an animated
conversation with the noble sailor, in the
course of which, he spoke of his cruising on
the coast of Spain, and by accident mentioned 
his having carried out to that country,
upon one occasion, Lord Pendennyss; this
was common ground between them, and Lord
Henry was as enthusiastic in his praises of
the earl, as Mrs. Wilson's partiality could
hope for. He also knew Colonel Egerton
slightly, and expressed his pleasure, in polite
terms, when they met in the evening in the
ball-room, at being able to renew his acquaintance. 
The evening passed off as such
evenings generally do -- in gayety -- listlessness -- 
dancing -- gaping, and heart-burnings,
according to the dispositions and good or ill
fortune of the several individuals who compose 
the assembly. Mrs. Wilson, while her
nieces were dancing, moved her seat to be
near a window, and found herself in the
vicinity of two elderly gentleman, who were
commenting on the company; after making
several common-place remarks, one of them
inquired of the other -- &quot;Who is that 
military gentleman amongst the naval beaux,
Holt?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That is the hopeful nephew of my friend
and neighbour, Sir Edgar Egerton; he is
here dancing and mis-spending his time and
money, when I know Sir Edgar gave him a
thousand pounds six months ago, on express
condition, he should not leave the regiment
or take a card in his hand for a twelvemonth.&quot; 
&quot;He plays, then?&quot; &quot;Sadly; he is,
on the whole, a bad young man.&quot; As they
changed their topic, Mrs. Wilson joined her
sister, dreadfully shocked at this intimation
of the vices of a man so near an alliance
with her brother's child; she was thankful
it was not too late to avert part of the evil,
and determined to acquaint Sir Edward, at
once, with what she had heard, in order that
an investigation might establish the colonel's
innocence or guilt.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XXV.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
They returned to the lodge at an early
hour, and Mrs. Wilson, after meditating upon
the course she ought to take, resolved to
have a conversation with her brother that
evening after supper; accordingly, as they
were among the last to retire, she mentioned
her wish to detain him, and when left by
themselves, the baronet taking his seat by her
on a sofa, she commenced as follows, willing
to avert her unpleasant information until the
last moment.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I wished to say something to you, brother, 
relating to my charge, and other matters;
you have, no doubt, observed the attentions of
Mr. Denbigh to Emily?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Certainly, sister, and with great pleasure;
you must not suppose I wish to interfere with
the authority I have so freely relinquished to
you, Charlotte, when I inquire if Emily favours 
his views, or not?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Neither Emily or myself, my dear brother, wish ever to question your right, not
only to inquire into, but control the conduct
of your child; -- she is yours, Edward, by a
tie nothing can break, and we both love you
too much to wish it. There is nothing you
may be more certain of, than that, without
the approbation of her parents, Emily would
accept of no offer, however splendid or agreeable 
to her own wishes.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nay, sister, I would not wish unduly
to influence my child in an affair of so much
importance to herself; but my interest in
Denbigh is little short of what I feel for my
daughter.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I trust,&quot; continued Mrs. Wilson, &quot;Emily
is too deeply impressed with her duty to
forget the impressive mandate, 'to honour
her father and mother;' yes, Sir Edward,
I am mistaken if she would not relinquish
the dearest object of her affections, at your
request; and at the same time, I am persuaded she would, under no circumstances,
approach the alter with a man she did not
both love and esteem.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The baronet did not appear exactly to understand 
his sister's distinction, as he observed,
&quot;I am not sure I rightly comprehend the 
difference you make, Charlotte.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Only, brother, that she would feel, a
promise made at the altar to love a man she
felt averse to, or honour one she could not
esteem, as a breach of a duty, paramount to
all earthly ones,&quot; replied his sister; &quot;but
to answer your question -- Denbigh has never
offered, and when he does, I do not think he
will be refused.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Refused!&quot; cried the baronet, &quot;I 
sincerely hope not; I wish, with all my heart,
they were married already.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Emily is very young,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson,
&quot;and need not hurry; I was in hopes she
would remain single a few years longer.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Well,&quot; said the baronet, &quot;you and Lady
Moseley, sister, have different notions on this
subject of marrying the girls.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson replied, with a good-humoured
smile, &quot;you have made Anne so good a husband, 
baronet, she forgets there are any bad
ones in the world; my greatest anxiety is,
that the husband of my niece may be a
christian; indeed, I know not how I can
reconcile it to my conscience, as a christian,
myself, to omit this important qualification.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am sure, Charlotte, both Denbigh and
Egerton appear to have a great respect for
religion; they are punctual at church, and
very attentive to the service;&quot; Mrs. Wilson
smiled, as he proceeded, &quot;but religion may
come after marriage, you know.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, brother, and I know it may not
come at all; no really pious woman can be
happy, without her husband is in what she
deems the road to future happiness himself;
and it is idle -- it is worse -- it is almost impious
to marry with a view to reform a husband;
indeed, she greatly endangers her own safety
thereby, for few of us, I believe, but what
find the temptation to err as much as we can
contend with, without calling in the aid of
example against us, in an object we love;
indeed, it appears to me, the life of such a
woman must be a struggle between conflicting duties.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why,&quot; said the baronet, &quot;if your plan
were generally adopted, I am afraid it would
give a deadly blow to matrimony.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have nothing to do with generals, brother, 
I am acting for individual happiness,
and discharging individual duties; at the same
time I cannot agree with you in its effects on
the community. I think no man who dispassionately 
examines the subject, will be other
than a christian; and rather than remain
bachelors, they would take even that trouble;
if the strife in our sex was less for a husband, 
wives would increase in value.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But how is it, Charlotte,&quot; said the baronet 
pleasantly, &quot;your sex do not use your
power and reform the age?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The work of reformation, Sir Edward,&quot;
replied his sister, gravely, &quot;is an arduous
one indeed, and I despair of seeing it general,
in my day; but much, very much, might be
done towards it, if those who have the
guidance of youth, would take that trouble
with their pupils, that good faith requires of
them, to discharge the lesser duties of life.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Women ought to marry,&quot; observed the
baronet, musing.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Marriage is certainly the natural and
most desirable state for a woman,&quot; rejoined
his sister; &quot;but how few are there who,
having entered it, know how to discharge its
duties; more particularly those of a mother.
On the subject of marrying our daughters, for
instance, instead of qualifying them to make
a proper choice, they are generally left to
pick up such principles and opinions as they
may come at, as it were by chance; it is
true, if the parent be a christian in name,
certain of the externals of religion are observed; 
but what are these, if not enforced by
a consistent example in the instructor?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Useful precepts are seldom lost, I believe, 
sister,&quot; said Sir Edward, with confidence.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Always useful, my dear brother; but
young people are more observant than we are
apt to imagine, and are wonderfully ingenious 
in devising excuses to themselves for their
conduct. I have often heard it offered as an
excuse, that father or mother knew it, or
perhaps did it, and therefore it could not be
wrong; association is all-important to a
child.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I believe no family of consequence admits of 
improper associates, within my knowledge,&quot; said the baronet.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson smiled as she answered, &quot;I am
sure I hope not, Edward; but are the qualifications 
we require in companions for our
daughters, always such as are most reconcilable with 
our good sense or our consciences; a single communication
 with an objectionable character is a precedent, if known
and unobserved, which will be offered to excuse 
acquaintances with worse ones; with
the other sex especially, their acquaintance
should be very guarded and select.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You would make many old maids, sister,&quot; 
cried Sir Edward, with a laugh.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I doubt it greatly, brother; it would rather 
bring female society in demand. I often
regret that selfishness, cupidity, and a kind of
strife, which prevails in our sex, on the road
to matrimony, have brought celibacy into
disrepute; for my part, I never see an old
maid, but I am willing to think she is so from
choice or principle, and although not in her
proper place serviceable, by keeping alive
feelings necessary to exist, that marriages
may not become curses, instead of blessings.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;A kind of Eddystone, to prevent matrimonial 
shipwrecks,&quot; said the brother gayly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Their lot may be solitary, baronet, and
in some measure cheerless, but infinitely preferable to 
a marriage that may lead themselves astray from their duties, or give birth
to a family, which are to be turned on the
world -- without any religion but form -- without 
any morals but truisms -- or without even
a conscience which has not been seared by
indulgence. I hope that Anne, in the performance 
of her indulgent system, will have
no cause to regret its failure.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Clara chose for herself, and has done
well, Charlotte; and so I doubt not will
Jane and Emily; and I confess I think it is
their right.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is true,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, &quot;Clara
has done well, though under circumstances of
but little risk; she might have jumped into
your fishpond and escaped with life, but the
chances are she would drown; nor do I dispute their right to choose for themselves;
but I say their rights extend to their requiring
us to qualify them to make their choice. I
am sorry, Edward, to be the instigator of
doubts in your breast of the worth of any
one, especially as it may give you pain.&quot;
Here Mrs. Wilson took her brother affectionately 
by the hand as she communicated what
she had overheard that evening. Although
the impressions of the baronet were not as
vivid or deep as those of his sister, his parental 
love was too great not to make him
extremely uneasy under the intelligence; and
after thanking his sister for her attention to
his children's welfare, he kissed her, and
withdrew; in passing to his own room, he
met Egerton, that moment returned from
escorting the Jarvis ladies to their lodgings;
a task he had undertaken at the request of
Jane, as they were without any male attendant. 
Sir Edward's heart was too full
not to seek immediate relief, and as he had
strong hopes of the innocence of the colonel,
though he could give no reason for his expectation, 
he returned with him to the parlour,
and in a few words acquainted him with the
slanders which had been circulated at his expense; 
begging him by all means to disprove
them as soon as possible. The colonel was
struck with the circumstance at first, but assured 
Sir Edward, it was entirely untrue -- he never played, 
as he might have noticed, and that
Mr. Holt was an ancient enemy of his -- he
would in the morning take measures to convince Sir 
Edward, that he stood higher in the
estimation of his uncle, than Mr. Holt had
thought proper to state. Much relieved by
this explanation, the baronet, forgetting that
this heavy charge removed, he only stood
where he did before he took time for his inquiries, 
assured him, that if he could convince him, or rather 
his sister, he did not gamble, he would receive him as a son-in-law,
with pleasure. The gentlemen shook hands
and parted.
</para>
<para>
Denbigh had retired to his room early, telling Mr. Benfield he did not feel well, and
thus missed the party at supper; and by
twelve, silence prevailed in the house. As
usual, after a previous day of pleasure, the
party were late in assembling on the following, 
yet Denbigh was the last who made his
appearance. Mrs. Wilson thought he threw a
look round the room as he entered, which
prevented his making his salutations in his
usual easy and polished manner; in a few
minutes, however, his awkwardness was removed, 
and they took their seats at the table.
At the moment the door of the room was
thrown hastily open, and Mr. Jarvis entered
abruptly, and with a look bordering on wildness in his eye -- 
&quot;Is she not here?&quot; exclaimed the 
merchant, scanning the company closely.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Who?&quot; inquired all in a breath.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Polly -- my daughter -- my child,&quot; said
the merchant, endeavouring to control his
feelings; &quot;did she not come here this morning with Colonel Egerton?&quot;
</para>
<para>
He was answered in the negative, and he
briefly explained the cause of his anxiety 
 -- the colonel had called very early, and sent
her maid up to his daughter, who rose immediately; 
they had left the house, leaving
word the Miss Moseleys had sent for her to
breakfast for a particular reason. Such was
the latitude allowed by his wife, that nothing
was suspected until one of the servants of the
house said he had seen Colonel Egerton and
a lady drive out of the village that morning
in a post-chaise and four. Then the old gentleman 
first took the alarm, and proceeded
instantly to the lodge in quest of his daughter; 
of their elopement there now remained
no doubt, and an examination into the state
of the colonel's room, who had been thought
not yet risen, gave assurance of it. Here
was at once sad confirmation that the opinion of 
Mr. Holt was a just one. Although
every heart felt for Jane, during this dreadful
explanation, no eye was turned on her excepting 
the stolen and anxious glances of her
sister; but when all was confirmed, and nothing 
remained but to reflect or act upon the
circumstances, she naturally engrossed the
whole attention of her fond parents. Jane
had listened in indignation to the commencement of 
the narrative of Mr. Jarvis, and
so firmly was Egerton enshrined in purity
within her imagination, that not until it was
ascertained that both his servant and clothes
were missing, would she admit a thought injurious to 
his truth. Then indeed the feelings of Mr. Jarvis, his 
plain statement, corroborated by this testimony, struck her at
once as true; and as she rose to leave the
room, she fell senseless into the arms of
Emily, who observing her movement and
loss of colour, had flown to her assistance.
Denbigh had drawn the merchant out, in
vain efforts to appease him, and happily no
one witnessed this effect of Jane's passion
but her nearest relatives. She was immediately 
removed to her own room, and, in a
short time, in bed with a burning fever; the
bursts of her grief were uncontrolled and
violent. At times she reproached herself -- her
friends -- Egerton: -- in short, she was guilty of
all the inconsistent sensations that disappointed hopes, accompanied by the consciousness
of weakness on our part, seldom fails to give
rise to; the presence of her friends was irksome 
to her, and it was only to the soft and
insinuating blandishments of Emily's love,
that she would at all yield; perseverance
and affection at length prevailed, and as
Emily took the opportunity of some refreshments 
to infuse a strong soporific, Jane lost
her consciousness of misery in a temporary
repose. In the mean time, a more searching 
inquiry had been able to trace out the
manner and direction of the journey of the
fugitives.
</para>
<para>
It appeared the colonel left the lodge immediately 
after his conversation with Sir Edward; he slept 
at a tavern, and caused his
servant to remove his baggage at day-light;
here he had ordered a chaise and horses, and
then proceeded, as mentioned, to the lodgings
of Mr. Jarvis -- what arguments he used with
Miss Jarvis to urge her to so sudden a flight,
remained a secret; but from the remarks of
Mrs. Jarvis and Miss Sarah, there was reason to believe that he had induced them to
think from the commencement, that his intentions 
were single, and Mary Jarvis their
object; how he contrived to gloss his attentions 
to Jane, in such a manner as to deceive
those ladies, caused no little surprise; but it
was obvious it was done, and the Moseleys
were not without hopes his situation with
Jane would not make the noise in the world
such occurrences seldom fail to excite. In
the afternoon a letter was handed to Mr. Jarvis, 
and by him immediately communicated
to the baronet and Denbigh, both of whom
he considered as among his best friends: -- it
was from Egerton, and written in a respectful manner; 
he apologised for his elopement,
and excused it on the ground of a wish to avoid
the delay of a license, or the publishing of
bans, as he was in hourly expectation of a
summons to his regiment; with many promises of 
making an attentive husband, and
an affectionate son; -- they were on the road to
Scotland, whence they intended immediately
to return to London, and wait the commands
of their parents. The baronet, in a voice
trembling with emotion at the sufferings of
his own child, congratulated the merchant
that things were no worse; while Denbigh
curled his lips as he read the epistle, and
thought settlements were a greater inconvenience 
than the bans -- for it was a well known
fact, a maiden aunt had left the Jarvises
twenty thousand pounds between them.
</para>
<para>
<emph>End Of Volume I. </emph>
</para>
</chapter>
</part>

<part>
<titlepage>
<partnum>Vol. II. </partnum>
<subtitle>1820.</subtitle>
</titlepage>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<title>Precaution.</title>
<chapnum>Chapter I.</chapnum>
</chapheader>
<para>
Although the affections of Jane had sustained a 
heavy blow, her pride had received
a greater, and no persuasions of her mother
or sister, could induce her to leave her room;
she talked but little, but once or twice she
yielded to the affectionate attentions of Emily, 
and poured out her sorrows into the bosom of her 
sister; at such moments, she
would declare her intention of never appearing in 
the world again. One of these paroxysms of sorrow 
was witnessed by her mother, and, for the first time, 
self-reproach mingled in the grief of the matron; had she
trusted less to appearances, and the opinions
of indifferent and ill-judging acquaintances,
her daughter might have been apprised in
season, of the character of the man who had
stolen her affections. To the direct exhibition 
of misery, Lady Moseley was always
sympathetic, and for the moment, alive to its
causes and consequences; but a timely and
judicious safeguard against future moral evils,
was a forecast neither her inactivity of mind
or abilities were equal to.
</para>
<para>
We shall leave Jane to brood over her lover's
misconduct, while we regret she is without
the consolation, alone able to bear her up
against the misfortunes of life, and return to
the other personages of our history.
</para>
<para>
The visit to Mrs. Fitzgerald had been postponed 
in consequence of Jane's indisposition;
but a week after the Colonel's departure,
Mrs. Wilson thought, as Jane had consented
to leave her room, and Emily really began to
look pale from her confinement by the side
of a sick bed, she would redeem the pledge
she had given the recluse, on the following
morning. They found the ladies at the cottage 
happy to see them, and anxious to hear
of the health of Jane, of whose illness they
had been informed by note. After offering
her guests some refreshments, Mrs. Fitzgerald, who 
appeared labouring under a greater melancholy 
than usual, proceeded to make
them acquainted with the incidents of her
life.
</para>
<para>
The daughter of an English merchant at
Lisbon, had fled from the house of her father
to the protection of an Irish officer in the
service of his Catholic Majesty; they were
united, and the colonel immediately took his
bride to Madrid. The offspring of this union
were a son and daughter. The former, at an
early age, had entered into the service of his
king, and had, as usual, been bred in the
faith of his ancestors; but the Signora
M'Carthy had been educated, and yet remained, a 
protestant, and, contrary to her faith
to her husband, secretly instructed her daughter 
in the same belief. At the age of seventeen, 
a principal grandee of the court of
Charles, sought the hand of the general's
child. The Conde D'Alzada was a match
not to be refused, and they were united in
that heartless and formal manner, marriages
are too often entered into, in countries where
the customs of society prevent an intercourse
between the sexes. The Conde never possessed the 
affections of his wife; of a stern
and unyielding disposition his harshness repelled 
her love; and as she naturally turned
her eyes to the home of her childhood, she
cherished all those peculiar sentiments she
had imbibed from her mother. Thus, although she 
appeared to the world a catholic, she lived in secret a protestant. Her
parents had always used the English language 
in their family, and she spoke it as
fluently as the Spanish. To encourage her
recollections of this strongest feature, which
distinguished the house of her father from
the others she entered, she perused closely
and constantly those books which the death
of her mother placed at her disposal; these
were principally protestant works on religious
subjects, and the countess became a strong
sectarian, without becoming a christian. As
she was compelled to use the same books in
teaching her only child, the Donna Julia,
English, the consequences of the original
false step of her grandmother, were perpetuated in 
the person of this young lady. In
learning English, she also learnt to secede
from the faith of her father, and entailed
upon herself a life, of either persecution or
hypocrisy. The countess was guilty of the
unpardonable error of complaining to their
child, of the treatment she received from her
husband; and as these conversations were held
in English, and were consecrated by the tears
of the mother, they made an indelible impression 
on the youthful mind of Julia; who
grew up with the conviction, that next to
being a catholic herself, the greatest evil of
life, was to be the wife of one.
</para>
<para>
On her attaining her fifteenth year, she had
the misfortune (if it could be termed one) to
lose her mother, and within the year, her father 
presented to her a nobleman of the vicinity as her 
future husband; how long the religious faith of Julia 
would have endured, unsupported by example in others, and assailed
by the passions, soliciting in behalf of a young
and handsome cavalier, it might be difficult
to pronounce; but as her suitor was neither
very young, and the reverse of very handsome, 
it is certain, the more he woo'd, the
more confirmed she became in her heresy,
until, in a moment of desperation, and as an
only refuge against his solicitations, she candidly 
avowed her creed. The anger of her
father was violent and lasting; she was doomed to 
a convent, as both a penance for her
sins, and a mean of reformation. Physical
resistance was not in her power, but mentally, 
she determined never to yield. Her body
was immured, but her mind continued unshaken, 
and rather more settled in her belief,
by the aid of those passions which had been
excited by injudicious harshness. For two
years she continued in her noviciate, obstinately 
refusing to take the vows of the order,
and at the end of that period, the situation of
her country had called her father and uncle to
the field, as defenders of the rights of their 
lawful prince; perhaps to this, it was owing that
harsher measures were not adopted in her case.
</para>
<para>
The war now raged around them in its
greatest horrors, until, at length, a general 
battle was fought in the neighbourhood,
and the dormitories of the peaceful nuns
were crowded with wounded British officers.
Amongst others of his nation, was a Major
Fitzgerald, a young man of strikingly handsome 
countenance, and pleasant manners;
chance threw him under the more immediate
charge of Julia; his recovery was slow, and
for a time doubtful, and as much owing to
good nursing, as science. The Major was
grateful, and Julia, unhappy as she was beautiful. 
That love should be the offspring of
this association, will excite no surprise. A
brigade of British encamping in the vicinity
of the convent, the young couple sought its
protection from Spanish vengeance, and Romish 
cruelty. They were married by the
chaplain of the brigade, and for a month they
were happy.
</para>
<para>
As Napoleon was daily expected in person
at the seat of war, his generals were alive
to their own interests, if not to that of their
master. The body of troops in which Fitzgerald had 
sought a refuge, being an advanced
party of the main army, were surprised and
defeated with loss. After doing his duty as
a soldier at his post, the major in endeavouring to 
secure the retreat of Julia, was intercepted, and 
they both fell into the hands of
the enemy. They were kindly treated, and
allowed every indulgence their situation admitted of, 
until a small escort of prisoners
were sent to the frontiers; in this they were
included, and had proceeded to the neighbourhood 
of the Pyrenees, where, in their
turn, the French were assailed suddenly, and
entirely routed; and the captive Spaniards, of
which the party, with the exception of our
young couple, consisted, released. As the
French guard made a resistance until overpowered 
by numbers, an unfortunate ball
struck Major Fitzgerald to the earth -- he
survived but an hour, and died where he fell,
on the open field. An English officer, the
last of his retiring countrymen, was attracted
by the sight of a woman weeping over the
body of a fallen man, and approached them.
In a few words Fitzgerald explained his situation 
to this gentleman, and exacted a
pledge from him to guard his Julia, in safety,
to his mother in England.
</para>
<para>
The stranger promised every thing the
dying husband required of him, and by the
time death had closed the eyes of Fitzgerald,
had procured from some peasants a rude conveyance, 
into which the body, with its almost
equally lifeless widow, were placed. The
party which intercepted the convoy of prisoners, 
had been out from the British camp
on other duty, but its commander hearing of
the escort, had pushed rapidly into a country
covered by the enemy to effect their rescue;
and his service done, was compelled to a
hasty retreat to insure his own security; to
this was owing the indifference, which left
the major to the care of the Spanish peasantry who 
had gathered to the spot, and the retreating 
troops had got several miles on their
return, before the widow and her protector
commenced their journey; it was impossible
to overtake them, and the inhabitants acquainting 
the gentleman that a body of French
dragoons were already harassing their rear, he
was compelled to seek another route to the
camp; this, with some trouble, and no little
danger, he at last effected, and the day following 
the skirmish, Julia found herself lodged in a 
retired Spanish dwelling, several
miles within the advanced posts of the British 
army. The body of her husband was
respectfully interred, and Julia left to mourn
her irretrievable loss, uninterrupted by any
but hasty visits of the officer in whose care
she had been left, which he stole from his
more important duties as a soldier.
</para>
<para>
A month glided by in this melancholy manner, leaving 
to Mrs. Fitzgerald the only consolation she 
would receive -- her incessant visits
to the grave of her husband. The cells of her
protector, however, became more frequent;
and at length he announced to her his intended
departure for Lisbon, on his way to England.
A small covered vehicle, drawn by one horse,
was to convey them to the city, at which
place he promised to procure her a female
attendant, and necessaries for the voyage
home. It was no time or place for delicate
punctilio; and Julia quietly, but with a heart
nearly broken, prepared to submit to the
wishes of her late husband. After leaving
the dwelling, the manners of her guide sensibly 
altered: he became complimentary and
assiduous to please, but in a way rather to
offend than conciliate; until his attentions became 
so irksome, that Julia actually meditated 
stopping at some of the villages through
which they passed, and abandoning the attempt 
of visiting England entirely. But the
desire to comply with Fitzgerald's wish, she
would console his mother for the loss of an
only child, and the dread of the anger of her
relatives, determined her to persevere until
they reached Lisbon, where she was resolved
to separate forever from this disagreeable and
unknown guardian, chance had thrown her
into the keeping of.
</para>
<para>
The last day of their weary ride, in passing 
a wood, the officer so far forgot his
own character and Julia's misfortunes, as
to offer personal indignities. Grown desperate 
from her situation, Mrs. Fitzgerald
had sprung from the vehicle, and by her
cries, had attracted the notice of an officer, 
who was riding express on the same
road with themselves. He advanced to her
assistance at speed, but as he arrived near
them, a pistol fired from the carriage brought
his horse down, and the treacherous friend
was enabled to escape undetected. Julia endeavoured 
to explain her situation to her rescuer; and 
by her distress and appearance,
satisfied him at once of its truth. Within a
short time, a strong escort of light dragoons
came up, and the officer despatched some
for a conveyance, and others in pursuit of that
disgrace to the army, the villanous guide;
the former was soon obtained, but no tidings
could be had of the latter. The carriage was
found at a short distance, without the horse
and with the baggage of Julia, but no vestige
of its owner. She never knew his name, and
either accident or art had so completely enveloped him 
in mystery, that all efforts to unfold it 
then, were fruitless, and had continued so ever since.
</para>
<para>
On their arrival in Lisbon, every attention was 
shown to the disconsolate widow the most refined 
delicacy could dictate, and every comfort and 
respect procured for her, which the princely fortune,
high rank, and higher character, of the Earl
of Pendennyss, could command. It was this
nobleman, who, on his way from head quarters
with despatches for England, had been
the means of preserving Julia from a fate
worse than death. A packet was in waiting
for the earl, and they proceeded in her for
home. The Donna Lorenza was the widow
of a subaltern Spanish officer, who had fallen
under the orders and near Pendennyss, and
the interest he took in her brave husband,
had induced him to offer her, in the destruction 
of her little fortune by the enemy, his
protection: for near two years he had maintained
her at Lisbon, and now judging her a
proper person, had persuaded her to accompany Mrs. 
Fitzgerald to England for a time.
</para>
<para>
On the passage, which was very tedious, the
earl became more intimately acquainted with
the history and character of his young friend,
and by a course of gentle, yet powerful expedients, 
had drawn her mind gradually from
its gloomy contemplation of futurity, to a
just sense of good and evil. The peculiarity
of her religious persuasion, being a Spaniard,
afforded an introduction to frequent discussions 
of the real opinions of that church, to
which Julia had hitherto belonged, although
ignorant of all its essential and vital truths.
These conversations, which were renewed
repeatedly in their intercourse while under
the protection of his sister in London, laid
the foundations of a faith, which left her nothing 
to hope for, but the happy termination
of her earthly probation.
</para>
<para>
The mother of Fitzgerald was dead, and
as he had no near relative left, Julia found
herself alone in the world; her husband
had taken the precaution to make a will
in season; it was properly authenticated,
and his widow, by the powerful assistance
og Pendennyss, was put in quiet possession of a 
little independency. It was while
waiting the decision of this affair, that Mrs.
Fitzgerald resided for a short time near
Bath; as soon as it was terminated, the
earl and his sister had seen her settled in her
present abode, and once since had they visited her; 
but delicacy had kept him away
from the cottage, although his attempts to
serve her had been constant, but not always
successful. He had, on his return to Spain,
seen her father, and interceded with him on
her behalf, but in vain; his anger remained
unappeased, and for a season she did not renew her 
efforts; but having heard that her
father was indisposed, she had employed the
earl once more to make her peace with him,
without prevailing. The letter the ladies
had found her weeping over, was from Pendennyss, 
informing her of his want of success
on that occasion.
</para>
<para>
The substance of the foregoing narrative
was related by Mrs. Fitzgerald to Mrs. Wilson, 
who repeated it to Emily in their ride
home. The compassion of both ladies was
strongly moved in behalf of the young widow,
yet Mrs. Wilson did not fail to point out to
her niece the consequences of deception, and
chiefly the misery which had followed from
an abandonment of one of the primary duties
of life -- disobedience and disrespect to her 
parent. Emily, though keenly alive to all the
principles inculcated by her aunt, found so
much to be pitied in the fate of her friend,
that her failings lost their proper appearance
in her eyes; and for a while, she could think
of nothing but Julia and her misfortunes.
Previously to their leaving the cottage, Mrs.
Fitzgerald, with glowing cheeks, and some
hesitation, informed Mrs. Wilson she had yet
another important communication to make,
but would postpone it until her next visit,
which Mrs. Wilson promised should be on
the succeeding day.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter II.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
Emily threw a look of pleasure on Denbigh, 
as he handed her from the carriage,
which would have said, if looks could talk,
&quot;in the principles you have displayed on
more than one occasion, I have a pledge of
your worth.&quot; As he led her into the house,
he laughingly informed her, he had that
morning received a letter which would make
his absence from L -- necessary for a short
time, and that he must remonstrate against
these long and repeated visits to a cottage,
where all attendants of the male sex were
excluded, as they encroached greatly on his
pleasures -- and improvements, bowing, as he
spoke, to Mrs. Wilson. To this Emily replied, 
gayly, that possibly, if he conducted
himself to their satisfaction, they would intercede 
for his admission. Expressing his
pleasure for the promise, as Mrs. Wilson
thought rather awkwardly, Denbigh changed
the conversation. At dinner, he repeated to
the family what he had mentioned to Emily
of his departure, and also his expectation of
meeting with Lord Chatterton during his
journey.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Have you heard from Chatterton lately,
John?&quot; inquired Sir Edward of his son.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes sir, to-day; he had left Denbigh
Castle a fortnight since, and writes, he is to
meet his friend, the duke, at Bath.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Are you connected with his grace, Mr.
Denbigh?&quot; asked Lady Moseley.
</para>
<para>
A smile of indefinite meaning played on
the expressive face of Denbigh as he answered slightly,
</para>
<para>
&quot;On the side of my father, madam.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He has a sister,&quot; continued Lady Moseley, 
willing to know more of Chatterton's
friends and Denbigh's relatives.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He has, my lady,&quot; was the brief reply.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Her name is Harriet,&quot; observed Mrs.
Wilson -- Denbigh bowed his assent in silence, 
as Emily timidly remarked,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Lady Harriet Denbigh?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Lady Harriet Denbigh, Miss Emily;
will you do me the favour to take wine?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The manner of the gentleman during this
dialogue, had not been in the least unpleasant, 
but peculiar; it prohibited any thing
further on the subject, and Emily was obliged 
to be content without knowing who
Marian was; or whether her name was to be
found in the Denbigh family or not. Emily was
not in the least jealous, but she wished to
know all to whom her lover was dear.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do the dowager and the young ladies accompany 
Chatterton?&quot; asked Sir Edward, as
he turned to John, who was eating his fruit
in silence.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, sir -- I hope -- that is, I believe she
will,&quot; was the answer.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Who will, my son?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Grace Chatterton,&quot; said John, starting
from his meditations; &quot;did you not ask me
about Grace, Sir Edward?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not particularly, I believe,&quot; said 
the baronet dryly. Denbigh again smiled; it was
a smile different from any Mrs. Wilson had
ever seen on his countenance, and gave an
entirely novel expression to his face; it was
full of meaning -- it was knowing -- spoke
more of the man of the world than any thing
she had before noticed in him, and left on her
mind, one of those vague impressions she
was often troubled with, that there was
something about Denbigh in character, or
condition, or both, that was mysterious.
</para>
<para>
The spirit of Jane was too great to leave
her a pining or a pensive maiden; yet her
feelings had sustained a shock that time alone
could cure. She appeared again amongst
her friends, but the consciousness of her 
expectations, with respect to the colonel, being
known to them, threw around her a hauteur
and distance, very foreign to her natural
manner. Emily alone, whose every movement sprung 
from the spontaneous feelings of
her heart, and whose words and actions were
influenced by the finest and most affectionate
delicacy, such as she was not conscious of
possessing herself, won upon the better feelings 
of her sister so far, as to restore between
them the usual exchange of kindness and
sympathy. But Jane admitted no confidence; she 
found nothing consoling -- nothing
solid, to justify her attachment to Egerton;
nothing, indeed, excepting such external advantages 
as she was now ashamed to admit,
had ever the power over her, they in reality
had possessed. The marriage of the fugitives, 
in Scotland, had been announced; and
as the impression that Egerton was to be
connected with the Moseleys, was destroyed
of course, their every day acquaintances, feeling 
the restraints removed such an opinion
had once imposed, were free in their comments 
on his character. Sir Edward and
Lady Moseley were astonished to find how
many things to his disadvantage were generally 
known; that he gambled -- intrigued 
 -- and was in debt -- were no secrets, apparently,
to any body, but those who were most interested 
in knowing the truth; while Mrs.
Wilson saw in these facts, additional reasons
for examining and judging for ourselves; the
world uniformly concealing from the party
and his friends, their honest opinions of his
character. Some of these insinuations had
reached the ears of Jane: her aunt had rightly 
judged, that the surest way to destroy
Egerton's power over the imagination of her
niece, was to strip him of his fictitious qualities, 
and had suggested the expedient to Lady
Moseley; and some of their visiters had
thought, as the colonel had certainly been attentive 
to Miss Moseley, it would give her
pleasure to know that her rival had not made
the most eligible match in the kingdom. The
project of Mrs. Wilson succeeded in a great
measure; but although Egerton fell, Jane did
not find she rose in her own estimation; and
her friends wisely concluded, that time only
would be the remedy that could restore her
to her former serenity.
</para>
<para>
In the morning Mrs. Wilson, unwilling to
have Emily present at a conversation she intended 
to hold with Denbigh, with a view to
satisfy her annoying doubts as to some minor
points in his character, after excusing herself
to her niece, invited the gentleman to a morning ride; 
he accepted her invitation cheerfully; and 
Mrs. Wilson saw, it was only as they
drove from the door without Emily, that he
betrayed the faintest reluctance to the jaunt.
When they had got a short distance from the
lodge, she acquainted him with her intention
of presenting him to Mrs. Fitzgerald, whither
she had ordered the coachman to drive.
Denbigh started as she mentioned the name,
and after a few moments of silence, desired
Mrs. Wilson to allow him to stop the carriage; 
he was not very well -- was sorry to
be so rude -- but with her permission, he would
alight and return to the house. As he requested 
in an earnest manner, that she would
proceed without him, and by no means disappoint 
her friend, Mrs. Wilson complied; yet
somewhat at a loss to account for his sudden
illness, she turned her head to see how the
sick man fared, a short time after he left her,
and was not a little surprised to see him talking 
very composedly with John, who had
met him on his way to the fields with his
gun. Love-sick -- thought Mrs. Wilson, with
a smile; and as she rode on, she came to the
conclusion, that, as Denbigh was to leave
them soon, Emily would have an important
communication to make on her return. &quot;Well,&quot;
thought Mrs. Wilson with a sigh, &quot;if it is to
happen, it may as well be done at once.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Fitzgerald was expecting her, and
appeared rather pleased than otherwise, that
she had come alone. After some introductory 
conversation, the ladies withdrew by
themselves, and Julia acquainted Mrs. Wilson
with a new source of uneasiness. The day
the ladies had promised to visit her, but had
been prevented by the arrangements for the
ball, the Donna Lorenza had driven to the
village to make some purchases, attended, as
usual, by their only man servant, and Mrs.
Fitzgerald was sitting in the little parlour in
momentary expectation of her friends by herself. 
The sound of footsteps drew her to
the door, which she opened for the admission
of -- the wretch, whose treachery to her dying
husband's requests, had given her so much uneasiness. 
Horror -- fear -- surprise -- altogether,
prevented her from making any alarm at the
moment, and she sunk into a chair. He stood
between her and the door, as he endeavoured
to draw her into a conversation; he assured
her she had nothing to fear, that he loved
her, and her alone; that he was about to be
married to a daughter of Sir Edward Moseley, 
but would give her up, fortune, every
thing, if she would consent to become his wife
-- That the views of her protector, he doubted
not, were dishonourable -- that he, himself, was
willing to atone for his former excess of passion, by a life devoted to her.
</para>
<para>
How much longer he would have gone
on, and what further he would have offered, is unknown; 
for Mrs. Fitzgerald having recovered herself a little, darted to the
bell on the other side of the room; he tried to 
prevent he ringing it, but was too
late; a short struggle followed, when the
sound of the footsteps of the maid compelled 
him to retreat precipitately. Mrs.
Fitzgerald added, that his assertion concerning 
Miss Moseley, had given her incredible
uneasiness, and prevented her making the
communication yesterday; but she understood
this morning through her maid, that a Colonel 
Egerton, who had been supposed to be
engaged to one of Sir Edward's daughters, had
eloped with another lady; that Egerton was
her persecutor, she did not now entertain a
doubt, but that it was in the power of Mrs.
Wilson probably to make the discovery, as in
the struggle between them for the bell, a
pocket book had fallen from the breast pocket 
of his coat, and his retreat was too sudden
to recover it.
</para>
<para>
As she put the book into the hands of
Mrs. Wilson, she desired she would take
means to return it to its owner; its contents 
might be of value, but she had not
thought it correct to examine into it. Mrs.
Wilson took the book, and as she dropped it
into her work-bag, smiled at the Spanish
punctilio of her friend, in not looking into her
prize, under the peculiar circumstances.
</para>
<para>
A few questions as to the place and year of
his first attempts, soon convinced her it was
Egerton, whose unlicensed passion had given
so much trouble to Mrs. Fitzgerald. He had
served but one campaign in Spain, and in
that year, and that division of the army; and
surely his principles were no restraint upon
his conduct. Mrs. Fitzgerald begged the advice of 
her more experienced friend as to the
steps she ought to take; to which the former
inquired, if she had made Lord Pendennyss
acquainted with the occurrence: the young
widow's cheek glowed as she answered, that
at the same time she felt assured the base 
insinuation of Egerton was unfounded, it had
created a repugnance in her, to troubling the
early any more than was necessary in her affairs; 
and as she kissed the hand of Mrs.
Wilson, she added -- &quot;besides, your goodness,
my dear madam, renders any other adviser
unnecessary to me now.&quot; Mrs. Wilson pressed her 
hand affectionately, as she assured
her of her good wishes and unaltered esteem.
She commended her delicacy, and plainly
told the young widow, that however unexceptionable the character of Pendennyss
might be, a female friend was the only one a
woman in her situation could repose her confidence in, 
without justly incurring the sarcasms of the world.
</para>
<para>
As Egerton was now married, and would
not probably offer any further molestation
to Mrs. Fitzgerald, for the present, at least,
it was concluded to be unnecessary to take
any immediate measures of precaution; and
Mrs. Wilson thought, the purse of Mr. Jarvis 
might be made the means of keeping
him within proper bounds in future. The
merchant was prompt, and not easily intimidated, 
and the slightest intimation of
the truth would, she knew, be sufficient to
engage him on their side, heart and hand.
</para>
<para>
The ladies parted, with a request and
promise of meeting soon again, and an additional interest 
in each other by the communication of that and the preceding day.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson had ridden half the distance between the 
cottage and the lodge, before it occurred to her, 
they had not absolutely ascertained by the best 
means in their possession, the
identity of Colonel Egerton with Julia's persecutor. 
She accordingly took the pocket book
from her bag, and opened it for examination; a 
couple of letters fell from it into her
lap, and conceiving their direction would establish 
all she wished to know, as they had
been read, she turned to the superscription of
one of them, and saw -- &quot;George Denbigh,
Esq.&quot; in the well known hand-writing of Dr.
Ives. -- Mrs. Wilson felt herself overcome to
a degree that compelled her to lower a glass
of the carriage for air. She sat gazing on
the letters until the characters swam before
her eyes in undistinguished confusion; and
with difficulty she rallied her thoughts to the
necessary point of investigation. As soon as
she found herself equal to the task, she examined 
the letters with the closest scrutiny,
and opened them both to be sure there was
no mistake. She saw the dates, the &quot;dear
George&quot; at the commencements, and the doctor's name 
subscribed, before she would believe they were real: it was then the truth
appeared to break upon her in a flood of light.
The aversion of Denbigh to speak of Spain,
or his services in that country -- his avoiding
Sir Herbert Nicholson, and that gentleman's
observations respecting him -- Colonel Egerton's 
and his own manners -- his absence
from the ball, and startling looks on the following 
morning, and at different times before
and since -- his displeasure at the name of
Pendennyss on various occasions -- and his
cheerful acceptance of her invitation to ride
until he knew her destination, and singular
manner of leaving her -- were all accounted for
by this dreadful discovery, and Mrs. Wilson
found the solution of her doubts rushing on
her mind with a force and rapidity that sickened her.
</para>
<para>
The misfortunes of Mrs. Fitzgerald 
-- the unfortunate issue to the passion of Jane
--were trifles in the estimation of Mrs.
Wilson, compared to the discovery of Denbigh's 
unworthiness. She revolved in her
mind his conduct on various occasions, and
wondered how one who could behave so well
in common, could thus yield to temptation on
a particular occasion. His recent attempts 
-- his hypocrisy -- however, proved his villany
was systematic, and she was not weak enough
to hide from herself the evidence of his guilt,
or its enormity. His interposition between
Emily and death, she attributed now to natural 
courage, and perhaps in some measure,
chance; but his profound and unvarying reverence for 
holy things -- his consistent charity -- his 
refusing to fight -- to what were they
owing? And Mrs. Wilson mourned the weakness of human 
nature, while she acknowledged to herself, 
there might be men, qualified
by nature, and even disposed by reason and
grace, to prove ornaments to religion and the
world, who fell beneath the maddening influence 
of their besetting sins. The superficial
and interested vices of Egerton, vanished before 
these awful and deeply seated offences
of Denbigh; and the correct widow saw at
a glance, that he was the last man to be entrusted 
with the happiness of her niece; but
how to break this heart-rending discovery to
Emily, was a new source of uneasiness to
her, and the carriage stopt at the door of the
lodge, ere she had determined on the first
step her duty required of her.
</para>
<para>
Her brother handed her from it; and, filled
with the dread that Denbigh had availed
himself of the opportunity of her absence, to
press his suit with Emily, she inquired after
him: she was rejoiced to hear he had returned with 
John for a fowling piece, and together they had gone 
in pursuit of game, although she saw in it a convincing proof, that
a desire to avoid Mrs. Fitzgerald, and not 
indisposition, had induced him to leave her. As
a last alternative, she resolved to have the
pocket book returned to him in her presence,
to see if he acknowledged it to be his property; 
and accordingly she instructed her own
man to hand it to him while at dinner, simply
saying he had lost it.
</para>
<para>
The open and unsuspecting air with which
her niece met Denbigh on his return, gave Mrs.
Wilson an additional shock, and she could
hardly command herself sufficiently, to extend
the common courtesies of good-breeding, to
Mr. Benfield's guest.
</para>
<para>
While sitting at the dessert, her servant
handed the pocket book, as directed by his
mistress to its owner, saying, &quot;your pocket
book, I believe, Mr. Denbigh.&quot; Denbigh
took the book, and held it in his hand
for a moment in surprise, and then fixed his 
eye keenly on the man, as he inquired
where he found it, and how he knew it was
his: these were interrogatories Francis was
not prepared to answer, and in his confusion
he naturally turned his eyes on his mistress.
Denbigh followed their direction with his
own, and in encountering the looks of the
lady, he asked in a stammering manner, and
with a face of scarlet,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Am I indebted to you, madam, for my
property?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, sir; it was given me by some one
who found it, to restore to you,&quot; said Mrs.
Wilson gravely in reply, and the subject was
dropt, both appearing willing to say no more.
Yet Denbigh was abstracted and absent during the 
remainder of the repast, and Emily
spoke to him once or twice without obtaining an 
answer. Mrs. Wilson caught his eye
several times fixed on her with an inquiring
and doubtful expression, that convinced her,
he was alarmed. If any confirmation of his
guilt had been wanting, the consciousness he
betrayed during this scene afforded it; and she
sat seriously about considering the shortest
and best method of interrupting his intercourse 
with Emily, before he had drawn from
her an acknowledgment of her love.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter III.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
On withdrawing to her dressing-room after
dinner, attended by Emily, Mrs. Wilson commenced 
her disagreeable duty, of removing
the veil from the eyes of her niece, by recounting to 
her the substance of Mrs. Fitzgerald's last 
communication. To the innocence of Emily, such 
persecution could excite no other sensations but 
surprise and horror; and as her aunt omitted the 
part, concerning the daughter of Sir Edward Moseley,
she naturally expressed her wonder at who
the wretch could be.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Possibly, aunt,&quot; she said, with an involuntary shudder, 
&quot;some of the many gentlemen we have lately seen, and one who has
had art enough to conceal his real character
from the world.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Concealment, my love,&quot; replied Mrs.
Wilson, &quot;would be hardly necessary; such
is the fashionable laxity of morals, that I
doubt not many of his associates would laugh
at his misconduct, and that he would still
continue to pass with the world as an honourable man.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And ready,&quot; cried her niece, &quot;to sacrifice human life, 
in the defence of any ridiculous punctilio of that honour.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Or,&quot; added Mrs. Wilson, striving to
draw nearer to her subject, &quot;with a closer
veil of hypocrisy wear even an affectation of
principle and moral feeling, that would seem
to forbid such a departure from duty in favour
of custom.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! no, dear aunt,&quot; exclaimed Emily,
with glowing cheeks, and eyes dancing with
pleasure, &quot;he would hardly dare to be so
very base -- it would be profanity.&quot; Mrs.
Wilson sighed heavily as she witnessed the
confiding esteem of Emily, which would not
permit her even to suspect, that an act, which
in Denbigh had been so warmly applauded,
could, even in another, proceed from unworthy motives; 
and found it would be necessary to speak in the plainest terms, to rouse
her suspicion of his demerits; -- willing, however, 
to come gradually to the distressing
truth, she replied -- 
   &quot;And yet, my dear, men who pride themselves 
greatly on their morals, nay, even
some who wear the mask of religion, and
perhaps deceive themselves, admit and practice this 
very appeal to arms; such inconsistencies are by no means uncommon; and
why then might there not, with equal probability, 
be others, who would revolt at murder, and yet 
not hesitate being guilty of lesser
enormities; this is in some measure the case
of every man; and it is only to consider
killing in unlawful encounters, as murder,
to make it one in point.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Hypocrisy is so mean a vice, I should
not think a brave man would stoop to it,&quot;
said Emily, &quot;and Julia admits he was
brave.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And would not a brave man revolt at
the cowardice of insulting an unprotected
woman; and your hero did that too,&quot; replied
Mrs. Wilson bitterly, losing her self-command in indignation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! do not call him my hero, I beg of
you, dear aunt,&quot; said Emily, starting; and
then losing the unpleasant sensations, in the
delightful consciousness of the superiority
of the man on whom she bestowed her admiration.
</para>
<para>
&quot;In fact, my child,&quot; continued her aunt,
&quot;our natures are guilty of the grossest inconsistencies -- 
the vilest wretch has generally some property on which he 
values himself; and the most perfect are too often frail
on some tender point; long and tried friendships are those 
only which can be trusted to,
and these oftentimes fail.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily looked at her aunt in surprise, to
hear her utter such unusual sentiments; for
Mrs. Wilson, at the same time she had, by divine 
assistance, deeply impressed her niece
with the frailty of her nature, had withheld
the disgusting representation of human vices
from her view, as unnecessary to her situation, 
and dangerous to her humility.
</para>
<para>
After a short pause, Mrs. Wilson continued, 
&quot;marriage is a fearful step in a woman; 
and one she is compelled, in some
measure, to adventure her happiness on,
without fitting opportunities always, of judging 
of the merit of the man she confides in;
Jane is an instance, and I hope you are not
doomed to be another.&quot;
</para>
<para>
While speaking, Mrs. Wilson had taken
the hand of Emily, and by her looks and solemn 
manner, had succeeded in creating an
alarm in her niece, of some apprehended
evil, although Denbigh was yet farthest from
her thoughts as connected with danger to
herself; the aunt reached her a glass of
water, and willing to get rid of the hateful
subject, she continued, &quot;did you not notice
the pocket-book Francis gave Mr. Denbigh?&quot;
Emily fixed her inquiring eyes on her aunt,
wildly, as she added, &quot;it was the one Mrs.
Fitzgerald gave me to-day.&quot; Something like
an indefinite glimpse of the facts crossed the
mind of Emily -- and as it most obviously involved 
a separation from Denbigh, she sunk
lifeless into the extended arms of her aunt.
This had been anticipated by Mrs. Wilson,
and a timely application of restoratives soon
brought her back to a consciousness of her
misery. Mrs. Wilson, unwilling any one
but herself should witness the first burst of
the grief of her charge, succeeded in getting
her to her own room and in bed. Emily
made no lamentations -- shed no tears -- asked
no questions -- her eye was fixed, and her
every faculty appeared oppressed with the
load on her heart. Mrs. Wilson knew her
situation too well, to intrude with unseasonable 
consolation or useless reflections, but
sat patiently by her side, waiting anxiously
for the moment she could be of service; at
length the uplifted eyes and clasped hands of
Emilly, assured her she had not forgotten
herself or her duty, and she was rewarded
for her labour and forbearance by a flood of
tears; greatly relieved, Emily was now able
to listen to a more full statement, of the reasons 
her aunt had for believing in the guilt of
Denbigh; and she felt as if her heart was
frozen up forever, as the proofs followed
each other until they amounted to demonstration; 
as there was some indications of
fever from her agitated state of mind, her
aunt required she should remain in her room
until morning, and Emily feeling every way
unequal to a meeting with Denbigh, gladly
assented; after ringing for her maid to sit in
the adjoining room, Mrs. Wilson went below,
and announced to the family the indisposition
of her charge, and her desire to obtain a little
sleep. Denbigh looked anxious to inquire
after the health of Emily, but there was a
visible restraint on all his actions, since the
return of his book, that persuaded Mrs. Wilson, he 
apprehended a detection of his conduct had taken place. He did venture to
ask, when they were to have the pleasure of
seeing Miss Moseley again -- hoping it would
be that evening, as he had fixed the morning
for his departure; and when he learnt that
Emily had retired for the night, his anxiety
was sensibly increased, and he instantly withdrew. 
Mrs. Wilson was alone in the drawing-room, and about to join her niece, as
Denbigh entered it with a letter in his hand;
he approached her with a diffident and constrained 
manner, as he commenced with
saying -- 
   &quot;My anxiety and situation will plead
my apology for troubling Miss Moseley
at this time -- may I ask you, madam, to deliver 
this letter -- I dare not ask you for your
good offices in my favour.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson took the letter as she coldly
replied, &quot;certainly, sir, and I sincerely wish
I could be of any real service to you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I perceive, madam,&quot; said Denbigh, hesitatingly, 
&quot;I have forfeited your good opinion
-- that pocket-book -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Has made a dreadful discovery,&quot; echoed
Mrs. Wilson, shuddering.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Will not one offence be pardoned, dear
madam?&quot; cried Denbigh, with warmth; &quot;if
you knew my circumstances -- the cruel reasons -- 
why -- why did I neglect the paternal
advice of Doctor Ives.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is not yet too late, sir,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, 
more midly, &quot;for your own good -- but
as for us, your deception -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Is unpardonable -- I see it -- I feel it,&quot;
cried he, with the accent of despair; &quot;yet
Emily -- Emily may relent -- you will give
her my letter -- any thing is better than this
suspense.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You shall have an answer from Emily
this evening, and entirely unbiassed by me,&quot;
said Mrs. Wilson; and as she closed the door,
she observed Denbigh standing gazing on
her retiring figure, with a countenance of
despair, that mingled a feeling of pity, with
her detestation of his vices.
</para>
<para>
On opening the door of Emily's room, she
found her in tears, and her anxiety for her
health was alleviated; she knew or hoped,
that if she could once call in the assistance of
her judgment and piety to lessen her sorrows, Emily, however she might mourn,
would become resigned to her situation; and
the first step to attain this was the exercise of
those faculties, which had at first been, as it
were, annihilated. Mrs. Wilson kissed her
with tenderness, as she placed in her hand
the letter, and told her within an hour she
would call for her answer. Employment,
and the necessity of acting, would be, she
thought, the surest means of reviving her
energies; nor was she disappointed. When
the aunt returned for the expected answer,
she was informed by the maid in the antichamber, 
Miss Moseley was up, and had
been writing she believed. On entering,
Mrs. Wilson stood a moment in admiration
of the picture before her. Emily was on her
knees, and by her side, on the carpet, lay the
letter and its answer; her face was hid by
her hair, and her hands were closed in the
fervent grasp of petition; in a minute she
rose, and approaching her aunt, with an air
of profound resignation, but great steadiness,
handed her the letters, her own unsealed:
&quot;read them, madam, and if you approve of
mine, I will thank you to deliver it.&quot; Her aunt
folded her in her arms, until Emily finding
herself yielding under the effects of sympathy, begged 
her to leave her alone. On withdrawing to her own room, Mrs. Wilson read
the contents of the two letters.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I rely greatly on the goodness of Miss
Moseley, to pardon the liberty I am taking,
at a moment she is so unfit for such a subject;
but my departure -- my feelings -- must plead
my apology -- From the moment of my first
acquaintance with you, I have been a cheerful 
subject to your loveliness and innocence;
I feel, I know I am not deserving of such a
blessing; but knowing you, as I do, it is 
impossible not to strive to win you -- you have
often thanked me as the preserver of your
life, but you little knew the deep interest I
had in its safety -- without it my own will be
unhappy; and it is by accepting my offered
hand, you will place me amongst the happiest, 
or rejecting it, the most wretched of
men.&quot;
</para>
<para>
To this note, which was unsigned, and
evidently written under great agitation of
mind, Emily had penned the following reply:
</para>
<letter><salut>
&quot;Sir</salut><para>
-- It is with much regret that I find
myself reduced to the possibility of giving
uneasiness to one I am under such heavy
obligations to: It will never be in my power 
to accept the honour you have offered me;
and I beg you to receive my thanks for the
compliment conveyed in your request, as
well as my good wishes for your happiness in
future, and prayers you may be ever found
worthy of it. </para><sig>
 -- Your humble servant, -- 
&quot;Emily Moseley.&quot; 
</sig></letter>
<para>
Perfectly satisfied with this answer of her
niece, Mrs. Wilson went below in order to
deliver it at once; she thought it probable, as
Denbigh had already sent his baggage to a
tavern, preparatory to his intended journey,
they would not meet again; and as she felt a
strong wish, both on account of Doctor Ives,
and out of respect to his services, to conceal
his conduct from the world entirely, she
was in hopes his absence would make any
disclosure unnecessary. He took the letter
from her with a trembling hand, and casting
one of his very expressive looks at her, as if
to read her thoughts, he withdrew.
</para>
<para>
Emily had fallen asleep free from fever, and
Mrs. Wilson descended to the supper room;
as Mr. Benfield was first struck with the absence of his 
favourite -- an inquiry after Denbigh was instituted, and it was while they
were waiting his appearance, to be seated at
the table, a servant handed Mr. Benfield a
note -- &quot;From whom?&quot; cried the old 
gentleman, in surprise. &quot;Mr. Denbigh, sir;&quot; and
the bearer withdrew.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mr. Denbigh!&quot; exclaimed Mr. Benfield,
in added amazement, &quot;no accident I hope 
 -- I remember when Lord Gosford -- here, Peter,
your eyes are young, do you read it for me 
 -- read aloud.&quot;
</para>
<para>
As all but Mrs. Wilson were anxiously waiting 
to know the meaning of this message,
and Peter had many preparations to go
through before his youthful eyes could make
out its contents; John hastily caught it out of
his hand, saying he would save him the
trouble, and in obedience to his uncle's
wishes, read aloud:
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mr. Denbigh, being under the necessity
of leaving L -- immediately, and unable
to endure the pain of taking leave, avails
himself of this means of tendering his warmest 
thanks to Mr. Benfield, for his hospitality,
and his amiable guests for their many kindnesses; 
as he contemplates leaving England,
he desires to wish them all a long and affectionate farewell.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Farewell,&quot; cried Mr. Benfield, &quot;farewell 
-- does he say farewell, John? here, Peter,
run -- no, you are too old -- John, run -- bring
my hat, I'll go myself to the village -- some
love quarrel -- Emmy sick -- and Denbigh
going away -- yes -- yes, I did so myself 
-- Lady Juliana, poor dear soul, she was a long
time before she could forget it -- but Peter&quot; 
-- Peter had disappeared the instant the letter
was finished, and was quickly followed by
John. Sir Edward and Lady Moseley were
both lost in amazement at this sudden and
unexpected movement of Denbigh, and the
breast of each of the affectionate parents was
filled with a vague apprehension, that the
peace of mind of another child was at stake.
Jane felt a renewal of her woes, in the anticipation of 
something similar for her sister 
 -- for the fancy of Jane was yet alive, and she
did not cease to consider the defection of
Egerton, a kind of unmerited misfortune
and fatality, instead of a probable consequence of 
want of principles; like Mr. Benfield, she was in danger of making an ideal
idol to worship, and to spend the remainder
of her days in devotion to qualities, rarely,
if ever found, and identified with a person
that never had an existence. The old gentleman was 
now entirely engrossed by a different object; 
and having in his own opinion
decided there must have been one of those
misunderstandings which sometimes had occurred 
to himself and Lady Juliana, he
quietly composed himself to eat his sallad at
the supper table; on turning his head, however, 
in quest of his first glass of wine, he
observed Peter standing quietly by the sideboard 
with the favourite goggles over his
eyes. Now Peter was troubled with two
kinds of weakness about his organs of
vision; one was age and weakness, and the
other, was also a weakness -- of the heart
however; this his master knew, and he
took the alarm -- again the wine glass dropt
from his nerveless hand, as he said in a trembling tone 
-- &quot;Peter, I thought you went&quot; 
 -- 
   &quot;Yes, master,&quot; said Peter laconically in
reply.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You saw him, Peter -- he will return?&quot;
Peter was busily occupied at his glasses,
although no one was dry.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Peter,&quot; repeated Mr. Benfield, rising
from his seat, &quot;is he coming in time for
supper,&quot;
</para>
<para>
Peter, thus assailed, was obliged to reply,
and deliberately uncasing his eyes, and blowing his 
nose, he was on the point of opening
his mouth, as John came into the room, and
threw himself into a chair, with an air of great
vexation; Peter pointed to him in silence,
and retired.
</para>
<para>
&quot;John,&quot; cried Sir Edward, &quot;where is
Denbigh?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Gone, Sir,&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Gone!&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, my dear father,&quot; said John, &quot;gone
without saying good-by to one of us -- without telling 
us whither, or when to return -- it
was cruel in him -- unkind -- I'll never forgive 
him&quot; -- and John, whose feelings were
strong, and unusually excited, hid his face
between his hands on the table. -- As he raised
his head to reply to a question of Mr. Benfield -- 
&quot;of how he knew he had gone, for
the coach did not go until daylight?&quot; Mrs.
Wilson saw evident marks of the tears; such
emotion excited in John Moseley by the loss
of his friend, gave her the pleasure to know,
if she had been deceived, it was by a
concurrence of circumstances and depth of
hypocrisy, almost exceeding belief; self-reproach added but little to her uneasiness of
the moment.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I saw the inn-keeper, uncle,&quot; said John,
&quot;who told me Mr. Denbigh left there at
eight o'clock, in a post-chaise and four; but
I will go to London in the morning myself;&quot;
and he immediately commenced his preparations for the journey. The family separated
that evening with melancholy hearts; and the
host and his privy counsellor were closeted
for half an hour ere they retired to their
night's repose. John took his leave of them,
and left the lodge for the inn, with his man,
in order to be ready for the mail. Mrs. Wilson looked 
in upon Emily before she withdrew herself, and found 
her awake, but perfectly calm and composed; she said 
but little -- appeared desirous of avoiding all allusions 
to Denbigh; and after simply acquainting her with his departure, and her resolution
to conceal the cause, the subject was
dropped. Mrs. Wilson, on entering her own
room, thought deeply on the discoveries of
the day; it had interfered with her favourite
system of morals -- baffled her ablest calculations 
upon causes and effects, but in no degree had impaired her faith or reliance on
providence -- she knew one exception did not
destroy a rule; she was certain without
principles there was no security for good
conduct, and the case of Denbigh proved it;
to discover these principles, might be a difficult, 
but was an imperious task required at
her hands, ere she yielded the present and
future happiness of her pupil to the power
of any man.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter IV.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The day had not yet dawned, as John
Moseley was summoned to take his seat in
the mail for London; three of the places
were already occupied, and John was compelled to get 
a seat for his man on the outside; an intercourse with 
strangers is particularly irksome to an Englishman, and none
appeared disposed to break the silence. The
coach had left the little village of L -- far
behind it, before any of the rational beings
it contained, had thought it prudent or becoming, 
to bend in the least to the charities
of our nature, in a communication with a fellow 
creature, whose name or condition they
happened to be ignorant of. This reserve
is unquestionably characteristic of our nation; 
to what is it owing? -- modesty? did
not our national and deep personal vanity
appear at once to refute the assertion, we
might enter into an investigation of it.
The good opinion of himself in an Englishman is 
more deeply seated, though less
buoyant, than that of his neighbours; in
them it is more of manners, in us more of
feeling; and the wound inflicted on the selflove 
of the two, is very different in effect 
 -- The Frenchman wonders at its rudeness, but
soon forgets the charge; while an Englishman
broods over it in silence and mortification. It
is said this distinction in character is owing
to the different estimation of principles and
morals, of the two nations. The solidity and
purity of our ethics and religious creeds,
may have given a superior tone to our moral
feeling -- but has that man a tenable ground
to value himself on either, whose respect to
sacred things, grows out of a respect to himself; 
on the other hand, is not humility
the very foundation of the real christian.
For our part, we would be glad to see this
national reserve lessened, if not done away;
we believe it is founded in pride and uncharitableness, 
and would wish to see men
thrown accidentally together on the roads of
our country, mindful that they are travelling
also in company, the highway of life, and
that the goal of their destination is alike 
attainable by all.
</para>
<para>
John Moseley was occupied with thoughts
very different from any of his fellow-travellers, 
as they proceeded rapidly on their
route, and it was only when roused from his
meditations by the accidentally coming in
contact with the hilt of a sword, he looked
up, and in the glimmerings of the morning's
light, recognised the person of Lord Henry Stapleton; their eyes met, and -- &quot;my
lord&quot; -- &quot;Mr. Moseley&quot; -- were repeated in
mutual surprise. John was eminently a social
being, and he was happy to find recourse
against his gloomy thoughts in the conversation of the dashing young sailor. His
frigate had entered the bay the night before,
and he was going to town to the wedding of
his sister; the coach of his brother the marquis, 
was to meet him about twenty miles
from town, and the ship was ordered round
to Yarmouth, where he was to rejoin her.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But how are your lovely sisters, Moseley?&quot; 
cried the young sailor, in a frank and
careless manner, &quot;I should have been half
in love with one of them, if I had time -- and
money; -- both are necessary to marriage nowa-days, you know.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;As to time,&quot; said John, with a laugh,
&quot;I believe that may be dispensed with, but
money is a different thing.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, time too,&quot; replied his lordship; &quot;I
have never time enough to do any thing as it
ought to be done -- always hurried -- I wish
you could recommend me a lady who would
take the trouble off my hands.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It might be done, my lord,&quot; said John,
with a smile, and the image of Kate Chatterton crossed 
his brain, but was soon succeeded by that of her more lovely sister.
&quot;But how do you manage on board your
ship -- hurried there too?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! never there,&quot; replied the captain,
gravely; &quot;that's duty, you know, and every
thing must be regular of course; but on shore
it is a different thing -- there I am only a 
passenger; but L -- has a charming society,
Mr. Moseley -- a week or ten days ago I
was shooting, and came to a beautiful cottage
about five miles from the vilage, that was
the adobe of a much more beautiful woman
-- a Spaniard -- a Mrs. Fitzgerald -- I am positively in love with her -- so soft -- so polished
-- so modest -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
ldquo;How came your lordship acquainted
with her?&quot; inquired Moseley, interrupting
him in a little surprise.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Chance, my dear fellow -- chance -- I was
thirsty, and approached for a drink of water;
she was sitting in the piazza, and being hurried 
for time, you know -- saved the trouble
of introduction -- I expect she is troubled with
the same complaint, for she managed to get
rid of me in no time, and with a great deal
of politeness -- however, I found out her name
at the next house.&quot;
</para>
<para>
During this rattle, John had fixed his eyes
on the face of one of the passengers who sat
opposite to him -- he appeared to be about
fifty years of age, strongly pock-marked,
with a stiff military air, and the dress and exterior of a gentleman -- his face was much
sun-burnt, though naturally very fair, and
his dark, keen eye, was intently fixed on the
sailor, as he continued his remarks -- &quot;Do
you know such a lady, Moseley?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes&quot; said John, &quot;very slightly; she is
visited by one of my sisters, and -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yourself,&quot; cried Lord Henry, with a
laugh.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Myself, once or twice, my lord, certainly,&quot;
answered John, gravely, &quot;but a lady visited
by Emily Moseley and Mrs. Wilson, is a
proper companion for any one -- Mrs Fitzgerald is very retired in her manner of living,
and chance made us acquainted with her;
but not being like your lordship, in want of
time, we have endeavoured to cultivate her
acquaintance, as we have found it agreeable.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The countenance of the stranger underwent several changes during this speech of
John's, and at its close rested on him with a
softer expression, than generally marked its
rigid and compressed muscles. -- Willing to
change a discourse which was growing too
delicate for a mail-coach, John addressed
himself to the opposite passengers, while
his eye yet dwelt on the face of the military
stranger.
</para>
<para>
&quot;We are likely to have a fine day, gentlemen;&quot; 
the soldier bowed stiffly, as he smiled
his assent, and the other passenger humbly answered, 
&quot;very, Mr. John,&quot; in the well
known tones of honest Peter Johnson 
 -- Moseley started, as he turned his face for the
first time on the lank figure, which was modestly 
compressed into the smallest possible
compass in a corner of the coach, in such a
way as not to come in contact with any of
its neighbours.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Johnson&quot; exclaimed John, in astonishment, &quot;you here -- where are you going -- to
London?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;To London, Mr. John,&quot; replied Peter,
with a look of much importance; and then,
as if to silence further interrogatories, he
added, &quot;on my master's business, sir.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Both Moseley and Lord Henry, examined
him closely as he spoke; the former wondering what could take the steward, at the
age of seventy, for the first time into the
vortex of the capital; and the latter in admiration at the figure and equipments of the
old man before him -- Peter was in full costume, with the exception of the goggles, and
was in reality a subject to be gazed at by
most people; but nothing relaxed the muscles,
or attracted the particular notice of the soldier, who having regained his set form of
countenance, appeared drawn up in himself,
waiting patiently for the moment he was expected to act; nor did he utter more than as
many words, in the course of the first fifty miles
of their journey. His dialect was singular, and
such as put his hearers at a loss to determine
his country. Lord Henry stared at him every
time he spoke, as if to say, what countryman 
are you? until at length he suggested
to John he was some officer, whom the
downfall of Bonaparte had driven into retirement; 
&quot;indeed, Moseley,&quot; he added, as
they were about to resume their carriage
after a change of horses, &quot;we must draw
him out, and see what he thinks of his master now 
-- but delicately, you know.&quot; The
soldier was, however, impervious to his lordship's 
attacks, until he finally abandoned the
project in despair. Peter was too modest to
talk in the presence of Mr. John Moseley,
and a lord; so the young men had most of
the discourse to themselves. At a village
fifteen miles from London, a fashionable carriage and 
four, with the coronet of a marquis, 
was in waiting for Lord Henry; John
refused his invitation to take a seat with him
to town, as he had traced Denbigh from
stage to stage, and was fearful of losing
sight of him, unless he persevered in the
manner he had commenced; they were put
down safely at an inn, in the Strand, and
Moseley hastened to make his inquiries after
the object of his pursuit; such a chaise had
arrived an hour before, and the gentleman
had ordered his trunk to a neighbouring
hotel; after obtaining the address, and ordering 
a hackney coach, he hastened to the
house, and on inquiring for Mr. Denbigh, to
his great mortification, was told they knew
of no such gentleman; John turned away
from the person he was speaking to, in visible
disappointment, as a servant in a livery respectfully 
inquired, if the gentleman had not
come from L -- , in Norfolk, that day 
 -- &quot;he had,&quot; was the reply; &quot;then follow me,
sir, if you please&quot; -- they knocked at a door
of one of the parlours, and the servant entered; 
he returned, and John was shown into
a room, where was sitting Denbigh with his
head resting on his hand, and apparently
musing; on seeing who it was that required
admittance, he sprang from his seat as he
exclaimed, &quot;Mr. Moseley! do I see aright?&quot;
&quot;Denbigh,&quot; cried John, as he stretched out
his hand to him, &quot;was this kind -- was it
like yourself -- to leave us so unexpectedly,
and for so long a time as your note mentioned;&quot; 
Denbigh waved his hand to the
servant to retire, and handed a chair to his
friend; &quot;Mr. Moseley,&quot; said he, struggling
with his feelings, &quot;you appear ignorant of
my proposals to your sister.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Perfectly,&quot; answered John.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And her rejection of them.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Is it possible,&quot; cried the brother, pacing
up and down the room; &quot;I acknowledge I
did expect you to offer, but not to be refused.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Denbigh placed in his hand the letter of
Emily, which having read, he returned, with
a sigh; &quot;this then is the reason you left us,&quot;
continued he; &quot;Emily is not capricious -- it
cannot be a sudden pique -- she means as
she says.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, Mr. Moseley,&quot; said Denbigh, mournfully, 
&quot;Your sister is faultless -- but I am not
worthy of her -- my deception&quot; -- here the
door again opened to the admission of Peter
Johnson -- both the gentlemen rose at the sudden 
interruption, and the steward advancing
to the table, once more produced the formidable 
pocket-book -- the spectacles -- and a
letter -- he ran over its direction -- &quot;For
George Denbigh, Esquire, London, by the
hands of Peter Johnson, with care and
speed;&quot; and then delivered it to its lawful
owner, who opened it, and rapidly perused its
contents; he was much affected with whatever 
they might be, and kindly took the
steward by the hand, as he thanked him for
this renewed instance of the interest he took
in him; if he would tell him where a letter
would find him in the morning, he would
send it to him, in reply to the one he had received; 
Peter gave his address, but appeared
unwilling to go, until assured the answer
would be as he wished -- taking a small account-book 
out of his pocket, and referring
to its contents, he said, &quot;Master has with
Coutts &amp; Co.  7,000 pounds; in the bank,  5,000 pounds;
it can be easily done, sir, and never felt by
us.&quot; Denbigh smiled in reply, as he assured
the steward he would take proper notice of
his master's offers in his letter. The door
again opened, and the military stranger was
admitted to their presence -- he bowed -- appeared 
not a little surprised to find two of
his mail-coach companions there, and handed
Denbigh a letter, in quite as formal, although 
more silent manner, than the steward.
He was invited to be seated, and the letter
perused (after apologising to his guests) by
their host. As soon as he ended it, he addressed 
the stranger, in a language, which
John rightly judged to be Spanish, and
Peter took to be Greek. For a few minutes
the conversation was maintained between
them with great earnestness; and his fellowtravellers 
marvelled at the garrulity of the
soldier; he soon, however, rose to retire, as
the door was thrown open for the fourth time,
and a voice cried out,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Here I am, George, safe and sound 
-- ready to kiss the bridesmaids, if they will
let me -- and I can find time -- bless me, Moseley! -- 
old marling-spike! -- general! -- whew
--where is the coachman and guard?&quot; -- it
was Lord Henry Stapleton -- the Spaniard
bowed again in silence and withdrew -- while
Denbigh threw open the door of an adjoining room, 
and excused himself, as he desired
Lord Henry to walk in there for a few minutes.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Upon my word,&quot; cried the heedless
sailor, as he complied, &quot;we might as well
have stuck together -- we were bound to one
port, it seems.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You know Lord Henry?&quot; said John, as
he withdrew.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes,&quot; said Denbigh, and he again required of 
Peter his address, which was given,
and the steward departed. The conversation between 
the two friends did not return
to the course it was taking, when they were
interrupted, as Moseley felt a delicacy in making 
any allusion to the probable cause of
his sister's refusal. He had, however, began
to hope it was not irremoveable, and, with a
determination of renewing his visit in the
morning, he took his leave, in order Denbigh
might attend to his acquaintance, Lord Henry Stapleton.
</para>
<para>
About twelve on the following morning,
John and the steward met at the door of the
hotel Denbigh lodged in; both in quest of
his person. The latter held in his hand the
answer to his master's letter, but wished particularly 
to see its writer. On inquiring for
him, to their mutual surprise they were told,
the gentleman had left there early in the
morning, having discharged his lodgings, and
they were unable to say whither he had gone.
To hunt for a man without some clue by
which to discover him, in the city of London, is 
time misspent. Of this Moseley was
perfectly sensible, and disregarding a proposition 
made by Peter, he returned to his own
lodgings. The proposal of the steward's, if
it did not do much credit to his sagacity, honoured 
his perseverance and enterprise not a
little. It was no other than this; John should
take one side of the street, and he the other,
and they would thus inquire at every house,
until the fugitive was discovered. &quot;Sir,&quot;
said Peter, with great simplicity, &quot;when our
neighbour White lost his little girl, this was
the way we found her, although we went
nearly through L -- before we succeeded,
Mr. John.&quot; Peter was obliged to abandon
this expedient for want of an associate, and
as no message was at the lodgings of Moseley, he 
started with a heavy heart on his return to Benefield 
Lodge. But Moseley's zeal
was too warm in the cause of his friend, notwithstanding 
his unmerited desertion, not to
continue his search for him. He sought out
the town residence of the Marquess of Eltringham, the 
brother of Lord Henry, and
was told, both the Marquess and his brother
had left town early that morning for his seat
in Devonshire, to attend the wedding of their
sister.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Did they go alone?&quot; asked John, musing.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There were two chaises, the Marquess'
and his Grace's.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Who was his Grace?&quot; inquired John.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, the Duke of Derwent, to be sure.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And the Duke? was he alone?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There was a gentleman with his Grace,
but they did not know his name.&quot;
</para>
<para>
As nothing further could be learnt, John
withdrew. There was a good deal of irritation 
mixed with the vexation of Moseley at
his disappointment, for Denbigh, he thought,
evidently wished to avoid him. That he was
the companion of his kinsman, the Duke of
Derwent, he had now no doubt, and entirely
relinquished all expectations of finding him
in London or its environs. While retracing
his steps, in no enviable state of mind, to his
lodgings, with a resolution of returning 
immediately to L -- , his arm was suddenly
taken by his friend Chatterton. If any man
could have consoled John at that moment, it
was the Baron. Questions and answers were
rapidly exchanged between them, and with
increased satisfaction, John learnt that in the
next square, he could have the pleasure of
paying his respects to his kinswomen, the
Dowager Lady Chatterton, and her daughters. Chatterton 
inquired warmly after Emily, and in a particularly kind
 manner concerning Mr. Denbigh, but with undisguised
astonishment learnt his absence from the
Moseley family.
</para>
<para>
Lady Chatterton had disciplined her feelings upon 
the subject of Grace and John, into
such a state of subordination, that the fastidious 
jealousy of the young man now found
no ground of alarm, in any thing she said or
did. It cannot be denied the Dowager was
delighted to see him again -- and, if it were
fair to draw any conclusions from colouring
-- palpitations -- and other such little accompaniments 
of female feeling -- Grace was not
excessively sorry. It is true, it was the best
possible opportunity to ascertain all about
her friend Emily and the rest of the family;
and Grace was extremely happy to have so
direct intelligence of their general welfare,
as was afforded by this visit of Mr. Moseley.
Grace looked all she expressed -- and perhaps
rather more -- and John thought she looked
very beautifully.
</para>
<para>
There was present an elderly gentleman, of
apparently indifferent health, although his
manners were extremely lively, and his dress
particularly studied. A few minutes observation 
convinced Moseley this gentleman was a
candidate for the favour of Kate, and as a game
of chess was introduced, he also saw he was one
thought worthy of peculiar care and attention.
He had been introduced to him as Lord Herriefield, 
and soon discovered by his conversation, that he was 
a peer, of but little probability of rendering 
the house of incurables more
convalescent, than it was before his admission.
Chatterton mentioned him as a distant connexion 
of his mother; a gentleman who had
lately returned from filling an official situation 
in the East-Indies, to take his seat among
the lords, by the death of his brother. He
was a bachelor and reputed rich, much of his
wealth being personal property, acquired by
himself abroad. The dutiful son might have
added, if respect and feeling had not kept
him silent -- That his offers of settling a large
jointure upon his elder sister had been accepted, 
and that the following week was to make
her the bride of the emaciated debauchee,
who now sat by her side. He might also
have said, that when the proposition was
made to himself and Grace, both had shrunk
from the alliance with disgust; and that both
had united in humble, though vain remonstrances 
to their mother, against the sacrifice, and in
petitions to their sister, that she would not
be accessary to her own misery. There was
no pecuniary sacrifice they would not make
to her, to avert such a connexion; but all was
fruitless -- Kate was resolved to be a viscountess --
 and her mother that she should be rich.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter V.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
A day elapsed between the departure of
Denbigh and the appearance of Emily again
amongst her friends. An indifferent observer 
would have thought her much graver and
less animated than usual. A loss of the rich
colour which ordinarily glowed on her healthful 
cheek might be noticed; but the same
placid sweetness and graceful composure
which regulated her former conduct, pervaded all 
she did or uttered -- not so Jane: her
pride had suffered more than her feelings 
 -- her imagination had been more deceived
than her judgment -- and although too well
bred and soft by nature, to become rude or
captious, she was changed from a communicative -- 
to a reserved; from a confiding -- to a
suspicious companion. Her parents noticed
this alteration with an uneasiness, that was
somewhat imbittered by the consciousness of
a neglect of some of those duties that experience 
now seemed to indicate, could never
be forgotten with impunity.
</para>
<para>
Francis and Clara had arrived from their
northern tour, so happy in each other, and contented 
with their lot, that it required some little exercise 
of fortitude in both Lady Moseley
and her daughters, to expel unpleasant recollections 
while they contemplated it. Their relation of the
 little incidents of their tour, had,
however, an effect to withdraw the attention of
their friends in some degree from late occurrences; 
and a melancholy and sympathising
kind of association, had taken place of the
the unbounded confidence and gayety, which
had lately prevailed at Benfield Lodge. Mr.
Benfield mingled with his solemnity an air
of mystery; and was frequently noticed by his
relatives looking over old papers, and apparently 
employed in preparations that indicated
movements of more than usual importance.
</para>
<para>
The family were collected in one of the
parlours on an extremely unpleasant day, the
fourth of the departure of John, when the
thin personage of Johnson stalked in amongst
them. All eyes were fixed on him in expectation 
of what he had to communicate, and
all apparently dreading to break the silence,
from an apprehension his communication
would be an unpleasant one. In the mean
time Peter, who had respectfully left his hat
at the door, proceeded to uncase his body
from the multiplied defences the wary steward 
had taken against the inclemency of the
weather. His master stood erect, with an
outstretched hand, ready to receive the reply
to his epistle, and Johnson having liberated
his body from thraldom, produced the black
leather pocket-book, and from its contents a
letter, as he read aloud -- Roderic Benfield,
Esq. Benfield Lodge, Norfolk; favoured by
Mr. -- here Peter's modesty got the better of
his method; he had never been called Mr.
</para>
<para>
Johnson by any body old or young; all
knew him in that neighbourhood as Peter
Johnson -- and he had very nearly been quilty
of the temerity of arrogating to himself another 
title in the presence of those he most
respected. A degree of self-elevation he had
escaped from with the loss of a small piece
of his tongue. Mr. Benfield took the letter
with an eagerness that plainly indicated the
deep interest he took in its contents, while
Emily, with a tremulous voice and flushed
cheek, approached the steward with a glass of
wine, as she said,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Peter, take this, it will do you good.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Thank you, Miss Emmy,&quot; said Peter,
casting his eyes from her to his master, as the
latter having finished his letter, exclaimed
with a strange mixture of consideration and
disappointment,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Johnson, you must change your clothes
immediately, or you will take cold; you
look now, like old Moses, the Jew beggar.&quot;
Peter sighed heavily as he listened to this
comparison, and saw in it a confirmation
of his fears; for he well knew, that to his
being the bearer of unpleasant tidings, was
he indebted to a resemblance to any thing
unpleasant to his master -- and Moses was
the old gentleman's aversion.
</para>
<para>
The baronet followed his uncle from the room
to his library, and entered it at the same moment
with the steward, who had been summoned
by his master to an audience; pointing to a
chair for his nephew, Mr. Benfield commenced with saying,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Peter, you saw Mr. Denbigh; how did he
look?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;As usual, master,&quot; said Peter laconically, 
and a littled piqued at being likened to old Moses.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And what did he say to the offer? did he
not make any comments on it? he was not
offended at it, I hope,&quot; cried Mr. Benfield.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He said nothing but what he has written
to your honour,&quot; replied the steward, losing
a little of his constrained manner in real good
feeling to his master.
</para>
<para>
&quot;May I ask what the offer was?&quot; inquired Sir Edward 
of his uncle, who, regarding him a moment in silence, 
said, &quot;certainly, you are nearly concerned in his 
welfare; your daughter&quot; -- the old man stopped
as he turned to his letter book, and handed
the baronet the copy of the epistle he had
sent to Denbigh for his perusal; it read as
follows:
</para>
<letter><salut>
Dear Friend, Mr. Denbigh,
</salut>
<para>
I have thought a great deal on the reason of
your sudden departure from a house I had began to 
hope, you thought your own; and by
calling to mind my own feelings when Lady
Juliana became the heiress to her nephew's estate, 
take it for granted you have been governed by the 
same sentiments; which I know, both
by my own experience and that of the bearer, Peter 
Johnson, is a never-failing accompaniment 
of pure affection. Yes, my dear
Denbigh, I honour your delicacy in not wishing to 
become indebted to a stranger, as it
were, for the money on which you subsist,
and that stranger your wife -- who ought in
reason to look up to you, instead of your
looking up to her; which was the true cause
Lord Gosford would not marry the countess 
-- on account of her great wealth, as he assured
me himself; notwithstanding envious people,
said it was because her ladyship loved Mr.
Chaworth better: so in order to remove these
impediments of your delicacy, I have to
make three propositions -- that I bring you
into parliament the next election for my borough -- 
that you take possession of the
lodge the same day you marry Emmy, while
I will live, for the little time I have to stay
here, in the large cottage built by my uncle 
-- and that I give you your legacy of ten thousand pounds 
down, to prevent trouble hereafter.
</para>
<para>
&quot;As I know it is nothing but delicacy
which has driven you away from us, I make
no doubt you will find all objections removed, 
and that Peter will bring the joyful
intelligence of your return to us, as soon as
the business you left us on, is completed. 
-- Your uncle, that is to be,
</para>
<sig>
&quot;Roderic Benfield.&quot;
</sig>
<para>
&quot;N.B. As Johnson is a stranger to the ways
of the town, I wish you to advise his inexperience, 
particularly against the arts of designing women, 
Peter being a man of considerable estate.&quot;
</para></letter>
<para>
&quot;There, nephew,&quot; cried Mr. Benfield, as
the baronet finished reading the letter aloud,
&quot;is it not unreasonable to refuse my offers?
now read his answer.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Words are wanting to express the sensations which 
have been excited by Mr. Benfield's letter; but it would be impossible for
any man to be so base as to avail himself of
such liberality; the recollection of it, together
with his many virtues, will long continue
deeply impressed on the heart of him, who Mr.
Benfield would, if within the power of man,
render the happiest amongst human beings.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The steward listened eagerly to this answer, but after it was done was as much as a
loss to know its contents, as before its perusal. He knew it was unfavourable to their
wishes, but could not comprehend its meaning or expressions, and immediately attributed
their ambiguity, to the strange conference he
had witnessed between Denbigh and the military stranger.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Master,&quot; exclaimed Peter, with something of 
the elation of a discoverer, &quot;I know
the cause, it shows itself in the letter; there
was a man talking Greek to him while he
was reading your letter.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Greek!&quot; exclaimed Sir Edward in astonishment.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Greek?&quot; said the uncle, &quot;Lord Gossford read Greek; 
but I believe never conversed in that language.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, Sir Edward -- yes, your honour -- pure
wild Greek; it must have been something of
that kind,&quot; added Peter with positiveness,
&quot;that would make a man refuse such offers 
 -- Miss Emmy -- the lodge -- 10,000 pounds&quot; -- and
the steward shook his head with much satisfaction 
at at having discovered the cause.
</para>
<para>
Sir Edward smiled at the simplicity of
Johnson, but disliking the idea attached to the
refusal of his daughter, said, &quot;perhaps, after
all, uncle, there has been some misunderstanding 
between Emily and Denbigh, which
may have driven him from us so suddenly.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr. Benfield and his steward exchanged
looks, and a new idea broke upon them at
the instant; they had both suffered in that
way, and after all, it might prove, Emily was
the one, whose taste or feelings had subverted
their schemes. The impression once made
was indelible -- and the party separated -- the
master thinking alternately on Lady Juliana
and his niece, while the man -- after heaving
one heavy sigh to the memory of Patty
Steele, proceeded to the usual occupations of
his office.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson thinking a ride would be of
service to Emily, and having the fullest confidence 
in her self-command and resignation,
availed herself of a fine day to pay a visit to
their friend in the cottage. Mrs. Fitzgerald
received them in her usual manner, but a
single glance of her eye, sufficed to show the
aunt, that she noticed the altered appearance
of Emily and her manners, although without
knowing its true reason, which she did not
deem it prudent to explain -- Julia handed her
friend a note she stated to have received the
day before, and desired their counsel how to
proceed in the present emergency; as Emily
was to be made acquainted with its contents,
her aunt read aloud as follows:
</para>
<letter><salut>
&quot;My Dear Niece,
</salut>
<para>
&quot;Your father and myself had been induced
to think you were leading a disgraceful life,
with the officer, your husband had consigned 
you to the care of; for hearing of your
captivity, I had arrived with a band of
Guerillas, on the spot where you were rescued, 
early the next morning, and there learnt
of the peasants your misfortunes and retreat;
the enemy pressed us too much to deviate
from our route at the time; but natural affection 
and the wishes of your father, have led
me to a journey to England, to satisfy our
doubts as regards your conduct. I have seen
you -- heard your character in the neighbourhood, 
and after much and long search, found
out the officer, and am satisfied, that, so far as
concerns your deportment, you are an injured 
woman. I have therefore to propose
to you, on my own behalf, and that of the
Conde, that you adopt the faith of your
country, and return with me to the arms of
your parent, whose heiress you will be,
and whose life you may be the means of 
prolonging. Direct your answer to me, to the
care of our ambassador; and as you decide,
I am your mother's brother,
</para>
<sig>
&quot;Louis M'Carthy y Harrison.&quot;
</sig></letter>
<para>
&quot;On what point is it you wish my advice,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson kindly, after she
finished reading the letter, &quot;and when do you
expect to see your uncle?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Would you have me to accept the offer
of my father, dear madam, or am I to remain separated 
from him for the short residue of his life?&quot; Mrs. 
Fitzgerald was affected to tears, as she asked this question of
her friend, and waited her answer, in silent
dread of its nature.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Is the condition of a change of religion,
an immoveable one?&quot; inquired Mrs. Wilson,
in a thoughtful manner.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! doubtless,&quot; replied Julia, shuddering, 
&quot;but I am deservedly punished for my
early disobedience, and bow in submission to
the will of providence -- I feel now all that
horror of a change of my religion, I once
only affected -- I must live and die a protestant, madam.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Certainly, I hope so, my dear,&quot; said
Mrs. Wilson, &quot;I am not a bigot, and think it
unfortunate you were not, in your circumstances, 
bred a pious catholic. It would have
saved you much misery, and might have rendered the 
close of your father's life more happy;
but as your present creed, embraces doctrines
too much at variance with the Romish
church, to renounce the one, or adopt the
other, with your views, it will be impossible
to change your church, without committing
a heavy offence, against the opinions and
practice of every denomination of christians;
I should hope a proper representation of this
to your uncle, would have its weight, or they
might be satisfied with your being a christian, 
without becoming a catholic.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah! my dear madam,&quot; answered Mrs.
Fitzgerald, despairingly, you little know the
opinions of my countrymen on this subject.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Surely, surely,&quot; cried Mrs. Wilson, 
&quot;parental affection is a stronger feeling than
bigotry.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Fitzgerald shook her head, in silence,
and in a manner which bespoke both her apprehensions and filial regard.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Julia, ought not -- must not -- desert her
father, dear aunt,&quot; said Emily, as her face
glowed with the ardency of her feelings.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And ought she to desert her heavenly
father, my child?&quot; asked the aunt, mildly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And are the duties conflicting?&quot; said
Emily.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Conde makes them so,&quot; rejoined
Mrs. Wilson; &quot;Julia is, I trust, in sincerity
a christian, and with what face can she offer
up her daily petitions to her creator, while
she wears a mask to her earthly father; or
how can she profess to honour doctrines, that
she herself believes to be false, or practice
customs she is impressed are improper.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Never, never,&quot; exclaimed Julia, with
fervour; &quot;the struggle is dreadful, 
but I submit to the greater duty.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And you decide right, my friend,&quot; said
Mrs. Wilson, soothingly; &quot;but you need relax 
no efforts to convince the Conde of your
wishes; the truth and nature will finally
conquer.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah!&quot; cried Mrs. Fitzgerald, &quot;the sad
consequences of one false step in early life.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Rather,&quot; added Mrs. Wilson, &quot;the sad
consequences of one false step in generations
gone by; had your grandmother listened to
the voice of prudence and duty, she never
would have deserted her parents for a comparative 
stranger, and entailed upon her descendants a train 
of evils, which yet exist in your person.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It will be a sad blow to my poor uncle,
too,&quot; said Mrs. Fitzgerald, &quot;he who loved
me so much once.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;When do you expect to see him?&quot; inquired Emily -- 
Julia informed them, she expected him hourly, as fearful 
a written statement of her views, would drive him from the
country without paying her a visit before he
departed, she had earnestly intreated him to
see her without delay.
</para>
<para>
On taking their leave, the ladies promised
to obey her summons whenever called to
meet the general, as Mrs. Wilson thought
she might be better able to give advice to her
friend, in future, by knowing more of the
character of her relatives, than she could do
with her present information.
</para>
<para>
One day intervened, and was spent in the
united society of Lady Moseley and her
daughters; while Sir Edward and Francis
rode to a neighbouring town on business; and
on the succeeding, Mrs. Fitzgerald apprised
them of the arrival of General M'Carthy. 
Immediately after breakfast, Mrs. Wilson and
Emily drove to the cottage, the aunt both
wishing the latter as a companion in her ride,
and believing the excitement would have a
tendency to prevent her niece from indulging
in reflections, dangerous to her peace of mind,
and at variance with her duty.
</para>
<para>
Our readers have probably anticipated, that
the stage companion of John Moseley, was the
Spanish general, who had then been making
those inquiries into the manner of his niece's
living, which terminated in her acquittal in
his judgment. With that part of her history which 
relates to the injurious attempts
on her before she arrived at Lisbon, he appears to 
have been ignorant, or his interview
with Denbigh might have terminated very
differently from the manner already related.
</para>
<para>
A description of the appearance of the gentleman 
presented to Mrs. Wilson is unnecessary, as 
it has been given already, and the
discerning matron thought she read through
</para>
<para>
the rigid and set features of the soldier, a
shade of kinder feelings, which might be
wrought into an advantageous intercession
on behalf of Julia. The General was evidently 
endeavouring to keep his feelings within due 
bounds, before the decision of his niece
might render it proper for him to indulge in
that affection for her, his eye plainly shewed
existed under the cover of his assumed manner.
</para>
<para>
It was an effort of great fortitude on
the part of Julia to acquaint her uncle with
her resolution; but as it must be done, she
seized a moment after Mrs. Wilson had at
some length defended her adhering to her
present faith, until religiously impressed with
its errors, to inform him such was her unalterable 
resolution; -- he heard her patiently,
and without anger, but in visible surprise;
he had construed her summons to her house,
as a preparatory measure to accepting his
conditions; yet he betrayed no emotion, after
the first expression of his wonder; he told
her distinctly, a renunciation of her heresy
was the only condition her father would
own her, either as his heiress or his child.
Julia deeply regretted the decision, but was
firm -- and her friends left her to enjoy uninterruptedly 
for one day, the society of so
near a relative. During this day, every doubt
as to the propriety of her conduct, if any
yet remained, was removed by a relation of
her little story to her uncle, and after it was
completed, he expressed great uneasiness to
get to London again; in order to meet a gentleman 
he had seen there, under a different
impression as to his merits, than what now
appeared to be just; -- who the gentleman
was, or what the impressions were, Julia
was left to conjecture -- taciturnity being a
favourite property in the general.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter VI.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The sun had just risen on one of the
loveliest vales of Caernarvonshire, as a travelling 
chaise and six swept proudly up to
the door of a princely mansion, which was
so situated as to command a prospect of the
fertile and extensive domains, whose rental
filled the coffers of its owner, with a beautiful 
view of the Irish channel in the distance.
</para>
<para>
Every thing around this stately edifice bespoke the 
magnificence of its ancient possessors and taste of its present master -- It
was irregular, but built of the best materials,
and tastes of the different ages in which its
various parts had been erected; and now in
the nineteenth century, preserved the baronial grandeur of the thirteenth, mingled
with the comforts of this later period.
</para>
<para>
The lofty turrets of its towers were tipt with
the golden light of the sun, and the neighbouring 
peasantry had commenced their daily
labours, as the different attendants of the
equipage we have mentioned, collected around
it at the great entrance to the building. The
beautiful black horses, with coats as shining
as the polished leather with which they were
caparisoned -- the elegant and fashionable
finish of the vehicle -- with its numerous
grooms, postilions, and footmen, all wearing
the livery of one master, gave evidence of his
wealth and rank.
</para>
<para>
In attendance there were four outriders,
walking leisurely about, awaiting the appearance 
of those for whose comforts and
pleasures they were kept to contribute;
while a fifth, who, like the others, was
equipped with a horse, appeared to bear a
doubtful station -- his form was athletic
and apparently drilled into a severer submission 
than could be seen in the movements
of the liveried attendants; his dress was peculiar -- 
it was neither menial nor military 
-- but partook of both; his horse was heavier
and better managed than those of the others,
and by its side was a charger, that was prepared 
for the use of no common equestrian.
Both were coal black, as were all the others
of the cavalcade; but the pistols of the two
latter, and housings of their saddles, bore the
aspect of use and elegance united.
</para>
<para>
The postilions were mounted and listlessly
waiting with their comrades the pleasure of
their superiors; when the laughs and jokes of
the menials were instantly succeeded by a respectful 
and profound silence, as a gentleman
and lady appeared on the portico of the
building. The former was a young man of
commanding stature, and genteel appearance;
and his air -- although that of one used to
command, softened by a character of benevolence 
and gentleness, that might be rightly
judged as giving birth to the willing alacrity, to
which all his requests or orders were attended.
</para>
<para>
The lady was also young, and resembled him 
greatly both in features and
expression -- both were noble -- both were
handsome -- the former was attired for the
road -- the latter had thrown a shawl around
her elegant form, and by her morning dress,
showed a separation of the two was about
to happen -- taking the hand of the gentleman with both her own, as the pressed
it with fingers interlocked, the lady said, in
a voice of music, and with great affection:
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then, my dear brother, I shall certainly
hear from you within the week, and see you
next?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Certainly,&quot; replied the gentleman, as he
tenderly paid his adieus, and throwing himself into the chaise, it dashed from the door,
like the passage of a meteor -- the horsemen
followed, the unridden charger, obedient
to the orders of his keeper, wheeled gracefully into his station, and in an instant they
were all lost amidst the wood, through which
the road to the park gates conducted them.
</para>
<para>
After lingering without until the last of her
brother's followers had receded from her
sight, the lady retired through the ranks of
liveried footmen and maids, whom curiosity
or respect, had collected as spectators to the
departure of their master.
</para>
<para>
It might be relevant to relate the subject of
the young man's reflections; who wore a gloom
on his expressive features amidst the pageantry
that surrounded him, which showed the insufficiency of wealth and honours to fill the
sum of human happiness. As his carriage
rolled proudly up an eminence ere he had
reached the confines of his extensive park,
his eye rested for a moment, on a scene, in
which meadows-forests -- fields, waving with
golden corn -- comfortable farm houses, surrounded with innumerable cottages, were to
be seen, in almost endless variety, and innumerable groups -- all these owned him for
their lord, and one quiet smile of satisfaction
beamed on his face as he gazed on the unlimited view before him -- could the heart of
that youth have been read, it would at that
moment have told a story different from the
feelings such a scene is apt to excite; it
would have spoken the consciousness of
well-applied wealth -- the gratification of contemplating 
its own meritorious deeds, and a
heartfelt gratitude to the being, which had
enabled him to become the dispenser of happiness to 
so many of his fellow-creatures.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Which way, my lord, so early,&quot; cried a
gentleman in a phaeton, as he drew up, to pay
his own parting compliments, on his way to
a watering place.
</para>
<para>
&quot;To Eltringham, Sir Owen, to attend the
marriage of my kinsman, Mr. Denbigh, to
one of the sisters of the marquess.&quot; A few
more questions and answers, and the gentlemen exchanging friendly adieus, pursued
each his own course -- Sir Owen Ap Rice,
for Cheltenham, and the Earl of Pendennyss to act as grooms-man to his cousin.
</para>
<para>
The gates of Eltringham were open to the
admission of many an equipage on the following day, 
and the heart of the Lady Laura beat
quick, as the sound of wheels, at different
times, reached her ears; at last an unusual
movement in the house drew her to a window
of her dressing-room, and the blood rushed
to her heart, as she beheld the equipages
which were rapidly approaching, and through
the mist which stole over her eyes, saw
alight from the first, the Duke of Derwent
and the bride-groom -- the next contained
the Lord Pendennyss -- and the last the
bishop of -- ; Lady Laura waited to
see no more, but with a heart filled with
terror -- hope -- joy and uneasiness, threw herself 
into the arms of one of her sisters.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah!&quot; exclaimed Lord Henry Stapleton,
about a week after the wedding of his sister,
as he took John by the arm, suddenly, while
the latter was taking his morning walk to
the residence of the dowager Lady Chatterton, 
&quot;Moseley, you dissipated youth, in
town yet; you told me you should stay but
a day, and here I find you at the end of a
fortnight.&quot; John blushed a little at the consciousness 
of his reasons for sending a written, instead of 
carrying a verbal report, of the
result of his journey, as he replied,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, my lord, my friend Chatterton unexpectedly arrived, and so -- and so -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And so you did not go, I presume you
mean,&quot; cried Lord Henry, with a laugh.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes,&quot; said John, &quot;and so I staid -- but
where is Denbigh?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Where? -- why with his wife, where
every well-behaved man should be, especially
for the first month,&quot; rejoined the sailor gayly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Wife!&quot; echoed John, as soon as he felt
able to give utterance to his words -- &quot;wife!
is he married?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Married,&quot; cried Lord Henry, imitating
his manner, &quot;are you yet to learn that; why
did you ask for him?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ask for him,&quot; said Moseley, yet lost in
astonishment; &quot;but when -- how -- where did
he marry -- my lord?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Lord Henry looked at him for a moment,
with a surprise little short of his own, as
he answered more gravely.
</para>
<para>
&quot;When? -- last Tuesday; how? by special license, 
and the Bishop of -- ; where?
-- at Eltringham; -- yes, my dear fellow,&quot; 
continued he, with his former gayety, &quot;George
is my brother now -- and a fine fellow he is.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I really wish your lordship much joy,&quot;
said John, struggling to command his feelings.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Thank you -- thank you,&quot; replied the
sailor; &quot;a jolly time we had of it, Moseley
-- I wish, with all my heart, you had been
there -- no bolting or running away, as soon
as spliced, but a regularly constructed, old
fashioned wedding -- all my doings -- I wrote
Laura that time was scarce, and I had none
to throw away on fooleries; so dear, good
soul, she consented to let me have every
thing my own way -- we had Derwent and
Pendennyss, the marquess, Lord William, and
myself, for grooms-men, and my three sisters
-- ah, that was bad, but there was no helping
it -- Lady Harriet Denbigh, and an old maid,
a cousin of ours, for brides-maids -- could
not help the old maid either, upon my honour, or I would.&quot;
</para>
<para>
How much of what he said Moseley heard,
we cannot say, for had he talked an hour
longer he would have been uninterrupted 
 -- Lord Henry was too much engaged with
his description to notice his companions
taciturnity or surprise, and after walking a
square or two together they parted; the sailor
being on the wing for his frigate at Yarmouth.
</para>
<para>
John continued his course, musing on the intelligence 
he had just heard -- that Denbigh
could forget Emily so soon, he would not
believe, and he greatly feared he had
been driven into a step, from despair, that
he might hereafter repent of -- his avoiding
himself, was now fully explained -- but would
Lady Laura Stapleton accept a man for a
husband at so short a notice? and for the first
time a suspicion that something in the character of 
Denbigh was wrong, mingled in his
reflections on his sister's refusal of his offers.
</para>
<para>
Lord and Lady Herriefield were on the eve
of their departure for the continent, (for
Catherine had been led to the altar the preceding week,) 
as a southern climate was prescribed by his physicians as necessary to his
constitution; and the dowager and Grace
were about to proceed to a seat of the baron's within a couple of miles of Bath 
 -- Chatterton himself had his own engagements, 
but promised to be there in company
with his friend Derwent within a fortnight;
their former visit having been postponed by
the marriages in their respective families.
</para>
<para>
John had been assiduous in his attentions,
during the season of forced gayety which followed 
the nuptials of Kate; and as the
dowager's time was monopolised with the
ceremonials of that event, Grace had risen
greatly in his estimation -- if Grace Chatterton was 
not more unhappy than usual, at what
she thought was the destruction of her sister's
happiness, it was owing to the presence and
evident affections of John Moseley.
</para>
<para>
The carriage of Lord Herriefield was in waiting as 
John rang for admittance; on opening
the door and entering the drawing-room, he
saw the bride and bride-groom, with their mother 
and sister, accoutred for an excursion
amongst the shops of Bond-street; for Kate
was dying to find a vent for some of her surplus 
pin-money -- her husband to show his
handsome wife in the face of the world 
 -- the mother to witness the success of her
matrimonial schemes -- and Grace was forced
to obey her mother's commands, in accompanying 
her sister as an attendant, not to be
dispensed with at all, in her circumstances.
</para>
<para>
The entrance of John at that instant, though
nothing more than what occurred every day
at that hour, deranged the whole plan: the
dowager, for a moment, forgot her resolution,
and forgot the necessity of Grace's appearance, 
as she exclaimed with evident satisfaction,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Here is Mr. Moseley come to keep you
company, Grace, so after all you must consult your head-ache 
and stay at home. Indeed, my love, I never can consent you should
go out. I not only wish, but insist you remain within this morning.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Lord Herriefield looked at his mother-inlaw in some surprise 
as he listened to her injunctions, and threw a suspicious glance on
his own rib at the moment, which spoke as
plainly as looks can speak.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Is it possible I have been taken in after
all.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Grace was unused to resist her mother's
commands, and throwing off her hat and
shawl, reseated herself with more composure than 
she would have done, had not
the attentions of Moseley been more delicate
and pointed of late than formerly.
</para>
<para>
As they passed the porter, Lady Chatterton
observed to him significantly -- &quot; nobody at
home, Willis:&quot; -- &quot;Yes, my lady,&quot; was the laconic reply, 
and Lord Herriefield, as he took
his seat by the side of his wife in the carriage,
thought she was not as handsome as usual.
</para>
<para>
Lady Chatterton that morning unguardedly
laid the foundation of years of misery for her
eldest daughter; or rather the foundations were
already laid in the ill-assorted, and heartless,
unprincipled union she had laboured with success to 
effect. But she had that morning
stripped the mask from her own character
prematurely, and excited suspicions in the
breast of her son-in-law, time only served to
confirm and memory to brood over.
</para>
<para>
Lord Herriefield had been too long in the
world not to understand all the ordinary arts of
match-makers and match-hunters. Like most
of his own sex, who have associated freely
with the worst part of the other, his opinions
of female excellencies were by no means extravagant 
or romantic. Kate had pleased his
eye; she was of a noble family; young, and
at that moment interestingly quiet, having
nothing particularly in view. She had a taste
of her own, and Lord Herriefield was by no
means in conformity with it; consequently
she expended none of those pretty little arts upon 
him she occasionally practised, and which
his experience would immediately have detected. Her 
disgust he had attributed to disinterestedness, 
and as Kate had fixed her eye
on a young officer lately returned from France,
and her mother, on a Duke who was mourning the death 
of his third wife, devising
means to console him with a fourth -- the Viscount 
had got a good deal enamoured with
the lady, before either she or her mother, took
any particular notice there was such a being
in existence. His title was not the most elevated -- 
but it was ancient. His paternal acres
were not numerous -- but his East-India shares
were. He was not very young -- but he was not
very old; and as the Duke died of a fit of the gout
in his stomach -- and the officer run away with
a girl in her teens from a boarding-school 
 -- the Dowager and her daughter, after thoroughly 
scanning the fashionable world, determined, for want of a better, he would do.
</para>
<para>
It is not to be supposed that the mother and
child held any open communications with each
other, to this effect. The delicacy and pride
of both would have been greatly injured by
such a suspicion; yet they arrived simultaneously 
at the same conclusion, and at another
of equal importance to the completion of their
schemes on the person of the Viscount. It
was to adhere to the same conduct which had
made him a captive, as most likely to ensure
the victory.
</para>
<para>
There was such a general understanding
between the two, it can excite no surprise
they co-operated so harmoniously, as it were
by signal.
</para>
<para>
For two people, correctly impressed with
their duties and responsibilities, to arrive
at the same conclusion in the government
of their conduct, would be merely a matter of 
course; and so with those who are
more or less under the dominion of the world.
They will pursue their plans with a degree
of concurrence amounting nearly to sympathy; 
and thus had Kate and her mother 
 -- until this morning, kept up the masquerade
so well, that the Viscount was as confiding
as a country Corydon -- when he first witnessed 
the Dowager's management with
Grace and John, and his wife's careless disregard 
of a thing, which appeared too much a
matter of course, to be quite agreeable to his
newly awakened distrust.
</para>
<para>
Grace Chatterton both sang and played
exquisitely; it was, however, seldom she
could sufficiently overcome, her desire to excel, 
when John was her auditor, to appear to
her usual advantage.
</para>
<para>
As the party went down stairs, and Moseley had gone 
with them part of the way, she
threw herself unconsciously on a seat, and began a 
beautiful song, fashionable at the time.
Her feelings were in consonance with the
words -- and Grace was very happy in both
execution and voice.
</para>
<para>
John had reached the back of her seat before 
she was sensible of his return, and
Grace lost her self command immediately.
She rose and took her seat on a sopha, whither
the young man took his by her side.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah Grace,&quot; said John, and the lady's heart
beat high, &quot;you do sing as you do every thing,
admirably.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am happy you think so, Mr. Moseley,&quot;
returned Grace, looking every where but in
his face.
</para>
<para>
John's eyes ran over her beauties, as with
palpitating bosom and varying colour, she
sat confused at the warmth of his language.
and manner.
</para>
<para>
Fortunately, a remarkably striking likeness
of the Dowager, which graced the room, hung
directly over their heads -- and John, taking her
unresisting hand, continued: &quot;Dear Grace,
you resemble your brother very much in features, 
and, what is better, in character.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I would wish,&quot; said Grace, venturing to
look up, &quot;to resemble your sister Emily in
the latter.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And why not to be her sister, dear
Grace,&quot; said he with ardor. &quot;You are worthy to become 
her sister. Tell me, Grace 
 -- dear Miss Chatterton -- can you -- will you
make me the happiest of men -- may I present
another inestimable daughter to my parents.&quot;
</para>
<para>
As John paused for an answer, Grace looked up, and 
he waited her reply in evident anxiety; but 
as she continued silent -- now pale as
death, and now the colour of the rose -- he
added:
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hope I have not offended you, dearest
Grace -- you are all that is desirable to me 
 -- my hopes -- my happiness -- are centered in
you -- unless you consent to become my wife,
I must be wretched.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Grace burst into a flood of tears, as her lover,
interested deeply in their cause, gently drew
her towards him -- her head sunk upon
his shoulder, as she faintly whispered something, 
that was inaudible -- but which her
lover interpreted into every thing he most
wished to hear. John was in extacies 
-- every unpleasant feeling of suspicion had
left him -- of Grace's innocence of manoeuvring, 
he never doubted, but John did not
relish the idea of being entrapped into any
thing, even a step which he desired -- an
uninterrupted communication, between the
young people, followed; it was as confiding
as their affections -- and the return of the
dowager and her children, first recalled them
to the recollection of other people.
</para>
<para>
One glance of the eye was enough for Lady
Chatterton -- she saw the traces of tears on
the cheeks and in the eyes of Grace, and the
dowager was satisfied; she knew his friends
would not object; and as Grace attended her
to her dressing room, she cried, on entering
it, &quot;well, child, when is the wedding to be?
you will wear me out in so much gayety.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Grace was shocked, but did not, as formerly,
weep over her mother's interference in agony
and dread -- John had opened his whole
soul to her, observing the greatest delicacy to
her mother, and she now felt her happiness
placed in the keeping of a man, whose honour, 
she believed, far exceeded that of any
other human being.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter VII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The seniors of the party at Benfield Lodge
were all assembled one morning in a parlour,
when its master and the Baronet were occupied in 
the perusal of the London papers. Clara
had persuaded her sisters to accompany her and
Francis in an excursion as far as the village.
</para>
<para>
Jane yet continued reserved and distant to
most of her friends, while Emily's conduct
would have escaped unnoticed, did not her
blanch'd cheek and wandering looks, at times,
speak a language not to be misunderstood.
With all her relatives she maintained the same
affectionate intercourse she had always supported; 
but not even to her aunt did the name
of Denbigh pass her lips. But in her most
private and humble petitions to her God,
she never forgot to mingle with her requests
for spiritual blessings on herself, one fervent
prayer for the conversion of the preserver of
her life.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson, as she sat by the side of her
sister at their needles, first discovered an
unusual uneasiness in their venerable host,
while he turned his paper over and over, as if
unwilling or unable to comprehend some part
of its contents, until he rang the bell violently, 
and bid the servant send Johnson to him
without a moment's delay.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Peter,&quot; said Mr. Benfield doubtingly, as
he entered, &quot;read that -- your eyes are young.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Peter took the paper, and after having adjusted his 
spectacles to his satisfaction, proceeded to obey his master's injunctions. But
the same defect of vision as suddenly seized
on the steward, as had affected his master.
He turned the paper sideways, and appeared
to be spelling the matter of the paragraph to
himself. Peter would have given his three
hundred a year, to have had the impatient
John Moseley at hand, to have relieved him
from his task; but the anxiety of Mr. Benfield,
overcoming his fear of the worst, he inquired in a tremulous tone 
 -- 
   &quot;Peter?&quot; -- hem! -- &quot;Peter, what do you
think?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, your honour,&quot; replied the steward,
stealing a look at his master, &quot;it does seem so
indeed.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I remember,&quot; said the master, &quot;when
Lord Gosford saw the marriage of the Countess announced, he -- .&quot; 
Here the old gentleman was obliged to stop, and rising with 
dignity and leaning on the arm of his faithful
servant, he left the room.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson immediately took up the paper, and her eye catching the paragraph at a
glance, she read aloud as follows to her expecting friends: 
 -- 
   &quot;Married, by special licence, at the seat of
the Most Noble, the Marquess of Eltringham,
in Devonshire, by the Rt. Rev. Lord Bishop of
-- , George Denbigh, Esq. Lt. Col. of his
Majesty's -- regiment of dragoons, to the
Rt. Hon. Lady Laura Stapleton, eldest sister
of the Marquess. Eltringham was honoured
on the present happy occasion with the presence 
of his Grace of Derwent, and the gallant Lord Pendennyss, 
kinsmen of the bridegroom, and Capt. Lord Henry Stapleton, of
the Royal Navy. We understand the happy
couple proceed to Denbigh Castle immediately after the honey-moon.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Although Mrs. Wilson had given up the expectation 
of ever seeing her niece the wife of
Denbigh, she felt an indescribable shock as
she read this paragraph. The strongest feeling was 
horror at the nearness of Emily to an
alliance with such a man. His avoiding the
ball, at which he knew Lord Henry was expected, was 
explained to her by his marriage.
For, with John, she could not believe a woman like 
Lady Laura Stapleton was to be
won in the short space of one fortnight, or indeed 
less. There was, too evidently, a mystery yet to 
be developed, and she felt certain
one, that would not elevate his character in her
opinion.
</para>
<para>
Neither Sir Edward or Lady Moseley had
given up the expectation of seeing Denbigh
again, as a suitor for Emily's hand, and to
both of them this certainty of his loss was a
heavy blow. The Baronet took up the paper, and 
after perusing to himself the article,
muttered in a low tone, as he wiped the tears
from his eyes: -- &quot; Heaven bless him -- I sincerely 
hope she is worthy of him.&quot; Worthy
of him, thought Mrs. Wilson, with a feeling 
of indignation, as taking up the paper,
she retired to her own room, whither Emily, 
at that moment returned from her walk,
had proceeded. As her niece must hear
this news, she thought the sooner the better. 
The exercise, and unreserved conversation of 
Francis and Clara, had restored, in
some degree, the bloom to the cheek of Emily, 
as she saluted her aunt on joining her;
and Mrs. Wilson felt it necessary to struggle
with herself, before she could summon sufficient 
resolution, to invade the returning peace
of her charge. However, having already decided on 
her course, she proceeded to the discharge of 
what she thought her duty.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Emily -- my child,&quot; she whispered, pressing 
her affectionately to her bosom, &quot;you have
been all I could wish, and more than I expected, 
under your arduous struggles. But one
more pang, and I trust your recollections on
this painful subject, will be done away.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily looked at her aunt in anxious expectation 
of what was coming, and quietly taking
the paper, followed the direction of Mrs. Wilson's 
finger, to the article on the marriage of
Denbigh.
</para>
<para>
There was a momentary struggle in Emily
for self-command. She was obliged to find
support in a chair. The returning richness
of colour, excited by her walk, vanished -- But
recovering herself, she pressed the hand of
her anxious guardian, and gently waving her
back, proceeded to her own room.
</para>
<para>
On her return to the company, the same control of 
her feelings, which had distinguished
her conduct of late, was again visible; and although 
her aunt most narrowly watched her
movements, looks, and speeches, she could discern no 
visible alteration, by this confirmation
of Denbigh's misconduct. The truth was, that
in Emily Moseley, the obligations of duty
were so imperative -- her sense of her dependence on 
providence so humbling, and yet so
confiding, that, as soon as she was taught
to believe her lover unworthy of her esteem,
that moment an insuperable barrier separated
them. His marriage could add nothing to the
distance between them. It was impossible
they could be united; and although a secret
lingering of the affections, over his fallen character, 
might and did exist, it existed without
any romantic expectations of miracles in his
favour, or vain wishes of reformation, in which
self was the prominent feeling. She might
be said, to be keenly alive to all that concerned his 
welfare or movements, if she did not
harbour the passion of love; but it showed itself, in 
prayers for his amendment of life,
and the most ardent petitions for his future
and eternal happiness. She had set about, seriously, and 
with much energy, the task of
erasing from her heart, sentiments which,
however delightful she had found it to harbour in times 
past, were now, in direct variance with the path of her duty. She knew,
that a weak indulgence of such passions,
would tend to draw her mind from, and
disqualify her to discharge, those various calls
on her time and exertions, which could alone
enable her to assist others, or effect in her own
person, the great purposes of her creation. It
was never lost sight of by Emily Moseley,
that her existence here, was preparatory to
an immensely more important one hereafter.
She was consequently in charity with all
mankind, and if grown a little more doubtful
of the intentions of her fellow-creatures, it
was a mistrust, bottomed in a clear view of
the frailties of our nature; and self-examination, was 
amongst the not unfrequent speculations she made, on his hasty marriage of
her former lover.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson saw all this, and was soon
made acquainted by her niece in terms, with
her views of her own condition, and although she had to, and did, deeply regret,
that all her caution had not been able to
guard against deception in character, where
it was most important for her to guide
aright; yet she was cheered with the reflection that her 
previous care, with the blessings
of providence, had admirably fitted her charge
to combat and overcome the consequences of
their mistaken confidence.
</para>
<para>
The gloom which this little paragraph excited, extended 
to every individual in the family; for all had placed Denbigh by the side
of John, in their affections, ever since his
weighty services to Emily.
</para>
<para>
A letter from John announcing his intention of meeting them at Bath, as well
as his new relation with Grace, relieved in
some measure their depression of spirits. 
-- Mr. Benfield alone found no consolation in
these approaching nuptials. John he regarded as his nephew, and Grace he thought a
very good sort of young woman; but neither
of them beings of the same description with
Emily and Denbigh.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Peter,&quot; said he one day, after they had
both been expending their ingenuity, in vain
efforts to discover the cause of this so-muchdesired 
marriage being so unexpectedly frustrated, &quot;have I not 
often told you, fate governed these things, in order men 
might be humbled in this life. Now, Peter, had the Lady 
Juliana wedded with a mind congenial to her
own, she might have been mistress of Benfield
Lodge to this very hour.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, your honour -- but there's Miss Emmy's legacy;&quot; 
and Peter withdrew, thinking
what would have been the consequences, had
Patty Steele been more willing, when he wished to make her 
Mrs. Peter Johnson; an association by no means uncommon in the mind
of the steward; for if Patty had ever a rival
in his affections, it was in the person of Emily Moseley, 
though indeed with very different degrees and colouring of esteem.
</para>
<para>
The rides to the cottage had been continued by 
Mrs. Wilson and Emily, and as no
gentleman was now in the family to interfere
with their communications, a general visit
to the young widow had been made, by the
Moseleys, including Sir Edward and Mr.
Ives.
</para>
<para>
The Jarvises had gone to London to receive 
their children, now penitent in more
senses than one; and Sir Edward learnt
with pleasure, that Egerton and his wife had
been admitted into the family of the merchant.
</para>
<para>
Sir Edgar had died suddenly, and the
entailed estates had fallen to his successor 
the colonel, now Sir Harry -- but the
bulk of his wealth being in convertible property, 
he had given by will to his other
nephew, a young clergyman, and son of a
younger brother. -- Mary, as well as her mother, 
were greatly disappointed, 
by this deprivation, of what they considered their 
lawful splendour -- but found great consolation in
the new dignity of the Lady Egerton; who's
greatest wish now was to meet the Moseleys,
in order that she might precede them, in or
out, of some place where such ceremonials
are observed -- the sound of, Lady Egerton's carriage 
stops the way -- was a delight
ful one, and never failed to be used on all occasions, 
although her ladyship was mistress of
no such vehicle.
</para>
<para>
A slight insight into the situation of things,
amongst them, may be found in the following narrative 
of their views, and a discussion which took place about a fortnight after
the re-union of the family under one roof.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Jarvis was mistress of a very handsome
coach, the gift of her husband for her own
private use -- after having satisfied herself, the
baronet (a dignity he had enjoyed just twentyfour hours) 
did not possess the ability to furnish his 
lady, as she termed her daughter, with
such a luxury, she magnanimously determined 
to relinquish her own, in support of the
new-found elevation of her daughter -- accordingly 
a consultation on the alterations
which were necessary, took place between
the ladies -- &quot; the arms must be altered, of
course,&quot; Lady Egerton observed, &quot;and Sir
Harry's, with the bloody hand and six quarterings, 
put in their place -- then the liveries
they must be changed.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, mercy -- my lady -- if the arms are
altered, Mr. Jarvis will be sure to notice it 
 -- and he would never forgive me -- and perhaps -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Perhaps what?&quot; exclaimed the new
made lady, with a disdainful toss of her
head.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why,&quot; replied the mother, warmly, &quot;not
give me the hundred pounds, he promised,
to have it new lined and painted.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Fiddlestick with the painting, Mrs. Jarvis,&quot; 
cried the lady with great dignity, &quot;no
carriage shall be called mine that does not
bear my arms and the bloody hand.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why your ladyship is unreasonable, indeed you 
are,&quot; said Mrs. Jarvis, coaxingly,
and then after a moment's thought, she continued, 
&quot;is it the arms or the baronetcy you
want, my dear?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, I care nothing for the arms, but I
am determined, now I am a baronet's lady,
Mrs. Jarvis, to have the proper emblem of my
rank.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Certainly, my lady, that's true dignity
--well then -- we will put the bloody hand on
your father's arms, and he will never notice
it, for he never sees such things.&quot; The arrangement 
was happily completed, and for a
few days, the coach of Mr. Jarvis bore about
the titled dame -- her mother and sister,
with all proper consideration for the dignity
of the former -- until one unlucky day -- the
merchant, who, occasionally, went on change,
when any great bargain in the stocks was to be
made, arrived at his own door suddenly, to
procure a calculation he had made on a leaf
of his prayer-book, the last Sunday during
sermon -- this he obtained after some search; in
his haste, he drove to his broker's in the carriage 
of his wife, to save time, it happening
to be in waiting at the moment, and the distance not 
great -- in his hurry, Mr. Jarvis forgot to order the 
man to return, and for an
hour it stood in one of the most public
places in the city -- the consequence was,
when Mr. Jarvis undertook to examine into
his gains, with the account rendered of the
transaction by his broker, he was astonished
to read, &quot;Sir Timothy Jarvis, Bart. in 
account with John Smith, Dr.&quot; -- Sir Timothy
examined the account in as many different
ways as Mr. Benfield had the marriage of
Denbigh, before he would believe his eyes,
and when assured of the fact, immediately
caught up his hat, and went to find the man,
who had dared to insult him, as it were, in
defiance of the formality of business -- he had
not proceeded one square in the city, before
he met a friend who spoke to him by the title
--an explanation of the mistake followed,
and the ci-devant barouet proceeded to his
stables; here by examination he detected the
fraud -- an explanation, with his consort followed -- 
and the painter's brush soon defaced
the self-created dignity, from the pannels of
the coach -- all this was easy, but with his
waggish companions on change, and in the
city, (where, notwithstanding his wife's fashionable 
propensities, he loved to resort,) he
was Sir Timothy still.
</para>
<para>
Mr. Jarvis was a man of much modesty, but
one of great decision, and determined to have
the laugh on his side -- a newly purchased borough 
of his, sent up an address, flaming with
patriotism -- it was presented by his hands. The
merchant seldom kneeled to his creator, but
on this occasion he humbled himself dutifully before 
his prince, and left the presence,
with a legal right to the appellation, his old
companions had affixed to him sarcastically.
</para>
<para>
The rapture of Lady Jarvis may be more
easily imagined than faithfully described;
the christian name of her husband alone,
threw any alloy into the enjoyment of her
elevation; but by a license of speech, she ordered, 
and addressed in her own practice, the
softer and more familiar appellation of -- Sir
Timo -- two servants were discharged the
first week, because unused to titles, they had
addressed her as mistress -- and her son, the
captain, then at a watering place, was acquainted 
express with the joyful intelligence.
</para>
<para>
All this time Sir Henry Egerton was but
little seen amongst his new made relatives;
he had his own engagements and haunts,
and spent most of his time at a fashionable
gaming house in the West End. As, however, the 
town was deserted, Lady Jarvis
and her daughters having condescended to
pay a round of city visits, to show off her
airs and dignity to her old friends, persuaded
Sir Timo -- the hour for their visit to Bath had
arrived, and they were soon comfortably settled in that city.
</para>
<para>
Lady Chatterton and her youngest daughter had arrived at the seat of her son;
and John Moseley, as happy as the certainty of love -- 
returned, and the approbation of his friends could make him, was
in lodgings in the town -- Sir Edward
had notified his son of his approaching visit
to Bath, and John had taken proper accommodations 
for the family, which he occupied
for a few days by himself as locum tenens.
</para>
<para>
Lord and Lady Herriefield had departed for
the south of France; and Kate removed from
the scenes of her earliest enjoyments, and
the bosom of her own family, to the protection of 
a man she neither loved nor respected,
began to feel the insufficiency of a name or
a fortune, to constitute felicity in her own, or
indeed, any other circumstances. Lord Herriefield 
was of a suspicious and harsh temper by nature; the first propensity was
greatly increased by his former associations,
and the latter, was not removed by the humility of 
his eastern dependants. -- But the
situation of her child gave no uneasiness
at present to her managing mother, who
thought her placed in the high road to happiness, 
and was gratified at the result of her
labours -- once or twice her habits had overcome 
her caution, so much, as to endeavour
to promote, a day or two sooner than had
been arranged, the wedding of Grace -- But
her imprudence was checked instantly, by
the recoiling of Moseley from her insinuations in 
disgust, and the absence of the
young man for twenty-four hours, gave her
timely warning of the danger of such an interference, 
with one of such fastidious feelings -- John 
punished himself as much as the
dowager on these occasions, but the smiling
face of Grace, with her hand frankly placed
in his own at his return, never failed to do
away the unpleasaut sensations created by
her mother's care.
</para>
<para>
The Chatterton and Jarvis families met
in the rooms, soon after the arrival of
the latter, when the lady of the knight
approached the dowager with a most friendly salute 
of recognition, followed by both
her daughters -- Lady Chatterton, really forgetful 
of the person of her B -- acquaintance, and disliking 
the vulgarity of her air,
drew up into an appearance of great dignity
as she hoped the lady was well. The merchant's wife 
felt the consciousness of rank too
much to be repulsed in this manner, and believing 
the dowager had forgotten her face, added,
with a simpering smile, in imitation of what
she had seen better bred people practice with
success,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Lady Jarvis -- my lady -- your ladyship
dont remember me -- Lady Jarvis of the
Deanery, B -- , Northamptonshire, and my
daughters, Lady Egerton and Miss Jarvis.&quot;
Lady Egerton bowed stiffly to the recognising 
smile the dowager now condescended
to bestow, but Sarah remembering a certain
handsome lord in the family, was more urbane, 
determining at the moment to make
the promotion of her mother and sister stepping-stones 
to greater elevation for herself.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hope my lord is well,&quot; continued the
city lady, &quot;I regret Sir Timo -- and Sir
Harry -- and Captain Jarvis, are not here this
morning to pay their respects to your ladyship, 
but as we shall see a good deal of each
other, it must be deferred to a more fitting
opportunity.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Certainly, madam,&quot; replied the dowager,
as passing her compliments with those of
Grace, she drew back from so open a conversation 
with creatures, of such doubtful
standing in the fashionable world -- There is
no tyranny more unyielding or apparently
more dreaded than that of fashion -- one half
the care to observe she laws of our maker,
that is given, to adhere to the arbitrary decrees 
of this worldly tribunal, would make
us, unexceptionable in morals, and useful in
society; its influence is felt from the highest
to the lowest; -- without it -- virtue goes unnoticed; 
and with it -- vice unpunished; it is
oscillatory, unreasonable, and capricious 
-- subjects men and morals, to the government of
the idle, the vain, and the foolish -- and takes
its rise, from the error, of making man instead 
of God, the judge of our conduct and opinions.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter VIII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
On taking leave of Mrs. Fitzgerald, Emily
and her aunt settled a plan of correspondence; 
the deserted situation of this young
woman, having created a great interest in
the breasts of her new friends. General
M'Carthy had returned to Spain without
receding from his original proposal, and his
niece was left to mourn in solitude, her early
departure from one of the most solemn duties
of life, though certainly under circumstances
of great mitigation and temptation.
</para>
<para>
Mr. Benfield, thwarted in one of his most favourite 
schemes of happiness for the residue of
his life, obstinately refused to make one of the
party to Bath; and Ives and Clara having returned to 
Bolton, the remainder of the Moseleys arrived at the 
lodgings of John, a very
few days after the interview of the preceding
chapter, with hearts but ill qualified to enter
into the gayeties of the place; but in obedience 
to the wishes of Lady Moseley, to see
and be seen once more on that great theatre
of fashionable amusement.
</para>
<para>
The friends of the family who had known
them in times past, were numerous, and glad to
renew their acquaintance, with those they had
always esteemed; so that they found themselves
immediately surrounded by a circle of smiling
faces and dashing equipages.
</para>
<para>
Sir William Harris, the proprietor of the deanery, 
and a former neighbour, with his showy
daughter, were amongst the first to visit them.
Sir William was a man of handsome estate and
unexceptionable character, but entirely governed 
by the whims and desires of his only
child. Caroline Harris neither wanted sense
or beauty, but expecting a fortune, had placed
her views too high. She at first aimed at
the peerage, and while she felt herself entitled 
to suit her taste as well as her ambition,
had failed of her object by her ill concealed
efforts to attain it. She had justly acquired
the reputation of the reverse of a coquette or
yet a prude; still she had never an offer, and
at the age of twenty-six, had now began
to lower her thoughts to the commonalty.
Her fortune would have easily got her a husband 
here, but she was determined to pick
amongst these lower supporters of the aristocracy 
of the nation. With the Moseleys she
had been early acquainted, though some years
their senior -- a circumstance, however, she
took care never unnecessarily to allude to.
</para>
<para>
The meeting between Grace and the Moseleys was 
tender and sincere. John's countenance glowed with 
delight, as he witnessed
his future wife, folded successively in the
arms of those he loved, and Grace's tears and
blushes added twofold charms to her native
beauty. Jane relaxed from her reserve to
receive her future sister, and determined with
herself to appear in the world, in order to
shew Sir Henry Egerton, that she did not feel
the blow he had inflicted, as severely, as the
truth would have proved.
</para>
<para>
The Dowager found some little occupation
for a few days, in settling with Lady Moseley the 
preliminaries of the wedding; but the
latter had suffered too much through her
youngest daughters, to enter into these formalities 
with her ancient spirit. All things
were, however, happily settled, and Ives, making a 
journey for the express purpose, John
and Grace were united privately, at the altar
of one of the principal churches in Bath, by
the consent of its rector. Chatterton had
been summoned on the occasion, and the same
paper which announced the nuptials, contained, 
amongst the fashionable arrivals-the
names of the Duke of Derwent and his sister -- 
the Marquess of Eltringham and sisters,
amongst whom was to be found Lady Laura Denbigh; 
her husband -- Lady Chatterton,
carelessly remarking, in the presence of her
friends, she heard was summoned to the
death-bed of a relative, from whom he had
great expectations. Emily's colour did certainly 
change as she listened to this news,
but not allowing her thoughts to dwell on
the subject, she was soon enabled to recall at
least her serenity of appearance.
</para>
<para>
But Jane and Emily were delicately placed. The 
lover of the former, and the wives
of the lovers of both, were in the way of daily,
if not hourly meetings; and it required all the
energies of the young women to appear with
composure before them. The elder was supported by 
pride -- the junior by principle. 
-- The first was restless -- haughty -- distant,
and repulsive. The last -- mild -- humble 
-- reserved, but eminently attractive. The one
was suspected by all around her -- the other,
was unnoticed by any, but her nearest and
dearest friends.
</para>
<para>
The first rencontre with these dreaded
guests, occurred at the rooms one evening
where the elder ladies had insisted on the
bride's making her appearance. The Jarvis's
were there before them, and at their entrance
caught the eyes of the group. Lady Jarvis
approached immediately, filled with exultation -- 
her husband, with respect. The latter
was received with cordiality -- the former, politely, 
but with distance. The young ladies
and Sir Henry bowed distantly, and the gentleman 
soon drew off into another part of the
room: his absence kept Jane from fainting.
The handsome figure of Egerton standing by
the side of Mary Jarvis, as her acknowledged
husband, was near proving too much for
her pride to endure; and he looked so like
the imaginary being she had set up as the
object of her worship, that her heart was
in danger of rebelling also.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Positively, Sir Edward and my lady,
both Sir Timo -- and myself, and I dare say Sir
Harry and Lady Egerton too, are delighted
to see you at Bath among us. Mrs. Moseley, I wish you 
much happiness; Lady Chatterton too, I suppose your ladyship recollects
me now -- I am Lady Jarvis. Mr. Moseley,
I regret, for your sake, my son, Captain Jarvis, is 
not here; you were so fond of each other,
and both so lov'd your guns.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Positively, my Lady Jarvis,&quot; said Moseley dryly 
in reply, &quot;my feelings on the occasion are as strong 
as your own; but I presume the captain is much too good a shot for
me by this time.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, yes; he improves greatly in most
things he undertakes,&quot; rejoined the smiling
dame, &quot;and I hope he will soon learn like
you, to shoot with the arrows of Cupid -- I
hope the Honourable Mrs. Moseley is well.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Grace bowed mildly, as she answered to
the interrogatory -- and smiled as she thought
of Jarvis, in competition with her husband,
in this species of archery; when a voice
immediately behind where they sat, caught
the ears of the whole party; all it said was 
 -- 
   &quot;Harriet, you forgot to show me Marian's
letter.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, but I will to-morrow,&quot; was the reply.
</para>
<para>
It was the tone of Denbigh -- Emily almost fell 
from her seat as it first reached
her, and the eyes of all but herself, were
immediately turned in quest of the speaker.
He had approached to within a very few
feet of them, and supported a lady on each
arm; a second look wass necessary to convince the 
Moseley's they were mistaken.
</para>
<para>
It was not Denbigh -- but a young man
whose figure, face and air, resembled him
strongly, and whose voice possessed the same
soft, melodious tones, which had distinguished that 
of Denbigh. As they seated themselves within a very 
short distance of the Moseleys, they continued their conversation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your Ladyship heard from the Colonel
to-day too, I believe,&quot; continued the gentleman, 
turning to the lady, who sat next to
Emily.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, he is a very punctual correspondent
--I hear every other day,&quot; was the answer.
</para>
<para>
&quot;How is his uncle, Laura?&quot; inquired her
female companion.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Rather better; but I will thank your grace
to find the Marquess and Miss Howard.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Bring them to us,&quot; rejoined the other.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, duke,&quot; said the former lady with a
laugh, &quot;and Eltringham will thank you too,
I dare say.&quot;
</para>
<para>
In an instant the duke returned, accompanied by a 
gentleman of thirty, and an elderly
lady, who might have been safely taken for
fifty, without offence to any thing but -- herself.
</para>
<para>
During these speeches, their auditors had
listened with very different emotions of curiosity or 
surprise, or some more powerful
sensation. Emily had stolen a glance which
satisfied her it was not Denbigh himself, and
it greatly relieved her, but discovered with
surprise that it was his wife by whose
side she sat, and when an opportunity offered,
dwelt on her amiable, frank countenance, with
a melancholy satisfaction -- at least she thought,
he may yet be happy, and I hope penitent.
</para>
<para>
It was a mixture of love and gratitude which
prompted this wish, both sentiments not easily gotten 
rid of, when once ingrafted in our
better feelings. John eyed them with a displeasure he 
could not account for, and saw,
in the ancient lady, the brides-maid, Lord
Henry had so unwillingly admitted to that
distinction.
</para>
<para>
Lady Jarvis was astounded with her vicinity to so much nobility, and drew back
to her family, to study its movements to
advantage; while Lady Chatterton sighed
heavily, as she contemplated the fine figures
of an unmarried Duke and Marquess -- and
she without a single child to dispose of. The
remainder of the party viewed them with curiosity, 
and listened with interest to what they
said.
</para>
<para>
Two or three young ladies had now joined
them, attended by a couple of gentlemen, and
their conversation became general The ladies
declined dancing entirely, but appeared willing 
to throw away an hour in comments on
their neighbours.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! Willian!&quot; exclaims one of the
young ladies, &quot;there is your old messmate,
Col. Egerton.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes! I observe him,&quot; replied her brother, 
&quot;I see him;&quot; but, smiling significantly,
he continued, &quot;we are messmates no longer.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He is a sad character,&quot; said the Marquess;
with a shrug. &quot;William, I would advise you
to be cautious of his acquaintance.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I thank you, Marquess,&quot; replied Lord
William. &quot;But I believe I understand him
thoroughly.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Jane had manifested strong emotion, during these remarks; while Sir Edward and
his wife averted their faces, from a simultaneous 
feeling of self-reproach -- their eyes
met -- and mutual concessions were contained
in the glance they exchanged -- yet their
feelings were unnoticed by their companions
-- over the fulfilment of her often repeated
forewarnings of neglect of duty to our children -- 
Mrs. Wilson had mourned in sincerity
--but she had forgot to triumph.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But when are we to see Pendennyss?&quot;
inquired the Marquess, &quot;I hope he will be
here, with George -- I have a mind to beat
up his quarters in Wales this season -- what
say you, Derwent?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I intend it, my lord, if I can persuade
Lady Harriet to quit the gayeties of Bath
so soon -- what say you, sister, will you be
in readiness to attend me so early?&quot; this
question was asked in an arch tone, and drew
the eyes of her friends on the person to
whom it was addressed.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, yes, I am ready now, Frederick, if
you wish,&quot; answered the sister, hastily, and
colouring excessively as she spoke.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But where is Chatterton? I thought he
was here -- he had a sister married here last
week,&quot; inquired Lord William Stapleton,
addressing no one in particular.
</para>
<para>
A slight movement in their neighbours,
excited by this speech, attracted the attention
of the party.
</para>
<para>
&quot;What a lovely young woman,&quot; whispered 
the duke to Lady Laura, &quot;your neighbour is.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The lady smiled her assent, and as Emily
overheard it, she rose with glowing cheeks,
and proposed a walk round the room.
</para>
<para>
Chatterton soon after entered -- the young
peer had acknowledged to Emily, that
deprived of hope as he had been by her
firm refusal of his hand, his efforts had been
directed to the suppression of a passion,
which could never be successful -- but his
esteem -- his respect -- remained in full force.
He did not touch at all on the subject of
Denbigh, and she supposed that with her,
he thought his marriage was a step that required justification.
</para>
<para>
The Moseleys had commenced their promenade round the room, as the baron came
in -- he paid his compliments to them as soon
as he entered, and walked on in their party
--the noble visitors followed their example, and the two parties met -- Chatterton was
delighted to see them -- the duke was particularly 
fond of him, and had one been present of sufficient observation, the agitation
of his sister, the lady Harriet Denbigh, would
have accounted for the doubts of her brother,
as respects her willingness to leave Bath.
</para>
<para>
A few words of explanation passed; the
duke and his friends appeared to urge something on 
Chatterton -- who acted as their ambassador -- and 
the consequence was, an introduction of the two parties to each other. This
was conducted with the ease of the present
fashion -- it was general, and occurred, as it
were incidentally, in the course of the evening.
</para>
<para>
Both Lady Harriet and Lady Laura Denbigh were 
particularly attentive to Emily.
They took their seats by her, and manifested a 
preference for her conversation that
struck Mrs. Wilson as remarkable -- could it
be, that the really attractive manners and
beauty of her niece had caught the fancy of
these ladies -- or was there a deeper seated
cause for the desire to draw Emily out, both
of them evinced? Mrs. Wilson had heard a
rumour, that Chatterton was thought attentive to 
Lady Harriet, and the other was the
wife of Denbigh; was it possible the quondam suitors 
of her niece, had related to their
present favourites, the situation they had
stood in as regarded Emily -- it was odd, to
say no more, and the widow dwelt on the
innocent countenance of the bride with pity
and admiration -- Emily herself was not a
little abashed at the notice of her new acquaintances, 
especially Lady Laura -- but as
their admiration appeared sincere, as well as
their desire to be on terms of intimacy with
the Moseleys, they parted, on the whole, mutually pleased.
</para>
<para>
The conversation several times was embarrassing 
to the baronet's family, and at
moments, distressingly so to their daughter.
</para>
<para>
At the close of the evening they formed one
group at a little distance from the rest of the
company, and in a situation to command a
view of it.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Who is that vulgar looking woman,&quot;
cried Lady Sarah Stapleton, &quot;seated next to
Sir Henry Egerton, brother?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No less a personage than my Lady Jarvis,&quot; replied 
the Marquess, gravely, &quot;and the
mother-in-law of Sir Harry and wife to Sir
Timo -- ;&quot; this was said with an air of great
importance, and a look of drollery that
showed the marquess a bit of a quiz.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Married!&quot; cried Lord William, &quot;mercy
on the woman, who is Egerton's wife -- he
is the greatest latitudinarian amongst the
ladies, of any man in England -- nothing -- no
nothing -- would tempt me to let such a man
marry a sister of mine&quot; -- ah, thought Mrs.
Wilson, how we may be deceived in character, with 
the best intentions after all; in
what are the open vices of Egerton, worse
than the more hidden ones of Denbigh.
</para>
<para>
These freely expressed opinions on the
character of Sir Henry, were excessively
awkward to some of the listeners -- to whom
they were connected with unpleasant recollections, 
of duties neglected, and affections
thrown away.
</para>
<para>
Sir Edward Moseley was not disposed to
judge his fellow creatures harshly, and it was
as much owing to his philanthropy as to his
indolence, that he had been so remiss in his
attention to the associates of his daughters 
 -- but the veil once removed, and the consequences 
brought home to him through his
child -- no man was more alive to the necessity of 
caution on this important particular; and Sir Edward formed many salutary
resolutions for the government of his future
conduct, in relation to those, whom an experience 
nearly fatal in its results, had greatly
qualified to take care of themselves: -- but to
resume our narrative -- Lady Laura had
maintained with Emily, a conversation which
was enlivened by occasional remarks from
the rest of the party, in the course of which
the nerves as well as the principles of Emily
were put to a severe trial.
</para>
<para>
&quot;My brother Henry,&quot; said Lady Laura,
&quot;who is a captain in the navy, once had the
pleasure of seeing you, Miss Moseley, and
in some measure made me acquainted with
you before we met.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I dined with Lord Henry at L -- ,
and was much indebted to his polite attentions in 
an excursion on the water, in common with a large party;&quot; replied Emily
simply.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, I am sure his attentions were exclusive,&quot; 
cried the sister; &quot;indeed he told us
that nothing but the want of time, prevented
his being deeply in love -- he had even the
audacity to tell Denbigh, it was fortunate
for me he had never seen you, or I should
have been left to lead Apes.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And I suppose you believe him now,&quot;
cried Lord William, laughing, as he bowed
to Emily.
</para>
<para>
His sister laughed in her turn, but shook
her head, in the confidence of conjugal affection, as she replied 
 -- 
   &quot;It is all conjecture, for the Colonel said he
had never the pleasure of meeting Miss Moseley, 
so I will not boast of what my powers could
have done -- Miss Moseley,&quot; continued Lady
Laura, blushing slightly at her inclination to
talk of an absent husband -- so lately her
lover; &quot;I hope to have the pleasure of presenting 
Colonel Denbigh to you soon.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I think,&quot; said Emily, with a horror of
deception, and a mighty struggle to suppress
her feelings, &quot;Colonel Denbigh was mistaken in 
saying we never met -- he was of
material service to me once, and I owe him
a debt of gratitude, that I only wish I could
properly repay.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Lady Laura listened in surprise; but as
Emily paused, she could not delicately, as his
wife, remind her further of the obligation, by
asking what the service was -- and hesitating
a moment, continued 
 -- 
   &quot;Henry quite made you the subject of
conversation amongst us -- Lord Chatterton
too, who visited us for a day, was equally
warm in his eulogiums -- I really thought
they created a curiosity, in the Duke and
Pendennyss, to behold their idol.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;A curiosity that would be ill rewarded
in its indulgence,&quot; said Emily, abashed by
the personality of the discourse.
</para>
<para>
&quot;So says the modesty of Miss Moseley,&quot;
said the Duke of Derwent, in the peculiar
tone which distinguished the softer keys of
Denbigh's voice -- Emily's heart beat quick
as she heard them -- and she was afterwards
vexed to remember with how much pleasure
she listened to this opinion of the duke; -- was
it the sentiment? -- or was it the voice? -- she,
however, gathered strength to answer, with
a dignity that repressed further praises,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your Grace is willing to devest me of
what little I possess.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pendennyss is a man of a thousand,&quot;
continued Lady Laura, with the privilege of
a married woman; &quot;I do wish he would
join us at Bath -- is there no hope, duke?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am afraid not,&quot; replied his Grace, &quot;he
keeps himself immured in Wales with his
sister -- who is as much of a hermit as himself.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There was a story of an inamorata in
private, somewhere,&quot; cried the Marquess;
&quot;why at one time, it was said, he was privately married to her.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Scandal, my lord,&quot; said the Duke gravely,
&quot;the Earl is of unexceptionable morals 
 -- and the lady you mean, the widow of Major
Fitzgerald -- whom you knew -- Pendennyss
never sees her, and by accident, was once of
very great service to her.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson breathed freely again, as she
heard the explanation of this charge, and
thought if the Marquess knew all -- how differently 
would he judge Pendennyss, as well
as others.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! I have the highest opinion of Lord
Pendennyss,&quot; cried the Marquess.
</para>
<para>
The Moseleys were not sorry, the usual
hour of retiring, put an end to both the conversation 
and their embarrassments.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter IX.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
For the succeeding fortnight the intercourse 
between the Moseley's and their new
acquaintances increased daily. It was rather
awkward at first on the part of Emily, and
her beating pulse and changing colour too often showed 
the alarm of feelings not yet overcome, when any 
allusions were made to the
absent husband of one of the ladies. Still,
as her parents encouraged the cequaintance,
and her aunt thought the best way to get rid
of the remaining weakness of humanity, with
respect to Denbigh, was not to shrink from
even an interview with the gentleman himself; Emily 
succeeded in conquering her reluctance; and as the 
high opinion entertained
by Lady Laura of her husband, was expressed in a 
thousand artless ways, an interest
was created in her by her affections, and the
precipice over which, both Mrs. Wilson and
her niece thought, she was suspended.
</para>
<para>
Egerton carefully avoided all collision with
the Moseley's. Once, indeed, he endeavoured
to renew his acquaintance with John, but a
haughty repulse drove him instantly from the
field.
</para>
<para>
What representations he had thought proper to make 
to his wife, we are unable to
say, but she appeared to resent something -- as
she never approached the dwelling or persons of
her quondam associates, although in her heart
she was dying to be on terms of intimacy
with their titled friends. Her incorrigible mother 
was restrained by no such or any other
consideration, and had contrived to fasten on
the Dowager and Lady Harriet, a kind of
bowing acquaintance, which she made great
use of at the rooms.
</para>
<para>
The Duke sought out the society of Emily wherever 
he could obtain it; and Mrs. Wilson thought her niece 
admitted his approaches with less reluctance, than that of any others
of the gentlemen around her.
</para>
<para>
At first she was surprised, but a closer observation 
betrayed the latent cause to her.
</para>
<para>
Derwent resembled Denbigh greatly in
person and voice, although there were distinctions, 
easily to be made, on an acquaintance. The Duke had an air of command
and hauteur that was never to be seen in his
cousin. But his admiration of Emily he did
not attempt to conceal, and, as he ever addressed her 
in the respectful language and
identical voice of Denbigh, the observant widow easily 
perceived, that it was the remains
of her attachment to the one, that induced her
niece to listen, with such evident pleasure,
to the conversation of the other.
</para>
<para>
The Duke of Derwent wanted many of
the indispensable requisites of a husband, in
the eyes of Mrs. Wilson; yet, as she thought
Emily out of all danger, at the present, of
any new attachment, she admitted the association, 
under no other restraint, than the
uniform propriety of all that Emily said or
did.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your niece will one day be a Dutchess,
Mrs. Wilson,&quot; whispered Lady Laura -- as
Derwent and Emily were running over a new
poem one morning, in the lodgings of Sir
Edward; the former -- reading a fine extract
aloud, in the air and voice of Denbigh, in so
striking a manner, as to call all the animation
of the unconscious Emily, into her expressive face.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson sighed, as she reflected on the
strength of those feelings, which even principles 
and testimony, had not been able wholly
to subdue, as she answered 
-- 
   &quot;Not of Derwent, I believe. But how
wonderfully the Duke resembles your husband, at 
times,&quot; she added, thrown off her guard.
</para>
<para>
Lady Laura was evidently surprised as she
answered: &quot;yes -- at times, he does; they
are brother's children, you know; the voice
in all that connection is remarkable. Pendennyss, 
though a degree farther off in blood,
possesses it; and Lady Harriet, you perceive,
has the same characteristic; there has been
some syren in the family in days past.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Sir Edward and Lady Moseley saw the attentions 
of the Duke with the greatest pleasure;
though not slaves to the ambition of wealth
and rank, they were certainly no objections in
their eyes; and a proper suitor, Lady Moseley thought 
the most probable means of driving the recollection of Denbigh from the
mind of her daughter; this consideration
had great weight in leading her to cultivate
an acquaintance, so embarrassing on many
accounts.
</para>
<para>
The Colonel, however, had written his wife
the impossibility of his quitting his uncle while
he continued so unwell, and the bride was
to join him, under the escort of Lord William.
</para>
<para>
The same tenderness distinguished Denbigh on this 
occasion, that had appeared so
lovely, when exercised to his dying father.
Yet, thought Mrs. Wilson, how insufficient are
good feelings to effect, what can only be the
result of good principles.
</para>
<para>
Caroline Harris was frequently of the parties of 
pleasure -- walks -- rides -- and dinners,
which the Moseley's were compelled to join
in; and as the Marquess of Eltringham had
given her one day some little encouragement,
she determined to make an expiring effort at
the peerage, before she condescended to enter
into an examination of the qualities of Capt.
Jarvis; who, his mother had persuaded her,
was an Apollo, and who she had great hopes
of seeing one day a Lord, as both the Captain
and herself had commenced laying up a certain sum 
quarterly, for the purpose of buying a title hereafter. An ingenious expedient
of Jarvis to get into his hands a portion of the
allowance of his mother.
</para>
<para>
Eltringham was strongly addicted to the
ridiculous, and, without committing himself
in the least, drew the lady out on divers occasions, 
for the amusement of himself and
the Duke -- who enjoyed, without practising
that species of joke.
</para>
<para>
The collisions between ill-concealed art,
and as ill-concealed irony, had been practised 
with impunity by the Marquess for a
fortnight; and the lady's imagination began
to revel in the delights of her triumph, when
a really respectable offer was made to the
acceptance of Miss Harris, by a neighbour of
her father's in the country, one she would
rejoice to have received a few days before, but which, 
in consequence of hopes created by the following occurrence, 
she haughtily rejected.
</para>
<para>
It was at the lodgings of the Baronet, that
Lady Laura exclaimed one day: -- &quot;Marriage 
is a lottery, certainly, and
neither Sir Henry or Lady Egerton appear to
have drawn prizes.&quot; -- Here Jane stole from
the room.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Never, sister,&quot; cried the Marquess. &quot;I
will deny that. Any man can select a prize
from your sex, if he only knows his own taste.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Taste is a poor criterion, I am afraid,&quot;
said Mrs. Wilson, gravely, &quot;to bottom matrimonial felicity upon.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;What would you refer the decision to,
my dear madam?&quot; inquired Lady Laura.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Judgment.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Lady Laura shook her head, doubtingly, as she answered,   
</para>
<para>
&quot;You remind me so much of Lord Pendennyss. Every 
thing, he wishes to bring
under the subjection of judgment and principles.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And is he wrong, Lady Laura?&quot; asked
Mrs. Wilson, pleased to find such correct
views existed, in one she thought so highly of.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not wrong, my dear madam, only impracticable. 
What do you think, Marquess, of
choosing a wife in conformity to your principles, 
and without consulting your taste.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson shook her head, with a laugh,
as she disclaimed any such statement of the
case -- but the Marquess, who disliked one of
John's didactic conversations very much,
gaily interrupted her by saying 
 -- 
   &quot;Oh! taste is every thing with me. The
woman of my heart against the world -- if
she suits my fancy, she satisfies my judgment
too.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And what is this fancy of your Lordship's,&quot; 
said Mrs. Wilson, willing to gratify his relish for 
trifling. &quot;What kind of woman do you mean to 
choose? How tall, for instance?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, madam,&quot; cried the Marquess, rather 
unprepared for such a catechism, and
looking round him, until the outstretched neck
and eager attention of Caroline Harris caught
his eye, he added, with an air of great simplicity -- 
&quot;about the height of Miss Harris.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How old?&quot; said Mrs. Wilson with a
smile.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not too young, ma'am, certainly. I am
thirty-two -- my wife must be five or six and
twenty. Am I old enough, do you think,
Derwent?&quot; he added, in a whisper to the
Duke.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Within ten years,&quot; was the reply.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson continued -- &quot;She must read 
and write, I suppose?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, faith,&quot; said the Marquess, &quot;I am
not fond of a bookish sort of a woman, and
least of all, of a scholar.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You had better take Miss Howard,&quot; whispered 
his brother. &quot;She is old enough 
 -- never reads -- and just the height.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, no, William,&quot; rejoined the brother.
&quot;Rather too old, that. Now, I admire a woman who has 
confidence in herself. -- One
that understands the proprieties of life, and
has, if possible, been at the head of an establishment, 
before she takes charge of mine.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The delighted Caroline wriggled about
in her chair, and unable to contain herself
longer, inquired: -- &quot;Noble blood, of 
course, you would require, my Lord?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, no! I rather think the best wives
are to be found in a medium. I would wish
to elevate my wife myself. A Baronet's
daughter, for instance.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Here Lady Jarvis, who had entered during
the dialogue, and caught the topic they were
engaged in, drew near, and ventured to ask
if he thought a simple Knight too low. The
Marquess, who did not expect such an attack,
was a little at a loss for an answer; but recovering 
himself, answered gravely -- under the
apprehension of another design on his person,
&quot;he did think that would be forgetting his
duty to his descendants.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Lady Jarvis sigh'd, as she fell back in disappointment, 
and Miss Harris, turning to the
nobleman, in a soft voice, desired him to ring
for her carriage. As he handed her down,
she ventured to inquire if his Lordship had
ever met with such a woman as he had described.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, Miss Harris,&quot; he whispered, as he
handed her into the coach, &quot;how can you
ask such a question. You are very cruel 
 -- Drive on, coachman.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How, cruel, my Lord,&quot; said Miss Harris,
eagerly. &quot;Stop John. -- How, cruel, my
Lord;&quot; and she stretch'd her neck out of the
window as the Marquess, kissing his hand to
her, ordered the man to proceed. -- &quot;Don't
you hear your lady, sir.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Lady Jarvis had followed them down, also with a view to catch any thing which
might be said -- Having apologised for her
hasty visit; and as the Marquess handed her
politely into her carriage, she begged &quot;he
would favour Sir Timo -- and Sir Henry with a
call;&quot; which, being promised, Eltringham returned to the room.
</para>
<para>
&quot;When am I to salute a Marchioness of Eltringham,&quot; 
cried Lady Laura to her brother, on
his entrance, &quot;one, on the new standard set
up by your Lordship.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Whenever Miss Harris can make up her
mind to the sacrifice,&quot; replied the brother very
gravely; &quot;ah me! how very considerate
some of your sex are, upon the modesty of
ours.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I wish you joy with all my heart, my
Lord Marquess,&quot; exclaimed John Moseley;
&quot;I was once favoured with the notice of the
lady for a week or two, but a viscount saved
me from capture.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I really think, Moseley,&quot; said the duke
innocently, but speaking with animation,
&quot;an intriguing daughter, worse than a managing mother.&quot;
</para>
<para>
John's gayety for the moment vanished, as
he replied in a low key, &quot;O yes, much
worse.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Grace's heart was in her throat, until, by
stealing a glance at her husband, she saw the
cloud passing over his fine brow, and happening to 
catch her affectionate smile, his face
was lighted into a look of pleasantry as he
continued,
</para>
<para>
&quot;I would advise caution, my Lord; Caroline Harris 
has the advantage of experience
in her trade, and was expert from the first.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;John -- John -- &quot; said Sir Edward with
warmth, &quot;Sir William is my friend, and his
daughter must be respected.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then, baronet,&quot; cried the Marquess, &quot;she
has one recommendation I was ignorant of,
and as such, I am silent: but ought not Sir
William to teach his daughter to respect herself. 
I view these husband-hunting ladies as
pirates on the ocean of love, and lawful
objects for any roving cruiser, like myself,
to fire at. At one time I was simple
enough to retire as they advanced, but you
know, madam,&quot; turning to Mrs. Wilson
with a droll look, &quot;flight only encourages
pursuit, so I now give battle in self-defence.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And I hope successfully, my lord,&quot; observed the 
lady, &quot;Miss Harris' brother, does
appear to have grown desperate in her attacks,
which were formerly much more masqued
than at present. I believe it is generally the
case, when a young woman throws aside
the delicacy and feelings which ought to be
the characteristics of her sex, and which teach
her studiously to conceal her admiration, she
either becomes in time, cynical and disagreeable to all 
around her from disappointment,
or presevering in her efforts; as it were, runs
a muck for a husband. Now, in justice to
the gentlemen, I must say, baronet, there are
strong symptoms of the Malay, about Caroline
Harris.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;A muck -- a muck&quot; -- cried the marquess,
as, in obedience to the signal of his sister, he
rose to withdraw.
</para>
<para>
Jane had retired to her own room, in mortification 
of spirit she could ill conceal, during
this conversation, and felt a degree of humiliation, 
which almost drove her to the desperate resolution of 
hiding herself forever from
the world: the man she had so fondly enshrined in her 
heart, to be so notoriously unworthy, as to be the subject of unreserved
censure in general company, was a reproach
to her delicacy -- her observation -- her judgment -- 
that was the more severe, from being
true; and she wept in bitterness over her
fallen happiness, with a determination never
again to expose herself to a danger, against
which, a prudent regard to the plainest rules
of caution would have been a sufficient safeguard.
</para>
<para>
Emily had noticed the movement of Jane,
and waited anxiously the departure of the
visiters to hasten to her room. She knocked
two or three times before her sister replied to
her request for admittance.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Jane, my dear Jane,&quot; said Emily, soothingly, 
&quot;will you not admit me?&quot; Jane could
not resist any longer the affection of her sister, 
and the door was opened; but as Emily
endeavoured to take her hand, she drew back
coldly, and cried -- &quot;I wonder you, who are 
so happy, will leave the gay scene below for the society of
a humbled wretch like me;&quot; and overcome
with the violence of her emotion, she burst
into tears.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Happy!&quot; repeated Emily in a tone of anguish -- 
&quot;Happy, did you say, Jane? -- Oh
little do you know my sufferings, or you
would never speak so cruelly to me.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Jane, in her turn, surprised at the strength
of Emily's language, considered her now
weeping sister, for a moment, with commisseration, 
and then her thoughts recurring to her
own case, she continued with energy,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, Emily, happy; for whatever may
have been the reason of Denbigh's conduct,
he is respected; and if you do, or did love
him, he was worthy of it. -- But I,&quot; said Jane
wildly, &quot;threw away my affections on a
wretch -- a mere impostor -- and I am miserable
forever.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, dear Jane,&quot; rejoined Emily, having
recovered her self possession -- &quot;not miserable
-- nor for ever. You have many -- very many
sources of happiness yet within your reach 
 -- even in this world. I -- I do think, even our
strongest attachments may be overcome by
energy, and a sense of duty. And oh! how
I wish I could see you make the effort.&quot; For a
moment the voice of the youthful moralist had
failed her, but her anxiety on behalf of her
sister overcame her feelings, and she ended the
sentence with great earnestness.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Emily,&quot; said Jane, with obstinacy, and
yet in tears, &quot;you don't know what blighted affections are: -- 
To endure the scorn of
the world, and see the man you once thought
near being your husband, married to another,
who is showing herself in triumph before you,
wherever you go.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Hear me, Jane, before you reproach me
further, and then judge between us.&quot; Emily
paused a moment, to acquire nerve to
proceed, and then related to her astonished
sister the little history of her own disappointments. 
She did not affect to conceal her attachment to Denbigh. 
With glowing cheeks she acknowledged, that she found
a necessity for all her efforts, to keep her rebellious 
feelings yet in subjection; and as she
recounted generally his conduct to Mrs. Fitzgerald, she 
concluded by saying: &quot;But, Jane,
I can see enough to call forth my gratitude;
and although, with yourself, I feel at this
moment as if my affections were sealed forever, I wish 
to make no hasty resolutions, or
act in any manner as if I were unworthy of
the lot Providence has assigned me.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Unworthy? no! -- you have no reasons for
self-reproach. If Mr. Denbigh has had the
art to conceal his crimes from you, he did it
to the rest of the world also, and has married
a woman of rank and character. But how
differently are we situated. Emily -- I -- I
have no such consolation.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have the consolation, my sister, of
knowing there is an interest made for you
where we all require it most, and it is there
I endeavour to seek my support,&quot; said
Emily, in a low and humble tone. &quot;A review of our 
own errors takes away the keenness of our 
perception of the wrongs done us,
and by placing us in charity with the rest of
the world, disposes us to enjoy, calmly, the
blessings within our reach. Besides, Jane,
we have parents, whose happiness is locked
up in that of their children, and we should 
 -- we must overcome those feelings which disqualify 
us for our common duties, on their
account.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah!&quot; cried Jane, &quot;how can I move about
in the world, while I know the eyes of all are
on me, in curiosity to discover how I bear my
disappointments. But you, Emily, are unsuspected. 
It is easy for you to affect gayety
you do not feel.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I neither affect or feel any gayety,&quot; said
her sister, mildly. &quot;But are there not the
eyes of one on us, of infinitely more power to
punish or reward, than what may be found in
the opinions of the world? Have we no duties?
For what is our wealth -- our knowledge 
-- our time given us, but to improve our own,
and the eternal welfare of those around us?
Come, then, my sister, we have both been deceived -- 
let us endeavour not to be culpable.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I wish, from my soul, we could leave
Bath,&quot; cried Jane. &quot;The place -- the people are hateful to me.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Jane,&quot; said Emily, &quot;rather say you hate
their vices, and wish for their amendment.
But do not indiscriminately condemn a whole
community, for the wrongs you have sustained from one of its members.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Jane allowed herself to be consoled, though
by no means convinced, as to her great error,
by this effort of her sister; and they both
found a temporary relief by the unburthening
of their hearts to each other, that in future
brought them more nearly together, and was
of mutual assistance in supporting them in
the promiscuous circles they were obliged
to mix in.
</para>
<para>
With all her fortitude and principle, one of
the last things Emily would have desired was
an interview with Denbigh; and she was happily 
relieved from the present danger of it,
by the departure of Lady Laura and her brother, 
to the residence of the Colonel's sick
uncle.
</para>
<para>
Both Mrs. Wilson and Emily suspected
that a dread of meeting them had detained
him from his intended journey to Bath, and
neither were sorry to perceive, what they considered 
as latent signs of grace, which Egerton appeared 
entirely to be without. &quot;He
may yet see his errors, and make a kind
and affectionate husband,&quot; thought Emily;
and then, as the image of Denbigh rose in
her imagination, surrounded with the domestic virtues, 
she roused herself from the
dangerous reflection, to the exercise of duties, in 
which she found a refuge from unpardonable wishes.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter X.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
Nothing material occurred after the departure of 
Lady Laura, for a fortnight; -- the
Moseleys entering soberly into the amusements of the 
place, and Derwent and Chatterton becoming more pointed every day in
their attentions -- the one to Emily, and the
other to Lady Harriet -- when the dowager
received a pressing intreaty from Catherine to
hasten to her at Lisbon, where her husband
had taken up his abode for a time, after
much doubt and indecision as to his place of
residence; Lady Herriefield stated generally
in her letter, that she was miserable, and
without the support of her mother could not
exist under her present grievances; but what
was the cause of those grievances, or what
grounds she had for her misery, she left unexplained.
</para>
<para>
Lady Chatterton was not wanting in
maternal regard, and promptly determined
to proceed to Portugal in the next packet.
John felt inclined for a little excursion
with his bride, and out of compassion to
the baron, who was in a dilemma between
his duty and his love, (for Lady Harriet about
that time was particularly attractive,) offered
his services.
</para>
<para>
Chatterton allowed himself to be persuaded
by the good-natured John, that his mother
could safely cross the ocean, under the protection 
of the latter -- accordingly, at the end
of the before mentioned fortnight, the dowager, 
John, Grace, and Jane, commenced
their ride to Falmouth.
</para>
<para>
Jane had offered to accompany Grace, as
a companion in her return, (it being expected
Lady Chatterton would remain in the country
with her daughter,) and her parents appreciating 
her motives, permitted the excursion,
with a hope it would draw her thoughts from
past events.
</para>
<para>
Although Grace shed a few tears at parting
with Emily and her friends, it was impossible 
for Mrs. Moseley to be long unhappy,
with the face of John smiling by her side;
and they pursued their route uninterruptedly.
In due season, they reached the port of their
embarkation.
</para>
<para>
The following morning the packet got under
weigh, and a favourable breeze soon wafted
them out of sight of their native shores. The
ladies were too much indisposed the first
day to appear on the deck; but the weather
becoming calm, and the sea smooth, Grace
and Jane ventured out of the confinement of
the state-room they shared between them, to
respire the fresh air above.
</para>
<para>
There were but few passengers, and those
chiefly ladies -- the wives of officers on foreign 
stations, on their way to join their
husbands; as these had been accustomed to
moving in the world, their care and disposition to 
accommodate soon removed the
awkwardness of a first meeting, and our travellers 
begun to be at home in their novel situation.
</para>
<para>
While Grace stood leaning on the arm
of her husband, and clinging to his support,
both from her affections and dread of the
motion of the vessel, Jane had ventured with
one of the ladies to attempt a walk round
the deck of the ship; unaccustomed to such
an uncertain foothold, the walkers had been
prevented falling, by the kind interposition of
a gentleman, who, for the first time, had
shown himself among them, at that moment.
The accident, and their situation, led to a
conversation which was renewed at different
times during their passage, and in some measure 
created an intimacy between our party
and the stranger. He was addressed by the
commander of the vessel as Mr. Harland;
and Lady Chatterton exercised her ingenuity in 
the investigation of his history, and
destination in his present journey -- by which
she made the following discovery:
</para>
<para>
The Rev. and Hon. Mr. Harland was the
younger son of an Irish earl, who had early
embraced his sacred profession in that church
in which he held a valuable living in the
gift of his father's family; his father was yet
alive, and then at Lisbon with his mother
and sister, in attendance on his elder brother,
who had been sent there in a deep decline,
by his physicians, a couple of months before. 
It had been the wish of his parents to
have taken all their children with them;
but the sense of duty in the young clergyman had 
kept him in the exercise of his
office until a request of his dying brother, and
the directions of his father, had caused him
to hasten thither to witness the decease of the
one, and afford the solace within his power
to the others.
</para>
<para>
It may be easily imagined, the discovery,
of the rank of this accidental acquaintance, 
with the almost certainty that existed,
of his being heir to his father's honours,
in no degree impaired his consequence
in the eyes of the dowager; and it is certain, 
his visible anxiety and depressed spirits
-- unaffected piety, and disinterested hopes,
for his brother's recovery, no less elevated
him in the opinions of her companions.
</para>
<para>
There was, at the moment, a kind of sympathy 
between Harland and Jane, notwithstanding the 
melancholy which gave rise to it proceeded from 
such very different causes; and
as the lady, although with diminished bloom,
retained all her personal charms, rather heightened 
than otherwise, by the softness of low
spirits -- the young clergyman sometimes relieved 
his apprehensions of his brother's
death, by admitting the image of Jane in his
moments of solitary reflection.
</para>
<para>
Their voyage was tedious, and some time
before it was ended the dowager had given
Grace an intimation of the probability there
was of Jane's becoming, at some future day,
a countess. Grace sincerely hoped that what
ever she became, she would be as happy as
she thought all allied to John deserved to be.
</para>
<para>
They entered the bay of Lisbon early in
the morning; and as the ship had been expected 
for some days, a boat came alongside
with a note for Mr. Harland, before they had
anchored; it apprised him of the death of
his brother. The young man threw himself precipitately 
into it, and was soon employed in one of the loveliest offices of his
vocation -- that of healing the wounds of the
afflicted.
</para>
<para>
Lady Herriefield received her mother in a
sort of sullen satisfaction; and her companions, 
with an awkwardness she could ill
conceal. It required no great observation in
the travellers to discover, that their arrival was
entirely unexpected to the viscount -- if it
were not equally disagreeable; indeed, one
day's residence under his roof assured them
all, that no great degree of domestic felicity
was ever an inmate of the dwelling.
</para>
<para>
From the moment Lord Herriefield became
suspicious, that he had been the dupe of the
management of Kate and her mother, he
viewed every act of her's with a prejudiced
eye. It was easy, with his knowledge of human 
nature, to detect the selfishness and
wordly-mindedness of his wife; for as these
were faults she was unconscious of possessing, 
so she was unguarded in her exposure
of them; but her designs, in a matrimonial
point of view, having ended with her mar
riage, had the viscount treated her with any
of the courtesies due her sex and station,
she might, with her disposition, have been
contented in the enjoyment of rank and possession 
of wealth; but their more private
hours were invariably rendered unpleasant,
by the overflowings of her husband's resentment, 
at having been deceived in his judgment of the female sex.
</para>
<para>
There is no point upon which men are more
tender than their privilege of suiting themselves
in a partner for life, although many of both
sexes are influenced, in this important selection,
more by the wishes and whims of others than
we suspect generally-yet as they imagine, what
is the result of contrivance and management, is
the election of free will and taste, so long as
they are ignorant -- they are contented. But
Lord Herriefield wanted the bliss of ignorance; 
and with his contempt of his wife, was
mingled anger at his own want of foresight.
</para>
<para>
There are very few people who can
tamely submit to self reproach; and as the
cause of his irritated state of mind, was both
present and completely within his power, the
viscount seemed determined to give her as
little reason to exult in the success of her
plans as possible -- jealous he was of her,
from temperament-from bad association -- and
the want of confidence in the principles of
his wife -- and the freedom of foreign manners 
had a tendency to excite this baneful
passion to an unusual degree. It was thus
abridged in her pleasures -- reproached with
motives she was incapable of harbouring,
and disappointed in all those enjoyments, her
mother had ever led her to believe as the
invariable accompaniments of married life,
where proper attention had been paid to the
necessary qualifications of riches and rank 
-- that Kate had written to the dowager, with
the hope, her presence might restrain, or her
advice teach her successfully to oppose, the
unfeeling conduct of the viscount.
</para>
<para>
As the Lady Chatterton had never implanted 
any of her favourite systems in her
daughter so much by precept as the force of
example in her own person, and indirect
eulogiums on certain people who were endowed 
with those qualities and blessings
she most admired -- so, on the present occasion, 
Catherine did not unburthen herself in
terms to her mother, but by a regular gradation 
of complaints, aimed more at the world
than her husband -- she soon let the knowing
dowager see their application, and thus completely 
removed the veil from her domestic
grievances.
</para>
<para>
The presence of John and Grace, with
their example, for a short time awed the
peer into dissembling of his disgusts for his
spouse -- but the ice once broken -- their being
auditors, soon ceased to affect either its frequency, 
or the severity of his remarks, when
under its influence.
</para>
<para>
From such exhibitions of matrimonial dis
cord, Grace shrunk timidly into the retirement 
of her room, and Jane, with dignity,
would follow her example, while John,
at times became a listener, with a spirit
barely curbed within the bounds of prudence, and 
at others, sought in the company of
his wife and sister, relief from the violence of
his feelings.
</para>
<para>
John never admired Catherine, or respected her, 
for the want of those very
qualities, he chiefly loved in her sister;
yet, as she was a woman, and one nearly
connected with him -- he found it impossible to 
remain quietly a spectator to the
unmanly treatment she often received from
her husband; he therefore made preparations for 
his return to England by the
first packet, abridging his intended residence
in Lisbon more than a month.
</para>
<para>
Lady Chatterton endeavoured all within
her power to heal the breach between Kate
and her husband, but it greatly exceeded her
abilities; it was too late to implant such
principles in her daughter, as by a long
course of self-denial and submission, might
have won the love of the viscount -- had the
mother been acquainted with them herself 
 -- so that having induced her child to marry
with a view to obtaining precedence and a
jointure, she once more sat to work to undo
part of her former labours, by bringing
about a decent separation between them,
in such a manner as to secure to her child the
possession of her wealth, and the esteem of the
world.
</para>
<para>
The latter, though certainly a somewhat
difficult undertaking, was greatly lessened by
the assistance of the former.
</para>
<para>
John was determined to seize the opportunity 
of his stay, to examine the environs of
the city. It was in one of these daily rides,
they met with their fellow traveller, Mr.
now Lord Harland. He was rejoiced to find
them again, and hearing of their intended
departure, informed them of his being about
to return to England, in the same vessel 
 -- his parents and sister, contemplating ending
the winter in Portugal.
</para>
<para>
The intercourse between the two families
was kept up with a show of civilities between the 
noblemen, and much real goodwill on the part of the juniors of the circle,
until the day arrived for the sailing of the
packet.
</para>
<para>
Lady Chatterton was left with Catherine,
as yet unable to circumvent her schemes with
prudence -- it being deemed by the world, a
worse offence to separate, than to join together 
our children in the bands of wedlock.
</para>
<para>
The confinement of a vessel, is very propitious 
to those intimacies which lead to attachments; 
the necessity of being agreeable
is a check upon the captious, and the desire
to lessen the dulness of the scene, a stimulus
to the lively; and though the noble divine
and Jane could not possibly be ranked in
either class -- yet the effect was the same;
the nobleman was much enamoured, and
Jane unconsciously gratified -- it is true, love
had never entered her thoughts in its direct
and unequivocal form -- but admiration is so
consoling, to those labouring under self-condemnation, 
and flattery of a certain kind so
very soothing to all, it is not to be wondered,
she listened with increasing pleasure, to the
interesting conversation of Harland on all
occasions, and more particularly, as often
happened, when exclusively addressed to
herself.
</para>
<para>
Grace had, of late, reflected more seriously 
on the subject of her eternal welfare,
than she had been accustomed to, in the
house of her mother; and the example of
Emily, with the precepts of Mrs. Wilson,
had not been thrown away upon her -- it is
a singular fact, that more women feel a disposition 
to religion soon after marriage, than
at any other period of life -- and whether it is,
that having attained the most important station this 
life affords the sex, they are more
willing to turn their thoughts to a provision
for the next; or whether it be owing to any
other cause, Mrs. Moseley was included in
the number -- she became sensibly touched
with her situation, and as Harland was both
devout and able, as well as anxious, to instruct, 
one of the party, at least, had cause to
rejoice in the journey, for the remainder of
her days -- but precisely as Grace increased
in her own faith, so did her anxiety after the
welfare of her husband receive new excitement -- and 
John, for the first time, became
the cause of sorrow to his affectionate companion.
</para>
<para>
The deep interest Harland took in the
opening conviction of Mrs. Moseley, did not
so entirely engross his thoughts, as to prevent,
the too frequent contemplation of the charms
of her friend, for his own peace of mind 
 -- and by the time the vessel had reached Falmouth, 
he had determined to make a tender
of his hand and title, to the acceptance of
Miss Moseley. -- Jane did not love Egerton;
on the contrary, she despised him -- but the
time had been, when all her romantic feelings -- 
every thought of her brilliant imagination, had 
been filled with his image, and Jane
felt it a species of indelicacy to admit the impression 
of another so soon, or even at all 
 -- these objections would, in time, have been
overcome, as her affections became more and
more enlisted on behalf of Harland, had she
admitted his addresses -- but there was one
impediment, Jane considered as insurmountable 
to a union with any man.
</para>
<para>
She had communicated her passion to its
object -- there had been the confidence of approved 
love, and she had now no heart for
Harland, but one, that had avowedly been
a slave to another -- to conceal this from him
would be unjust, and not reconcilable to
good faith -- to confess it, humiliating, and
without the pale of probability -- it was the
misfortune of Jane to keep the world too
constantly before her, and lose sight too
much, of her really depraved nature, to relish
the idea of humbling hereself so low, in the
opinion of a fellow-creature; and the refusal
of Harland's offer was the consequence 
-- although she had begun to feel an esteem for
him, that would, no doubt, have given rise
to an attachment, in time, far stronger and
more deeply seated than her fancy for Colonel
Egerton had been.
</para>
<para>
If the horror of imposing on the credulity of 
Harland, a wounded heart, was
creditable to Jane, and showed an elevation of character, 
that under proper guidance would have placed her in the first
ranks of her sex; the pride which condemned her 
to a station nature did not design
her for, was irreconcilable with the humility, 
a view of her condition could not fail
to produce; and the second sad consequence
of the indulgent weakness of her parents,
was confirming their child in passions directly 
at variance with the first duties of a
christian.
</para>
<para>
We have so little right to value ourselves on any 
thing, that we think pride a sentiment of very 
doubtful service, and certainly
unable to effect any useful results which will
not equally flow from good principles.
</para>
<para>
Harland was disappointed and grieved, but
prudently judging that occupation and absence 
would remove recollections, which
could not be very deep, they parted at
Falmouth, and our travellers proceeded on
their journey for B -- , whither, during their
absence, Sir Edward's family had returned
to spend a month, before they removed to
town for the residue of the winter.
</para>
<para>
The meeting of the two parties was warm
and tender, and as Jane had many things to
recount, and John as many to laugh at, their
arrival threw a gayety round Moseley Hall
it had for months been a stranger to.
</para>
<para>
One of the first acts of Grace, after her
return, was to enter strictly into the exercise
of all those duties, and ordinances, required
by her church, and the present state of her
mind -- and from the hands of Dr. Ives she
received her first communion at the altar.
</para>
<para>
As the season had now become far advanced, 
and the fashionable world had been
some time assembled in the metropolis, the
Baronet commenced his arrangements to
take possession of his town-house, after an
interval of nineteen years. John proceeded
to the capital first, and the necessary domestics 
procured -- furniture supplied -- and other
arrangements, usual to the appearance of a
wealthy family in the world, completed; he
returned with the information that all was
ready for their triumphal entrance.
</para>
<para>
Sir Edward feeling a separation for so long
a time, and at such an unusual distance, in the
very advanced age of Mr. Benfield, would be
improper, paid him a visit, with the design of
persuading him to make one of his family, for
the next four months. Emily was his companion, and 
their solicitations were happily
crowned with a success they had not anticipated -- 
for averse to a privation of Peter's
society, the honest steward was included in
the party.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nephew,&quot; said Mr. Benfield, beginning to
waver in his objections to the undertaking,
&quot;there are instances of gentlemen, not in parliament, 
going to town in the winter, I know 
 -- you are one yourself, and old Sir John Cowel,
who never could get in, although he run for
every city in the kingdom, never missed his
winter in Soho. Yes, yes -- the thing is admissible -- 
but had I known your wishes before, I would certainly 
have kept my borough for the appearance of the thing 
 -- besides,&quot; continued the old man shaking his
head, &quot;his Majesty's ministers require the
aid of some more experienced members, in
these critical times -- what should an old
man like me, do in the city, unless, aid his
country with his advice?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Make his friends happy with his company, 
dear uncle,&quot; said Emily, taking his
hand between both her own, and smiling
affectionately on the old gentleman, as she
spoke,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah! Emmy dear?&quot; -- cried Mr. Benfield,
looking on her with melancholy pleasure: 
 -- &quot;You are not to be resisted -- just such ano
ther as the sister of my old friend Lord Gosford. 
She could always coax me out of any
thing. I remember now, I heard the Earl,
tell her once, he could not afford to buy a pair
of diamond ear-rings; and she looked so 
 -- only look'd -- did not speak! Emmy! -- that
I bought them, with intent to present them to
her myself.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And did she take them! Uncle?&quot; said
his niece, in a little surprise.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh yes! When I told her if she did not,
I would throw them in the river, as no one
else should wear what had been intended for
her -- poor soul! how delicate and unwilling
she was. I had to convince her they cost,
three hundred pounds, before she would listen 
to it, and then she thought it such a pity
to throw away a thing of so much value. It
would have been wicked, you know, Emmy
dear. And she was much opposed to wickedness 
and sin in any shape.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;She must have been a very unexceptionable character indeed,&quot; cried the Baronet,
with a smile, as he proceeded to make the
necessary orders for their journey. But we
must resume our narrative with the party we
left at Bath.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XI.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The letters of Lady Laura informed her
friends, that herself and Col. Denbigh, had
decided to remain with his uncle, until his recovery 
was perfect, and then proceed to Denbigh 
Castle, to meet the Duke and his sister,
during the approaching holy-days.
</para>
<para>
Emily was much relieved by this postponement 
of an interview, she would gladly have
avoided for ever; and her aunt sincerely rejoiced 
that her niece was allowed more time
to eradicate impressions, she saw, with pain,
her charge had yet a struggle to overcome.
</para>
<para>
There were so many points to admire in the
character of Denbigh; his friends spoke of
him with such decided partiality; Dr. Ives, in
his frequent letters, alluded to him with so
much affection, that Emily had frequently
detected herself, in weighing the testimony of
his guilt, and indulging the expectation, that
circumstances had deceived them all, in their
judgment of his conduct. Then his marriage
would cross her mind, and, with the conviction 
of the impropriety of admitting him to
her thoughts at all, would come the collective
mass of testimony, which had accumulated
against him.
</para>
<para>
Derwent served greatly to keep alive the
recollections of his person, however; and, as
Lady Harriet seemed to live only in the so
ciety of the Moseley's, not a day passed without giving 
the Duke some opportunity of indirectly preferring his suit.
</para>
<para>
Emily not only appeared, but in fact was,
unconscious of his admiration, and entered
into their amusements with a satisfaction that
took its rise in the belief, the unfortunate
attachment her cousin Chatterton had once
professed for herself, was forgotten in the
more certain enjoyments of a successful love.
</para>
<para>
Lady Harriet was a woman of very different 
manners and character from Emily
Moseley; yet, had she in a great measure
erased the impressions made by the beauty of
his kinswoman, from the bosom of the Baron.
</para>
<para>
Chatterton, under the depression of his
first disappointment, it will be remembered,
had left B -- in company with Mr. Denbigh.
</para>
<para>
The interest of the Duke had been unaccountably 
exerted to procure him the place
he had so long solicited in vain, and gratitude 
required his early acknowledgments for
the favour.
</para>
<para>
His manner, so very different from a successful 
applicant for a valuable office, had
struck both Derwent and his sister as singular. 
Before, however, a week's intercourse
had passed between them, his own frankness,
had made them acquainted with the cause,
and a double wish prevailed in the bosom of
Lady Harriet -- to know the woman who could
resist the beauty of Chatterton, and to 
relieve him, from the weight imposed on his
spirits, by disappointed affection.
</para>
<para>
The manners of Lady Harriet Denbigh,
were not in the least forward or masculine;
but they had the freedom of high rank and
condition, with a good deal of the ease of
fashionable life.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson would have noticed, moreover, in her conduct 
to Chatterton, a something exceeding the interest of 
ordinary communications in their situation, which might
possibly have been attributed to feeling, more
than manner. It is certain, one of his surest
methods to drive Emily from his thoughts,
was to dwell on the perfections of some other
lady; and Lady Harriet was so constantly
before him in his visit into Westmoreland 
 -- so soothing -- so evidently pleased with his
presence, that the Baron made rapid advances
in attaining his object.
</para>
<para>
He had alluded, in his letter to Emily, to
the obligation he was under to the services of
Denbigh, in erasing his unfortunate partiality
for her. 
 -- 
   But what those services were, we are unable
to say, unless the usual arguments of the
plainest dictates of good sense, on such occasions, 
enforced in the singularly, insinuating,
and kind manner which distinguished that
gentleman. In fact, Lord Chatterton was
not formed by nature to lovelong, deprived
of hope -- or to resist long, the flattery of a preference 
from such a woman as Harriet Denbigh.
</para>
<para>
On the other hand, Derwent was warm in
his encomiums on Emily, to all but herself;
and Mrs. Wilson had again thought it prudent,
to examine into the state of her feelings, in order to 
discover if there was danger of his unremitted 
efforts to please, drawing Emily into
a connection, neither her religion or prudence
could wholly approve.
</para>
<para>
Derwent was a man of the world -- and a
christian only in name; and the cautious 
widow determined to withdraw in season,
should she find grounds, for her apprehensions
to rest upon.
</para>
<para>
It was about ten days after the departure of
the Dowager and her companions, that Lady
Harriet exclaimed, in one of her morning visits: -- 
&quot;Lady Moseley! I have now hopes
of presenting to you soon, the most polished
nobleman in the kingdom?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;As a husband! Lady Harriet?&quot; inquired
the other, with a smile.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh no! -- only a cousin! -- a second cousin! madam!&quot; 
replied Lady Harriet, blushing a little, and looking in 
the opposite direction to the one Chatterton was placed in.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But his name? -- You forget our curiosity! -- 
What is his name?&quot; cried Mrs. Wilson;
entering into the trifling for the moment.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pendennyss, to be sure, my dear madam;
who else can I mean,&quot; said Lady Harriet,
recovering her self-possession.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And you expect the Earl at Bath?&quot; said
Mrs. Wilson, eagerly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He has given us hopes -- and Derwent
has written him to-day, pressing the journey,&quot; was the answer.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You will be disappointed -- I am afraid,
sister,&quot; said the Duke. &quot;Pendennyss has become so fond 
of Wales of late, that it is difficult
to get him out of it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, &quot;he will take
his seat in parliament during the winter, my
Lord?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hope he will, madam; though Lord
Eltringham holds his proxies in my absence,
in all important questions before the house.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your Grace will attend, I trust,&quot; said
Sir Edward. &quot;The pleasure of your company is 
amongst my expected enjoyments in the town.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are very good, Sir Edward;&quot; replied 
the Duke, looking at Emily. &quot;It will
somewhat depend on circumstances, I believe.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Lady Harriet smiled, and the speech seemed
understood by all, but the lady most concerned in it, 
as Mrs. Wilson proceeded: 
</para>
<para>
&quot;Lord Pendennyss is an universal favourite&quot; -- 
&quot;and deservedly so,&quot; cried the Duke.
&quot;He has set an example to the nobility,
which few are equal to imitating. An
only son, with an immense estate, -- he
has devoted himself to the profession of a soldier, 
and gained great reputation by it in
the world; nor has he neglected any of his
private duties as a man -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Or a christian, I hope,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson,
delighted with the praises of the earl.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nor of a christian, I believe,&quot; continued
the duke; &quot;he appears consistent, humble,
and sincere; three requisites, I believe, for
his profession.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Does not your grace know,&quot; said Emily,
with a benevolent smile -- Derwent coloured
slightly as he answered,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not as well as I ought; but&quot; -- lowering
his voice for her ear alone, he added, &quot;under
proper instruction, I think I might learn.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then I would recommend that book to
you, my lord,&quot; rejoined Emily, with a blush,
pointing to a pocket bible which lay near
her, and still ignorant of the allusion he
meant to convey.
</para>
<para>
&quot;May I ask the honour of an audience of
Miss Moseley,&quot; said Derwent, in the same
low tone, &quot;whenever her leisure will admit
of her granting the favour.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily was surprised; but from the previous
conversation, and the current of her thoughts
at the moment, supposing his communication
had some reference to the subject before
them, rose from her chair, and unobtrusively,
but certainly with an air of perfect innocence
and composure, went into the adjoining room,
the door of which was open very near them.
</para>
<para>
Caroline Harris had abandoned all ideas of
a coronet, with the departure of the Marquess
</para>
<para>
of Eltringham and his sisters for their own
seat; and as a final effort of her fading charms,
had begun to calculate the capabilities of
Captain Jarvis, who had at this time honoured 
Bath with his company.
</para>
<para>
It is true, the lady would have greatly preferred her 
father's neighbour, but that was an irretrievable 
step -- he had retired, disgusted with
her haughty dismissal of his hopes, and was a
man who, although he greatly admired her
fortune, was not to be recalled by any beck
or smile which might grow out of her caprice.
</para>
<para>
Lady Jarvis had, indeed, rather magnified the personal 
qualifications of her son,
but the disposition they had manifested, to devote some of 
their surplus wealth, to the purchasing a title, had great weight; for Miss
Harris would cheerfully, at any time, have sacrificed one 
half her own fortune to be called
my lady. Jarvis would make but a shabby
looking lord, 'tis true; but then what a lord's
wife would she not make herself: -- His
father was a merchant, to be sure, but then
merchants were always immensely rich, and
a few thousand pounds, properly applied,
might make the merchant's son a baron 
-- she therefore resolved to inquire, the first
opportunity, into the condition of the sinking fund of 
his plebeianism -- and had serious
thoughts of contributing her mite towards
the advancement of the desired object, did she
find it within the bounds of probable success.
An occasion soon offered, by the invitation of
the Captain, to accompany him, in an excursion in the 
tilbury of his brother in law.
</para>
<para>
In this ride they passed the equipages of Lady Harriet 
and Mrs. Wilson, with their respective mistresses taking 
an airing. In passing the latter, Jarvis had bowed, (for he had
renewed his acquaintance at the rooms without daring to 
visit at the lodgings of Sir Edward,) and Miss Harris had taken notice of
both parties as they dashed by them.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You know the Moseleys, Caroline?&quot; said
Jarvis, with the freedom her own and his
manners had established between them.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes,&quot; replied the lady, drawing her head
back from a view of the carriages, &quot;what
fine arms those of the Duke's are -- and the
coronet, it is so noble -- so rich -- I am sure if
I were a man,&quot; laying great emphasis on the
word -- &quot;I would be a Lord.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;If you could, you mean,&quot; cried the Captain, with a laugh.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Could -- why money will buy a title, you
know -- only most people are fonder of their
cash than honour.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That's right,&quot; said the unreflecting Captain, 
&quot;money is the thing after all -- now what
do you suppose our last mess-bill came to?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh dont talk of eating and drinking,&quot;
cried Miss Harris, in affected aversion, &quot;it is
beneath the consideration of nobility.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then any one may be a Lord for me,&quot;
said Jarvis, drily, &quot;if they are not to eat
and drink -- why what do we live for, but
such sort of things.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;A soldier lives to fight, and gain honour
and distinction&quot; -- for his wife -- Miss Harris
would have added, had she spoken all she
thought.
</para>
<para>
&quot;A poor way that, of spending a man's
time,&quot; said the Captain; &quot;now there is a Captain 
Jones in our regiment, they say, loves
fighting as much as eating; but if he does,
he is a blood-thirsty fellow.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You know how intimate I am with your
dear mother,&quot; continued the lady, bent on
her principal object, &quot;she has made me acquainted 
with her greatest wish.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Her greatest wish!&quot; cried the Captain, in
astonishment, &quot;why what can that be -- a new
coach and horses?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, I mean one much dearer to us -- I
should say, her -- than any such trifles; she
has told me of the plan.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Plan,&quot; said Jarvis, still in wonder, &quot;what
plan?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;About the fund for the peerage, you
know -- of course the thing is scared with me
-- as, indeed, I am equally interested with
you all, in its success.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Jarvis eyed her with a knowing look, and
as she concluded, rolling his eyes in an expression 
of significance, he said -- &quot;What, serve Sir 
William some such way, eh?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I will assist a little, if it be necessary,
Henry,&quot; said the lady, tenderly, &quot;although
my mite cannot amount to a great deal.&quot;
</para>
<para>
During this speech, the Captain was wondering what she could mean, but, having
had a suspicion from something that had
fallen from his mother, the lady was intended for 
him as a wife, and she might be
as great a dupe as the former, he was resolved to 
know the whole, and act accordingly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I think it might be made to do,&quot; he replied, 
evasively, to discover the extent of his
companion's information.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do,&quot; cried Miss Harris, with fervour,
&quot;it cannot fail -- how much do you suppose
will be wanting to buy a barony, for instance?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Hem!&quot; said Jarvis, &quot;you mean more
than we have already?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Certainly.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, about a thousand pounds, I think,
will do it, with what we have,&quot; said Jarvis,
affecting to calculate.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Is that all,&quot; cried the delighted Caroline;
and the captain grew in an instant, in her estimation, 
three inches higher; -- quite noble in
his air, and, in short, very tolerably handsome.
</para>
<para>
From that moment, Miss Harris, in her
own mind, had fixed the fate of Captain Jarvis; 
and had determined to be his wife,
whenever -- she could persuade him to offer
himself -- a thing she had no doubt of accomplishing 
with comparative ease; -- not so the
Captain -- like all weak men, there was nothing 
he stood more in terror of than ridicule;
he had heard the manoeuvres of Miss Harris laughed 
at by many of the young men in
Bath, and was by no means disposed to add
himself to the food for mirth to these wags;
and, indeed, had cultivated her acquaintance;
with a kind of bravado to some of his bottle
companions, of his ability to oppose all her
arts, when most exposed to them -- for, it is
one of the greatest difficulties, to the success 
of this description of ladies, that their
characters soon become suspected, and do
them infinitely more injury, than all their skill
in the art, does them good in their vocation.
</para>
<para>
With these views in the respective champions, the 
campaign opened, and the lady on
her return, acquainted his mother, with the
situation of the privy purse, that was to promote her 
darling child to the enviable distinction of the 
peerage -- indeed, Lady Jarvis
was for purchasing a baronetcy with what
they had, under the impression, that when
ready for another promotion, they would
only have to pay the difference, as they did
in the army, when he received his captaincy
--as, however, the son was opposed to any
arrangement, that might make the producing
the few hundred pounds he had obtained
from his mother's folly, necessary -- she was
obliged to postpone the wished-for day, until
their united efforts could compass the means
of effecting it -- as an earnest, however, of
her spirit in the cause, she gave him a fifty
pound note, that morning obtained from her
husband; and which the Captain lost at one
throw of the dice, to his brother-in-law, the
same evening.
</para>
<para>
During the preceding events, Egerton had
either studiously avoided all danger of collision 
with the Moseleys, or his engagements
confined him to such very different scenes 
-- they never met.
</para>
<para>
The Baronet had felt his presence a reproach, 
and Lady Moseley, rejoiced that
Egerton yet possessed sufficient shame to
keep him from insulting her with his company.
</para>
<para>
It was a month after the departure of
Lady Chatterton, that Sir Edward returned
to B -- ; as related in the preceding chapter -- 
and the arrangements for the London
winter were commenced.
</para>
<para>
The day preceding their leaving Bath, the
engagements of Chatterton with Lady Harriet were 
made public amongst their mutual
friends -- and an intimation given that their
nuptials would be celebrated, before the
family of the Duke left his seat for the capital.
</para>
<para>
Something of the pleasure, she had for
a long time been a stranger to, was felt by
Emily Moseley, as the well-remembered
tower of the village church of B -- struck
her sight, on their return from their protracted 
excursion in pursuit of pleasure 
-- more than four months had elapsed, since
they had commenced their travels, and in
that period, what change of sentiments had
she not witnessed in others -- of opinions
of mankind in general, and of one individual
in particular, had she not experienced in her
own person -- the benevolent smiles, the respectful 
salutations they received, in passing
the little group of houses which, clustered
round the church, had obtained the name of
&quot;the village,&quot; conveyed a sensation of delight,
that can only be felt by the deserving and
virtuous -- and the smiling faces, in several
instances glistening with tears, which met
them at the Hall, gave ample testimony to
the worth, of both the master and his servants.
</para>
<para>
Francis and Clara were in waiting
to receive them, and a very few minutes had
elapsed, before the rector and Mrs. Ives,
having heard they had passed, drove in also 
 -- in saluting the different members of the family, 
Mrs. Wilson noticed the startled look
of the Doctor, as the change in Emily's appearance 
first met his eyes -- her bloom, if
not gone, was greatly diminished, and it was
only when under the excitement of strong
emotions, that her face possessed that character 
of joy and feeling, which had so
eminently distinguished it, before her late
journey.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Where did you last see my friend
George?&quot; said the Doctor to Mrs. Wilson,
in the course of the first afternoon, as he took
a seat by her side, apart from the rest of the
family.
</para>
<para>
&quot;At L -- ,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, gravely,
in reply.
</para>
<para>
&quot;L -- ,&quot; cried the doctor, in evident
amazement -- &quot;Was he not at Bath, then,
during your stay there?&quot;
</para>
<para>
No -- I understand he was in attendance
on some sick relative, which detained him
from his friends there,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson,
wondering why the Doctor chose to introduce, so 
delicate a topic, between them -- his
guilt in relation to Mrs. Fitzgerald, he was
doubtless ignorant of, but surely not of his
marriage.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is now sometime since I heard from
him,&quot; continued the Doctor, regarding Mrs.
Wilson expressively, but to which the lady
only replied with a gentle inclination of the
body -- and the Rector, after pausing a moment, continued:
</para>
<para>
&quot;You will not think me impertinent, if I
am bold enough to ask, has George ever expressed 
a wish to become connected with
your niece, by other ties than those of friendship?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He did,&quot; answered the widow, after a
little hesitation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He did, and -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Was refused,&quot; continued Mrs. Wilson,
with a slight feeling for the dignity of her sex,
which for a moment, caused her to lose
sight of justice to Denbigh.
</para>
<para>
Dr. Ives was silent -- but manifested, by his
dejected countenance, the interest he had
taken in this anticipated connection -- and as
Mrs. Wilson had spoken with ill-concealed
reluctance on the subject at all, the Rector
did not attempt a renewal of the disagreeable 
subject, though she saw for some time
afterwards, whenever the baronet or his wife
mentioned the name of Denbigh, the eyes of
the Rector were turned on them in intense
interest.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
&quot;Stevenson has returned, and I certainly
must hear from Harriet,&quot; exclaimed the sister of 
Pendennyss, with great animation, as
she stood at a window, watching the return of
a servant, from the neighbouring post-office.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am afraid,&quot; rejoined the Earl, who was
seated by the breakfast table, waiting the leisure 
of the lady to give him his dish of tea 
-- &quot;You find Wales very dull, sister. I sincerely 
hope both Derwent and Harriet will not
forget their promise of visiting us this month.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The lady slowly took her seat at the table,
engrossed in her own reflections, as the man
entered with his budget of news; and having
deposited sundry papers and letters, respectfully 
withdrew. The Earl glanced his eyes
over the directions of the epistles, and turning
to his servants, said, &quot;answer the bell, when
called.&quot; Three or four liveried footmen
deposited their silver salvers, and different 
implements of servitude, and the peer and his
sister were left by themselves.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Here is one from the Duke to me, and one
for your ladyship from his sister,&quot; said the
brother smiling; &quot;I propose they be read
aloud for our mutual advantage;&quot; to which
the lady, whose curiosity to hear the contents of 
Derwent's letter, greatly exceeded
his interest in that of the sister, cheerfully acquiesced, 
and her brother first broke the seal
of his, and read aloud its contents as follows:
</para>
<letter><para>
&quot;Notwithstanding my promise of seeing
you this month in Caernarvonshire, I remain
here yet -- my dear Pendennyss -- unable to
tear myself from the attractions I have found
in this city; although the pleasure of their
contemplation, has been purchased at the expense 
of mortified feelings, and unrequited
affections. It is a truth, (though possibly
difficult to be believed,) this mercenary age
has produced a female, disengaged, young,
and by no means very rich, who has refused
a jointure of six thousand a year, with the
privilege of walking at a coronation, within a
dozen of royalty itself.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Here, the accidental falling of a cup from the
hands of the fair listener, caused some little interruption 
to the reading of the brother; but as
the lady, with a good deal of trepidation, and
many blushes, apologised hastily for the confusion 
her awkwardness had made, the Earl
continued to read -- &quot;I could almost worship
her independence; for I know the wishes of
both her parents were for my success. I
confess to you freely, that my vanity has
been a good deal hurt, as I really thought
myself agreeable to her; she certainly listened to 
my conversation, and admitted my approaches, with 
more satisfaction, than those of
any of the other men around her; and when
I ventured to hint to her this circumstance, as
</para>
<para>
some justification for my presumption, she
frankly acknowledged the truth of my impression, 
and without explaining the reasons
for her conduct, deeply regretted the construction 
I had been led to place upon the circumstance. Yes, 
my lord, I felt it necessary
to apologise to Emily Moseley, for presuming
to aspire to the honour of possessing so
much loveliness and virtue. The accidental
advantages of rank and wealth, lose all their
importance, when opposed to her delicacy,
ingenuousness, and unaffected principles.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have heard it intimated lately, that George
Denbigh was, in some way or other, instrumental in 
saving her life once, and that to her
gratitude, and my resemblance to the colonel,
am I indebted to a consideration with Miss
Moseley, which, although it has been the
means of buoying me up with false hopes, I
can never regret, from the pleasure her society has 
afforded me. I have remarked, on
my mentioning his name to her, she showed
unusual emotion; and as Denbigh is already a
husband, and myself rejected, the field is now
fairly open to your lordship. You will enter
on your enterprise with great advantage, as
you have the same flattering resemblance;
and, if any thing, the voice, which I am told
is our greatest recommendation with the ladies, 
in greater perfection than either George
or your humble servant.&quot;
</para></letter>
<para>
Here the reader stopped of his own accord,
and was so intently absorbed in his medita
tions, that the almost breathless curiosity of
his sister, was obliged to find relief by desiring 
him to proceed: roused by the sound of
her voice, the earl changed colour sensibly,
and continued:
</para>
<letter><para>
&quot;But to be serious on a subject of great
importance to my future life, (for I sometimes think, 
her negative has made Denbigh
a duke,) the lovely girl did not appear happy
at the time of our interview, nor do I think
enjoys at any time, the spirits nature has evidently 
given her. Harriet is nearly as great
an admirer of Miss Moseley, and takes her
refusal at heart as much as myself -- she even
attempted to intercede with her, on my behalf. But 
the charming girl, though mild,
grateful, and delicate, was firm and unequivocal, 
and left no grounds for the remotest
expectation of success, from perseverance on
my part.
</para>
<para>
&quot;As Harriet had received an intimation, that
both Miss Moseley and her aunt, entertained
extremely rigid notions on the score of religion, she 
took occasion to introduce the subject in her 
conference with the former, and
was told in reply, 'that other considerations
would have determined her to decline the
honour I intended her; but, that under any
circumstances, a more intimate knowledge of
my principles would be necessary, before she
could entertain a thought of accepting my
hand, or indeed that of any other man.'
Think of that -- Pendennyss. The principles
of a Duke! -- now a dukedom and forty thousand a year, 
would furnish a character with most people, for a Nero.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I trust the important object I have kept in
view here, is a sufficient excuse for my breach
of promise to you; and I am serious when I
wish you, (unless the pretty Spaniard has, as
I sometimes suspect, made a captive of you)
to see, and endeavour to bring me in some
degree, connected with the charming family
of Sir Edward Moseley.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The aunt, Mrs. Wilson, often speaks of
you with the greatest interest, and from some
cause or other, is strongly enlisted in your
favour, and Miss Moseley hears your name
mentioned with evident pleasure. Your religion or 
principles, cannot be doubted. You
can offer larger settlements -- as honourable, it
not as elevated a title -- a far more illustrious
name, purchased by your own services -- and
personal merit, greatly exceeding the pretensions of 
your assured friend and relative,
</para>
<sig>
  Derwent.&quot; 
</sig></letter>
<para>
   Both brother and sister were occupied
with their own reflections, for several minutes after 
the letter was ended; and the silence was broken 
first, by the latter saying,
with a low tone to her brother -- &quot;You must 
endeavour to become acquainted 
with Mrs. Wilson; she is, I know, very
anxious to see you, and your friendship for
the General requires it of you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I owe Gen. Wilson much,&quot; replied the
brother in a melancholy voice; &quot;and when
we go to Annerdale House, I wish you to
make the acquaintance with the ladies of the
Moseley family, should they be in town this
winter -- but you have the letter of Harriet
to read yet.&quot; After first hastily running over
its contents, the lady commenced the fulfilment 
of her part of the agreement.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Frederic has been so much engrossed of
late with his own affairs, that he has forgotten 
there is such a creature in existence as
his sister, or indeed, any one else, but a Miss
Emily Moseley, and consequently I have
been unable to fulfil my promise of a visit, for
want of a proper escort to see me into Wales,
and -- and -- perhaps some other considerations, 
not worth mentioning in a letter, I
know you will read to the earl.
</para>
<letter><para>
&quot;Yes, my dear cousin, Frederic Denbigh,
has supplicated the daughter of a country baronet, 
to become a dutchess; and hear it, ye
marriage-seeking nymphs and marriage-making dames! 
has supplicated in vain!
</para>
<para>
&quot;I confess to you, when the thing was first
in agitation, my aristocratic blood roused itself 
a little at the anticipated connexion; but
finding, on examination, Sir Edward was of
no doubtful lineage, and the blood of the
Chattertons runs in his veins, and finding the
young lady every thing that I could wish in
a sister, my proud scruples soon disappeared
with the folly that engendered them.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There was no necessity for any alarm, for
the lady very decidedly refused the honour
offered her by Derwent, and what makes the
matter worse, refused the solicitations of his
sister also.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have fifty times been surprised at myself,
for my condescension, and to this moment am
at a loss to know, whether it was to the lady's
worth -- my brother's happiness -- or the Chatterton 
blood -- that I finally yielded. Heigho!
this Chatterton is certainly much too handsome for a 
man; but I forget, you have never
seen him.&quot; (Here an arch smile stole over
the features of the listener, as his sister continued) 
-- &quot;to return to my narration -- I had
half a mind to send for a Miss Harris there
is here, to learn the most approved fashion
of a lady's preferring a suit, but as fame said
she was just now practising on a certain hero, yclep'd 
Captain Jarvis, heir to Sir Timo 
-- of that name, it struck me her system might
be rather too abrupt, so I was fain to adopt
the best plan, that of trusting to nature and
my own feelings for words.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nobility is certainly a very pretty thing,
(for those who have it,) but I would defy the
old Margravine of -- , to keep up the semblance 
of superiority with Emily Moseley.
She is so very natural -- so very beautiful 
-- and withal at times a little arch, that one is
afraid to set up any other distinctions, than
such as can be fairly supported.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I commenced with hoping her determination, to 
reject the hand of Frederic was not an unalterable 
one. (Yes, I called him Frederic, what I never did out of my own
family before in my life.) There was a considerable 
tremor in the voice of Miss Moseley, as
she replied, 'I now perceive, when too late,
that my indiscretion has given reason to my
friends to think, that I have entertained opinions of 
his Grace and thoughts for the future. 
I entreat you to believe me, Lady
Harriet, I am innocent of -- indeed -- indeed
as any thing more than an agreeable acquaintance, 
I have never allowed myself to think
of your brother' -- and from my soul I believe 
her -- we continued our conversation for
half an hour longer -- and such was the ingenuousness -- 
delicacy -- and high religious
feeling displayed by the charming girl, that
if I entered the room with a spark of regret,
I was compelled to solicit another to favour 
my brother's love -- I left it with a
stronger feeling that my efforts had been
unsuccessful -- Yes! thou peerless sister of the
more peerless Pendennyss! I once thought
of your ladyship for a wife to Derwent -- &quot;
</para></letter>
<para>
A glass of water was necessary, to 
enable the reader to clear her voice, which
grew husky from speaking so long.
</para>
<letter><para>
&quot;But I now openly avow -- neither your
birth -- your hundred thousand pounds -- or
your merit -- would put you on a footing, in
my estimation, with my Emily -- you may
form some idea of her power to captivate,
and indifference to her conquests -- when I
mention that she once refused -- but, I forget,
you don't know him, and therefore cannot
be a judge -- the thing is finally decided, and
we shortly go into Westmoreland, and next
week, the Moseleys return to Northamptonshire -- 
I don't know when I shall be able to
visit you, and think I may now safely invite
you to Denbigh Castle, although a month
ago I might have hesitated -- love to the Earl,
and kind assurances to yourself, of unalterable regard.
</para>
<sig>
  &quot;Harriet Denbigh.&quot; 
</sig>
<para>
   &quot;P.S. I believe I forgot to mention, that
Mrs. Moseley, a sister of Lord Chatterton,
has gone to Portugal, and that the Baron
himself, is to go into the country, with us 
 -- there is, I suppose, a fellow-feeling between
them just now -- though I do not think Chatterton 
looks so very miserable as he might.
--Adieu.&quot;
</para></letter>
<para>
On the ending this second epistle, the
same silence, which had succeeded the reading 
of the first, prevailed, until the lady, with
an arch expression, interrupted it by saying,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Harriet will, I think, soon grace the
peerage.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And happily, I trust,&quot; replied the brother.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you know Lord Chatterton?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I do; he is very amiable, and admirably
calculated to contrast with the lively gayety
of Harriet Denbigh.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You believe in loving our opposites, I
see,&quot; rejoined the Lady; and then affectionately 
stretching out her hand to him, she
added, &quot;but Pendennyss, you must give me
for a sister, one as nearly like yourself as possible.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That might please your affections,&quot;
answered the Earl with a smile, &quot;but how
would it comport with my tastes -- will you
suffer me to describe the kind of man you are
to select for your future lord -- unless you
have decided the point already.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The lady coloured violently, and appearing
anxious to change the subject, tumbled over
two or three unopened letters on the table, as
she cried eagerly, &quot;Here is one from the Donna Julia.&quot;
The Earl instantly broke the seal, and read
aloud -- no secrets existing between them in
relation to their mutual friend.
</para>
<letter><salut>
&quot;My Lord,
</salut>
<para>
&quot;I hasten to write to you, what I know
will give you pleasure to hear, concerning
my future prospects in life. My uncle, General M'Carthy, 
has written me the cheerful tidings, that my father has consented
to receive his only child, without any other
sacrifice, than a condition, of attending the
public service of the Catholic Church -- 
without any professions on my side, or even an
understanding, that I am conforming to its
peculiar tenets -- this may be, in some measure, 
irksome at times, and, possibly, distressing 
-- but the worship of God, with a
proper humiliation of spirit, I have learnt
to consider as a privilege to us here -- and I
owe a duty to my earthly father, of penitence 
and care, in his later years, that will
justify the measure in the eyes of my heavenly one. -- 
I have, therefore, acquainted my uncle in reply, that I am willing
to attend the Conde's summons, at any moment 
he will choose to make them, and
thought it a debt due your care and friendship, to 
apprise your lordship of my approaching departure 
from this country; indeed, I have great reasons for believing, that
your kind and unremitted efforts to attain
this object, have already prepared you to expect this result.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I feel it will be impossible to quit
England without seeing yourself and sister -- to thank 
you for the many -- very many favours, of 
both a temporal and eternal
nature, you have been the agents of confering on me; 
the cruel suggestions, which I
dreaded, and which it appears, had reached
the ears of my friends in Spain, have prevented my 
troubling your lordship, of late,
with my concerns unnecessarily. -- The consideration, 
of a friend to your character,
(Mrs. Wilson,) has removed the necessity of
my inexperience applying for your advice
--She, and her charming niece, Miss Emily
Moseley, have been, next to yourselves, the
greatest solace I have had in my exile -- and
united, you will be remembered in my prayers -- 
I will merely mention here, defering the 
explanation until I see you in London, that 
I have been visited by the wretch,
from whom you delivered me in Portugal,
and the means of ascertaining his name
have fallen into my hands -- you will be the
best judge of the proper steps to be taken 
-- but I wish, by all means, something may be
done, to prevent his attempting to see me
in Spain -- should it be discovered to my
relations there, it would certainly terminate in
his death, and, possibly, my disgrace. -- Wishing you, 
and your kind sister, all possible
happiness, I remain your Lordship's obliged friend,
</para>
<sig>
&quot;Julia Fitzgerald.&quot;
</sig></letter>
<para>
&quot;Oh!&quot; cried the sister as concluding the
letter, &quot;we must certainly see her before she
goes -- what a wretch that persecutor of her
must be -- how persevering in his villainy.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He does exceed my ideas of effrontery,&quot;
said the Earl, in great warmth -- &quot;but he
may offend too far; the laws shall interpose
their power to defeat his schemes, should he
ever repeat them.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He attempted to take your life, brother,&quot; said the lady, 
shuddering -- &quot;if I remember the tale aright.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, I have endeavoured to free him
from that imputation,&quot; rejoined the brother
musing -- &quot;he certainly fired a pistol, but it
hit my horse at such a distance from myself,
that I believe his object was to disable me
from pursuit, and not murder; -- his escape
has astonished me; -- he must have fled by
himself into the woods, as Harmer was but
at a short distance behind me, admirably
mounted, on one of my chargers, and the escort 
was up, and in full pursuit, within ten
minutes; after all, it may be for the best he was
not taken, for I am persuaded the dragoons
would have sabred him on the spot -- and he
may have parents of respectability, or a wife
to kill, by the knowledge of his misconduct.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;This Emily Moseley must be a faultless
being,&quot; cried his sister, as she run over the
contents of Julia's letter to herself. &quot;Three
different letters, and each one containing her
praises.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The Earl made no reply, but opening the
Duke's letter again, appeared to be closely
studying its contents. His colour slightly
changed as he dwelt on the sense of its passages, 
and turning to his sister, he inquired
with a smile, &quot;if she had a mind to try the air
of Westmoreland, for a couple of weeks or a
month.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;As you say, my Lord&quot; -- replied the 
lady with cheeks of scarlet.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then I say, we will go. I wish much to
see Derwent, and I somewhat think, there
will be a wedding during our visit.&quot; He rang
the bell, and the almost untasted breakfast
was removed in a few minutes. A servant
announced his horse in readiness. The Earl
wished his sister a friendly good morning,
and proceeded to the door, where was standing one of the 
noble black horses before mentioned, held by a groom, 
and the military looking attendant, ready mounted, on the other.
</para>
<para>
Throwing himself into the saddle, the
young peer rode gracefully from the door,
followed by no one but his attendant horseman. 
During this ride, the master suffered
his steed to take whatever course most pleased himself, 
and his follower looked up in surprise more than once, 
to see the careless manner the Earl of Pendennyss, confessedly one
of the best horsemen in Spain, managed the
noble animal he rode. Having, however,
got without the gates of his own park, and
into the vicinity of numberless cottages and
farm houses, the master recovered his recollection, 
and the man ceased to wonder.
</para>
<para>
For three hours the equestrians pursued
their course through the beautiful vale, which
opened gracefully opposite one of the fronts
of the castle; and if faces of smiling welcome 
 -- inquiries after his own and his sisters welfare, 
which evidently sprung from the heart 
 -- or the most familiar but respectful representations 
of their own prosperity or misfortunes,
gave any testimony of the feelings entertained by 
the tenantry of this noble estate for
their landlord, the situation of the young nobleman 
might be justly considered one to be envied.
</para>
<para>
As the hour for dinner approached, they
turned the heads of their horses towards
home; and on entering the park, removed
from the scene of industry and activity, without, 
the Earl relapsed into his fit of musing.
But a short distance from the house he suddenly 
called, &quot;Harmer;&quot; the man threw his
spurs into the loins of his horse, and in an
instant was by the side of his master, which
he signified by raising his hand to his cap
with the palm opening outward. &quot;You must
prepare to go to Spain, when required, in 
attendance on Mrs. Fitzgerald.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The man received his order, with the indifference 
of one used to adventures and
movements, and having laconically signified
his assent, drew his horse back again, into his
station in the rear.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XIII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The day succeeding the arrival of the
Moseley's, at the seat of their ancestors,
Mrs. Wilson observed Emily silently putting
on her pelisse, and walking out unattended
by either of the domestics, or any of the
family. There was a peculiar melancholy
in her air and manner, that inclined the cantious 
aunt, to suspect her charge was bent on
the indulgence of some ill-judged weakness;
more particularly, as the direction she took
led to the arbour -- a theatre where Denbigh
had been so conspicuous an actor. Hastily
throwing a cloak over her own shoulders, Mrs.
Wilson followed Emily, with the double purpose of 
ascertaining her views, and, if necessary, interposing her own authority
against the repetition of similar excursions.
</para>
<para>
As Emily approached the arbour, whither in
truth she had directed her steps, its faded
vegetation and chilling aspect, so different
from its verdure and luxuriance, when she
last saw it, came over her heart as a symbol
of her own blighted prospects and deadened
affections; -- the recollections of Denbigh's
conduct on that spot -- his general benevolence and 
assiduity to please, herself in particular, 
being forcibly recalled to her mind
at the instant -- forgetful of her object in
visiting the arbour, Emily yielded for the
moment to her sensibilities, and sunk on the
seat, weeping as if her heart would break.
</para>
<para>
She had not time to dry her eyes, and collect 
her scattered thoughts under the alarm
of approaching footsteps, before Mrs. Wilson
entered the arbour. Eying her niece for a
moment with a sternness unusual for the one
to adopt, or the other to receive -- she said,
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is a solemn obligation we owe our religion 
and ourselves, to endeavour to suppress such 
passions as are incompatible with
our professions. And there is no weakness
greater than blindly adhering to the wrong,
when we are convinced of our error -- it is as
fatal to good morals, as it is unjust to ourselves, 
to persevere, from selfish motives, in
believing those innocent, whom evidence
has convicted as guilty. Many a weak
woman has sealed her own misery by
such wilful obstinacy, aided by the unpardonable 
vanity, of believing herself able to
control a man, the laws of God could not
restrain.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, dear Madam, speak not so unkindly
to me,&quot; sobbed the weeping girl, &quot;I -- I am
guilty of no such weakness, I assure you;&quot;
and looking up with an air of profound resignation 
and piety, she continued, &quot;Here,
on this spot where he saved my life, I was
about to offer up my prayers for his conviction of 
the error of his ways, and the pardon of his too -- 
too heavy transgressions.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson, softened almost to tears her
self, viewed her for a moment with a mixture 
of delight, at her pious fervor, and pity,
for the frailties of nature, which bound her
so closely in the bonds of feeling, as she
continued in a milder tone --  &quot;I believe you, my dear. 
I am certain, although you may have loved Denbigh much,
you love your Maker and his ordinances
more; and I have no apprehensions, that
were he a disengaged man, and you alone in
the world -- unsupported by any thing but
your sense of duty -- you would ever so far
forget yourself, as to become his wife. But
does not your religion -- does not your own
usefulness in society, require you wholly to
free your heart, from the power of a man,
who has so unworthily usurped a dominion
over it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
To this Emily replied in a hardly audible
voice, &quot;Certainly -- and I pray constantly
for it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is well, my love,&quot; said the aunt soothingly, 
&quot;you cannot fail with such means,
and your own exertions, finally to prevail over
your own worst enemies -- your passions.
The task our sex has to sustain is, at the best,
an arduous one; but so much the greater is
our credit -- if we do it well.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! how is an unguided girl ever to
judge right in her choice, if,&quot; cried Emily,
clasping her hands and speaking with great
energy -- and she would have said, -- &quot;one
like Denbigh in appearance, be so vile.&quot; But
shame kept her silent.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Few men can support such a veil of hypocrisy, 
as with which I sometimes think
Denbigh must deceive even himself. His case
is an extraordinary exception to a very sacred
rule -- 'that the tree is known by its fruits,&quot;'
replied her aunt. &quot;There is no safer way of
judging of characters, your opportunities will
not admit of more closely investigating, than
by examining into, and duly appreciating,
early impressions. The man or woman, who
have constantly seen the practice of piety before 
them, from infancy to the noon of life,
will seldom so far abandon the recollection
of virtue, as to be guilty of great enormities.
Even divine truth has promised, that his blessings 
or his curses, shall extend to many generations. 
It is true, that with our most
guarded prudence, we may be deceived.&quot;
Mrs. Wilson paused and sighed heavily,
as her own case, connected with the loves of
Denbigh and her niece, occurred strongly to
her mind: &quot;yet,&quot; she continued, &quot;we may
lessen the danger much, by guarding against
it; and it seems to me, no more than self-preservation 
requires, in a young woman. But
for a religious parent to neglect it, is a wilful
abandonment of a most solemn duty.&quot;
</para>
<para>
As Mrs. Wilson concluded, her neice, who
had recovered the command of her feelings,
pressed her hand in silence to her lips, and
shewed a disposition to retire from a spot, she
found recalled too many recollections of
a man, whose image it was her imperious duty to 
banish, on every consideration, of propriety or religion.
</para>
<para>
Their walk into the house was a silent one
--and their thoughts drawn from the unpleasant topic, 
by finding a letter from Julia, announcing her intended departure from this
country, and her wish of taking her leave of
them in London, before she sailed. As she
had mentioned the probable day of that event,
both the ladies were delighted to find it was
posterior to the time, fixed by Sir Edward, for
their own visit to the capital.
</para>
<para>
Had Jane, instead of Emily, been the one
that suffered through the agency of Mrs. Fitzgerald, 
however innocently on the part of the
lady, her violent and uncontrolled passions,
would have either blindly united the innocent
with the guilty, in her resentments, or, if a
sense of justice had vindicated the lady in
her judgment, yet her pride, and ill-guided
delicacy, would have felt her name a reproach,
that would have forbidden any intercourse
with her, or any belonging to her.
</para>
<para>
Not so with her sister. The sufferings of
Mrs. Fitzgerald had taken a strong hold on
her youthful feelings, and a similarity of opinions 
and practices, on the great object of
their lives, had brought them together, in a
manner no misconduct in a third person,
could weaken. It is true, the recollection of
Denbigh was intimately blended with the
fate of Mrs. Fitzgerald. But Emily sought
her support against her feelings, from a quarter, 
that rather required an investigation of
them, than a desire to drown care, with
thought.
</para>
<para>
She never indulged in romantic reflections in
which the image of Denbigh was associated.
This she had hardly done in her happiest moments; 
and his marriage, if nothing else had
interfered, now absolutely put it out of the
question. But, although a christian, and a
humble and devout one, Emily Moseley was
a woman, and had loved ardently -- confidingly -- and gratefully. 
Marriage is the business
of life with most of her sex -- with all, next
to a preparation for a better -- and it cannot
be supposed that a first passion, in a bosom
like that of our heroine, was to be erased,
and leave no vestiges of its existence.
</para>
<para>
Her partiality to the society of Derwent 
-- her meditations, in which she sometimes detected herself 
drawing a picture of what Denbigh might have been, if early care had been
taken to impress him with his situation in this
world, and from which she generally retired
to her closet and her knees, were the remains
of feeling, too strong and too pure to be torn
from her in a moment.
</para>
<para>
The arrival of John, with Grace and Jane,
had enlivened not only the family, but the
neighbourhood. Mr. Haughton and his numerous 
friends poured in on the young couple with 
their congratulations, and a few
weeks stole by insensibly, before the already
mentioned journies of Sir Edward and his son
-- the one to Benfield Lodge -- and the other
to St. James's Square.
</para>
<para>
On the return of the travellers, a few days
before they commenced their journey to the
capital -- John laughingly told his uncle, 
&quot;although he himself greatly admired the taste
of Mr. Peter Johnson in dress, yet he doubted 
whether the present style of fashions,
would not be scandalized, in the metropolis,
by the appearance of the honest steward.&quot;
John had, in fact, noticed in their former visit 
to London together, a mob of mischievous
boys eyeing Peter with gestures and other
indications of rebellious movements, which
threatened the old man's ease with a violent
disturbance, and from which he had retreated by 
taking a coach, and now made 
the suggestion from pure good nature, to save him
any future trouble from a similar cause.
</para>
<para>
They were at dinner as Moseley made the
remark, and the steward, in his place, at the
sideboard -- for his master was his home 
-- drawing near at the mention of his name
--and, after casting an examination over his
figure to see if all was decent, Peter respectfully 
broke silence, in reply, determined
to defend his own cause.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why! Mr. John! -- Mr. John Moseley?
--if I might judge -- for an elderly man 
-- and a serving man -- ,&quot; said the steward,
bowing humbly, &quot;I am no disparagement to
my friends, or even my honoured master.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Johnson's vindication of his wardrobe,
drew the eyes of the family upon him, and
an involuntary smile passed from one to the
other, as they admired his starched figure and
drab frock; or rather doublet with sleeves
and skirts. And Sir Edward, being of the
same opinion with his son, observed 
-- 
   &quot;I do think with John, Uncle Benfield,
there might be an improvement in the dress
of your steward, without much trouble to
the ingenuity of his tailor.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Sir Edward Moseley -- honourable sir,&quot;
said the steward, beginning to grow alarmed
for the fate of his old companions; &quot;If I
may be so bold -- you, young gentlemen, may
like your gay clothes, but as for me and his
honour, we are used to such as we wear, and
what we are used to, we love.&quot; The old
man spoke with great earnestness, and drew
the particular attention of his master to a review 
of his attire. After reflecting; in his
own mind, that no gentleman in the house
had been attended by any servitor in such a
garb, Mr. Benfield thought it time to give his
sentiments on the subject.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, I remember that my Lord Gosford's gentleman, 
never wore a livery, nor
can I say that he dressed exactly after the
manner of Johnson. Every member had his
body servant, and they were not unfrequently taken 
for their masters. Lady Juliana,
too, she had, after the death of her nephew,
one or two attendants out of livery, and in a
different fashion from your attire. Peter, I
think with John Moseley there; we must alter you 
a little, for the sake of appearance.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your honour?&quot; -- stammered out Peter, in
increased terror, seeing the way his master
was inclining; &quot;for Mr. John Moseley, and
Sir Edward, and youngerly gentlemen like,
--dress may do. Now, your honour, if -- &quot;
and Peter, turning to Grace, bowed nearly to
the floor; -- &quot;I had such a sweet -- most
beautiful young lady, to smile on me, I
might wish to change; but, sir, my day has
gone by,&quot; and Peter sigh'd as the recollection of 
Patty Steele, and his youthful love,
floated across his brain. Grace blushed and
thanked him for the compliment, as she gave
her opinion, his gallantry deserved a better
costume.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Peter,&quot; said his master decidedly, &quot;I
think Mrs. Moseley is right. If I should call
on the Viscountess, (the Lady Juliana, who
yet survived, an ancient dowager of seventy)
I will want your attendance, and in your present garb, 
you cannot fail to shock her delicate feelings. 
You remind me now, I think
every time I look at you, of old Harry, the
Earl's game-keeper; one of the most cruel
men I ever knew.&quot;
</para>
<para>
This decided the matter. Peter well knew
that his master's antipathy to old Harry, arose
from his having pursued a poacher one day,
in place of helping the Lady Juliana over a
stile, in her flight from a bull, that was playing 
his gambols in the same field; and not
for the world would the faithful steward retain even 
a feature, if it brought unpleasant
recollections to his kind master; however, he
at one time thought of closing his innovations
on his wardrobe, with a change of his nether garment; 
as, after a great deal of study, he
could only make out the resemblance between himself 
and the obnoxious game-keeper, to consist in the leather breeches. But
fearful of some points escaping his memory
in forty years, he tamely acquiesced in all
John's alterations, and appeared at his station 
three days afterwards, newly deck'd
from head to foot, in a more modern suit of
snuff-colour.
</para>
<para>
The change once made, Peter admired himself 
in a glass greatly, and thought, that could
he have had the taste of Mr. John Moseley,
in his youth, to direct his toilet, the hard heart
of Patty would not always have continued so
obdurate.
</para>
<para>
Sir Edward wished to collect his neighbours 
round him once more, before he left
them for another four months; and accordingly the 
Rector and his wife -- Francis and
Clara -- the Haughtons, with a few others,
dined at the Hall, by invitation, the last day
of their stay in Northamptonshire; they had
left the table after dinner to join the ladies,
as Grace came into the drawing room with a
face covered with smiles and beaming with
pleasure.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You look like the bearer of good news,
Mrs. Moseley,&quot; cried the Rector, catching a
glimpse of her countenance as she passed.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Good -- I sincerely hope and believe,&quot;
replied Grace. &quot;My letters from my brother 
announce his marriage to have taken
place last week, and give us hopes of seeing
them all in town within the month.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Married,&quot; exclaimed Mr. Haughton, casting 
his eyes unconsciously on Emily, &quot;my
Lord Chatterton married -- may I ask the
name of the bride, my dear Mrs. Moseley.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;To Lady Harriet Denbigh -- and at Denbigh 
Castle, in Westmoreland -- but very privately, 
as you may suppose, from seeing
Moseley and myself here,&quot; answered Grace,
with cheeks yet glowing with surprise and
pleasure at the intelligence.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Lady Harriet Denbigh?&quot; echoed Mr.
Haughton, &quot;what! a kinswoman of our old
friend? -- your friend? -- Miss Emily,&quot; the
recollection of the service he had performed
her at the arbour, fresh in his memory. Emily 
commanded herself sufficiently to reply:
&quot;Brother's children, I believe, sir.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But a lady -- how came she my lady,&quot;
continued the good man, anxious to know the
whole, and ignorant of any reasons for delicacy 
where so great a favourite as Denbigh was in the question.
</para>
<para>
&quot;She is a daughter of the late Duke of
Derwent,&quot; said Mrs. Moseley, as willing as
himself to talk of her new sister.
</para>
<para>
&quot;How happens it that the death of old
Mr. Denbigh, was announced, as plain Geo.
Denbigh, Esqr. if he was the brother of a
Duke,&quot; said Jane, forgetting, for a moment,
the presence of Dr. and Mrs. Ives, in her yet
surviving passion for genealogy; &quot;should he
not have been called Lord George, or honourable?&quot;
</para>
<para>
This was the first time any allusion had
been made to the sudden death in the church
by any of the Moseley's, in the hearing
of the rector's family; and the speaker
sat in breathless terror at her own inadvertency, as 
Dr. Ives, observing a profound silence to prevail, 
soon as Jane ended, answered mildly, but in a way to prevent any
further comments -- &quot;The late Duke succeeded a cousin-german 
in his title, was the reason, I presume.
But, Emily, I am to hear from you, by letter,
I hope, after you enter into the gayeties of
the metropolis?&quot; This Emily cheerfully promised, 
and the conversation took another
turn
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson had carefully avoided all 
communications with the rector, concerning his
youthful friend, and the Doctor appeared 
unwilling to commence any thing, which might
lead to his name being mentioned. He is
disappointed in him as well as ourselves,
thought the widow, and it must be unpleasant 
to him to have his image recalled. He
saw his attentions to Emily, and he knows
of his marriage to Lady Laura, of course 
-- and he loves us all, and Emily in particular,
too well, not to feel hurt by his conduct.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Sir Edward!&quot; cried Mr. Haughton, with
a laugh -- &quot;Baronets are likely to be plenty.
Have you heard how near we were to having another 
in the neighbourhood lately&quot; 
-- and as Sir Edward answered in the negative,
his neighbour continued  --  &quot;Why, no less 
a man than Capt. Jarvis promoted to the bloody hand.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Capt. Jarvis?&quot; exclaimed five or six at
once -- &quot;explain yourself, Mr. Haughton.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;My near neighbour, young Walker, has
been to Bath on an unusual business -- his
health -- and, for the benefit of the country,
has brought back a pretty piece of scandal,
with some surprising news. It seems that
Lady Jarvis, as I am told she is since she left
here, wished to have her hopeful heir made a
Lord, and that the two united for some six
months, in forming a kind of savings' bank
between themselves, to enable them at some
future day to bribe the minister, to honour the
peerage with such a prodigy. After a while,
the daughter of our late acquaintance, Sir
William Harris, became an accessary to the
plot, and a contributor too, to the tune of a
couple of hundred pounds. Some circumstances, 
however, at length made this latter
lady suspicious, and she wished to audit the
books. The Captain prevaricated -- the lady 
remonstrated -- until the gentleman, with
more truth than manners, told her she was a
fool -- the money he had expended or lost at
dice; and that, he did not think the ministers
quite so silly as to make him a lord -- or himself, 
as to make her his wife -- so the whole
thing exploded.&quot;
</para>
<para>
John listened to the story with a delight
but little short of what he had felt, when
Grace owned her love, and anxious to know
all, inquired -- &quot;But, is it true? -- how was it found out?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, the lady complained of part -- and
the Captain tells all, to get the laugh on his
side; so that Walker says, the former is the
derision, and the latter the contempt, of all
Bath.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Poor Sir William,&quot; said the Baronet,
with feeling; &quot;he is much to be pitied.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am afraid he has nothing to blame but
his own weak indulgence,&quot; remarked the Rector.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But you don't know the worst of it,&quot;
cried Mr. Haughton. &quot;We poor people are
made to suffer -- Lady Jarvis wept, and fretted 
Sir Timo -- out of his lease, which has been
given up, and a new house is to be taken in
another part of the kingdom, where neither
Miss Harris or the story is known.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then Sir William has a new tenant to
procure,&quot; said Lady Moseley, not in the least
regretting the loss of the old one.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No! my Lady?&quot; continued Mr. Haughton, 
with a smile. &quot;Walker is, you know, an
attorney, and does some business, occasionally, 
for Sir William. When Jarvis gave up
the lease, the Baronet, who finds himself a
little short of money, offered the deanery for
sale, it being a useless place to him -- and
the very next day, while Walker was with
Sir William, a gentleman called, and without
higgling, agreed to pay down at once, his
thirty thousand pounds for it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And who is he?&quot; inquired Lady Moseley eagerly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Earl of Pendennyss.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Lord Pendennyss!&quot; exclaimed Mrs. Wilson in rapture.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pendennyss!&quot; cried the Rector, eying
the aunt and Emily with a smile.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pendennyss!&quot; echoed all in the room in
amazement.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes,&quot; said Mr. Haughton, &quot;it is now
the property of the Earl, who says he has
bought it for his sister.&quot;
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XIV.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson found time the ensuing day
to ascertain, before they left the hall, the truth
of the tale related by Mr. Haughton. The
deanery had certainly changed its master, and
a new steward had already arrived, to take
possession in the name of his lord. What
could induce Pendennyss to make this purchase, 
she was entirely at a loss to conceive;
most probably some arrangement between
himself and Lord Bolton; but whatever might
be his motive, it in some measure insured his
becoming for a season their neighbour; and Mrs.
Wilson felt a degree of pleasure at the circumstance 
she had been a stranger to for a long time;
and which was greatly heightened as she dwelt
on the lovely face of her companion, who occupied 
the other seat in her travelling chaise.
</para>
<para>
The road to London led by the gates of
the deanery, and near them they passed a
servant in the livery, she thought, of those
she had once seen following the equipage of
the Earl; anxious to know any thing which
might hasten her acquaintantance with this
so long admired nobleman, Mrs. Wilson stopped 
her carriage, as she inquired,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pray, sir, whom do you serve?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;My Lord Pendennyss, ma'am,&quot; replied
the man, respectfully taking off his hat.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Earl is not here?&quot; asked Mrs. Wilson with interest.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh no, madam; I am here in waiting on
his steward. My lord is in Westmoreland,
with his grace and Colonel Denbigh, and the
ladies.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Does he remain there long?&quot; continued
the anxious widow, desirous of knowing all
she could learn.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I believe not, madam; most of our people
have gone to Annerdale-House, and my lord
is expected in town with the Duke and the
Colonel.&quot;
</para>
<para>
As the servant was an elderly man, and
appeared to understand the movements of his
master so well, Mrs. Wilson was put in unusual spirits 
by this prospect, of a speedy termination to her anxiety, to meet Pendennyss.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Annerdale-House is the Earl's town residence?&quot; 
inquired Emily with a feeling for
her aunt's partiality.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes; he got the fortune of the last Duke
of that title, but how I do not exactly know.
I believe, however, through his mother. General
Wilson did not know his family: indeed, Pendennyss bore 
a second title during his lifetime; but did you observe how very civil his
servant was, and the one John spoke to before,
a sure sign their master is a gentleman.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily smiled as she witnessed the strong
partialities of her aunt in his favour, and replied,
&quot;Your handsome chaise and attendants
will draw respect from most men in his situation, 
dear aunt, be their masters as they may.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The expected pleasure of meeting the Earl
was a topic frequently touched upon between
her aunt and Emily during their journey.
The former, beginning to entertain hopes,
she would have laughed at herself for, could
they have been fairly laid before her; and the
latter entertaining a profound respect for his
character, but chiefly governed by a wish to
gratify her companion.
</para>
<para>
The third day they reached the baronet's handsome 
house in St. James's square,
and found, that the forethought of John, had
provided every thing for them in the best and
most comfortable manner.
</para>
<para>
It was the first visit of both Jane and Emily
to the metropolis, and under the protection of
their almost equally curious mother, and escorted 
by John, they wisely determined to
visit the curiosities, while their leisure yet 
admitted of the opportunity; and for the first
two weeks, their time had been chiefly employed 
in the indulgence of this unfashionable
and vulgar propensity; which, if it had no
other tendency, served greatly to draw the
thoughts of both the young women from the
recollection of the few last months.
</para>
<para>
While her sister and nieces were thus employed in 
amusing themselves, Mrs. Wilson, assisted
by Grace, was occupied in getting things in
preparation to do credit to the baronet's hospitality.
</para>
<para>
The second week after their arrival,
Mrs. Moseley was delighted by seeing advance 
upon her unexpectedly through the
door of the breakfast parlour, her brother,
with his bride leaning on his arm. After the
most sincere greetings and congratulations,
Lady Chatterton cried out gayly, &quot;you see,
my dear Lady Moseley, I am determined to
banish ceremony between us, and so instead
of sending you a card, have come myself, to
notify you of my arrival. Chatterton would
not suffer me even to swallow my breakfast,
he was so impatient to show me off.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are placing things exactly on the
footing I wish to see ourselves with all our
connexions,&quot; replied Lady Moseley kindly;
&quot;but what have you done with the Duke, is
he in your train?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! he is gone to Canterbury, with
George Denbigh, madam,&quot; cried the lady,
shaking her head reproachfully, though affectionately, 
at Emily; &quot;his grace dislikes London just 
now excessively he says, and the
Colonel being obliged to leave his wife on 
regimental business, Derwent was good enough
to keep him company during his exile.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Lady Laura, do we see her?&quot; inquired Lady Moseley.
</para>
<para>
&quot;She came with us -- Pendennyss and his
sister follow immediately; so, my dear madam, 
the dramatis personae will soon all be
on the stage.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Cards and visits now began to accumulate 
on the Moseleys, and their time no longer
admitted of that unfettered disposal of it,
which they had enjoyed at their entrance on
the scene. Mrs. Wilson, for herself and charge,
had adopted a rule for the government of
her manner of living, which was consistent
with her duties and profession. They mixed
in general society sparingly, and with great
moderation; and above all, they rigidly adhered 
to their obedience to the injunction,
which commanded them to keep the sabbath
day holy -- a duty of no trifling difficulty to
perform in fashionable society in the city of
London, or indeed any other place, where
the influence of fashion has supplanted the
laws of God.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson was not a bigot; but she
knew and performed her duty rigidly. It
was a pleasure to her to do so. It would
have been misery to have to do otherwise.
In the singleness of heart, and deep piety of
her niece, she had a willing pupil to her system of 
morals, and a rigid follower of her religious practices. As they both knew the
temptations to go astray were greater in town
than in the country, they kept a strict guard
over their tendency to err, and in watchfulness 
found their greatest security.
</para>
<para>
John Moseley, next to his friends, loved
his bays: indeed, if the aggregate of his affections 
for these and Lady Herrifield had
been put in opposite scales, we strongly suspect the 
side of the horses would preponderate.
</para>
<para>
One early Sunday, after being domesticated, John, who had soberly attended
morning service with the ladies, came into a
little room, where the more reflecting part of
the family were assembled, occupied with
their books, in search of his wife.
</para>
<para>
Grace, we have before mentioned, had become a real 
member of that church in which
she had been educated, and entered, under the
direction of Dr. Ives and Mrs. Wilson, into
an observance of its wholesome ordinances.
Grace was certainly piously inclined, if not
devout -- her feelings on the subject of religion, 
had been sensibly awakened during
their voyage to Lisbon; and at the period we
write of, Mrs. Moseley was as sincerely disposed 
to perform her duty as her powers admitted of. To 
the request of her husband,
that she would take a seat in his phaeton,
while he drove her round the park once or
twice, Grace gave a mild refusal by saying
&quot;it is Sunday, my dear Moseley.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you think I don't know that,&quot; cried
John gayly, &quot;there will be every body there,
and, the better day -- the better deed.&quot; Now
Moseley, if he had been asked to apply this
speech to the case before them, would have
frankly owned his inability, but his wife did
not make the trial -- she was contented with
saying, as she laid down her book, to look on
a face she so tenderly loved, &quot;Ah! Moseley, 
you should set a better example to those below you 
in life.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I wish to set an example,&quot; returned her
husband with an affectionate smile, &quot;to all
above as well as below me -- to find out the
path to happiness, by exhibiting to the world
a model of a wife in yourself, dear Grace.&quot;
</para>
<para>
As this was uttered with a sincerity which
distinguished the manner of Moseley, his wife
was more pleased with the compliment, than
she would have been willing to have known;
and John spoke no more than he thought, for
a desire to show his handsome wife was a
ruling passion for a moment.
</para>
<para>
The husband was too pressing, and the
wife too fond, not to yield the point; and
Grace took her seat in the carriage with a
kind of half-formed resolution, to improve the
opportunity, by a discourse on serious subjects -- 
a resolution which terminated as all
others do, that postpone one duty to discharge
another of less magnitude -- it was forgotten.
</para>
<para>
The experiment of Grace, to leave her
own serious occupations, in hopes by joining
in the gayety of another, to bring him to her
own state of mind, ended in her becoming a
convert to his feelings, in place of his entering into hers.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson had listened with interest to
the efforts of John, to prevail on his wife to
take the ride, and on her leaving the room
to comply she observed to Emily, with whom
she now remained alone:
</para>
<para>
&quot;Here is a consequence of a difference
in religious views between man and wife, my
child -- John, in place of supporting Grace
in the discharge of her duties, has been the
actual cause of her going astray.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily felt the force of her aunt's remark,
and saw its justice -- yet her love for the offender, induced her to say 
&quot;John will not lead her openly astray from
her path -- for he has a respect for religion,
and this offence is not unpardonable, dear
aunt.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The offence is assuredly not unpardonable,&quot; 
replied Mrs. Wilson, &quot;and to infinite
mercy, it is hard to say what is -- but it is
an offence -- and directly in the face of an express 
ordinance of the Lord -- it is even
throwing off the appearance of keeping the
Sabbath-day holy -- much less observing the
substance of the commandment -- and as to
John's respect for holy things -- in this instance
it was injurious to his wife -- had he been an
open deist, she would have shrunk from the
act in his company, in suspicion of its sinfulness -- 
either John must become a Christian,
or, I am afraid Grace will fall from her undertaking&quot; -- 
and Mrs. Wilson shook her
head mournfully, as she concluded, while
Emily offered up a silent petition, the first
might speedily be the case.
</para>
<para>
Lady Laura had been early in her visit to
the Moseleys; and, as it now appeared Denbigh had 
both a town residence, and a seat
in parliament -- it appeared next to impossible to 
avoid meeting him, or to requite the
pressing civilities of his wife, by harsh refusals, 
that might prove in the end injurious
to themselves, by creating a suspicion that
</para>
<para>
resentment at his not choosing a partner
from amongst them, governed the conduct of
the Moseleys, towards a man, to whom they
were under such a heavy obligation.
</para>
<para>
Had Sir Edward known as much as his
sister and daughters, he would probably have
discountenanced the acquaintance altogether;
but in the ignorance of the rest of her friends,
Mrs. Wilson and Emily, had not only the
assiduities of Lady Laura, but the wishes of
their own family to contend with, and consequently 
submitted to the association, with
a reluctance that was, in some measure,
counteracted by their regard for Lady Laura,
and compassion for her abused confidence.
</para>
<para>
A distant connexion of Lady Moseley,
had managed to collect in her house, a few
hundred of her nominal friends, and as she
had been particularly attentive in calling in
person on her venerable relative, Mr. Benfield, 
soon after his arrival in town, out of
respect to her father's cousin -- or, perhaps,
mindful of his approaching end, and remembering 
there were such things as codicils to
wills -- The old man, flattered by her notice,
and yet too gallant to reject the favour of a
lady -- consented to accompany the remainder
of the family, on the occasion.
</para>
<para>
Most of their acquaintances were there, and
Lady Moseley soon found herself engaged in
a party at quadrille, and the young people
occupied by the usual amusements of their
age, in such scenes -- Emily alone, feeling
but little desire to enter into the gayety of
general conversation with a host of gentlemen, 
who had collected round her aunt and
sisters -- had offered her arm to Mr. Benfield,
on seeing him manifest a disposition to take
a closer view of the company.
</para>
<para>
They had wandered from room to room,
unconscious of the observation attracted in
such a scene, by the sight of a man in the
costume of Mr. Benfield, leaning on the arm
of so young and lovely a woman as his
niece -- and many an exclamation of surprise
-- ridicule -- admiration and wonder, had been
heard, unnoticed by the pair; until finding
the crowd rather inconvenient to her companion, 
Emily gently drew him into one of
the apartments, where the card-tables, and
the general absence of beauty, had made
room less difficult to be found.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah! Emmy, dear,&quot; said the old gentleman, 
wiping his face, from the heat of the
rooms, &quot;times are much changed, I see,
since my youth -- then you would see no such
throngs assembled in so small a space -- Gentlemen 
shoving ladies -- and yes, Emmy -- &quot;
continued her uncle, in a lower tone, as if
afraid of uttering something dangerous to be
heard, &quot;the ladies themselves, shouldering
the men -- I remember at a drum given by
Lady Gosford -- that, although I may without vanity, 
say, I was one of the gallantest
men in the rooms -- I came in contact with
but one of the ladies during the whole even
ing, excepting handing the Lady Juliana to
a chair once -- and that&quot; said her uncle,
stopping short, and lowering his voice to a
whisper, &quot;was occasioned by a mischance
in the old Dutchess in rising from her seat,
where she had taken too much strong waters,
as she was, at times, a little troubled with a
pain in the chest.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily smiled at the casualty of her Grace,
and they proceeded slowly through the
tables, until their passage was stopped by a
party at the game of whist, which by its incongruous 
mixture of ages, and character in
the players, forcibly drew her attention.
</para>
<para>
The party was composed of a young man
of five or six and twenty, who threw down his
cards in careless indifference of the game, and
heedlessly played with the guineas which
were either laid on the side of the table as
markers, or the fruits of a former victory; or by
stealing hasty and repeated glances through
the vista of the tables, into the gayer scenes of
the adjoining rooms -- proved he was in duresse,
and waited nothing but opportunity, to
make his escape from the tedium of cards
and ugliness, to the life of conversation and
beauty.
</para>
<para>
His partner was a woman of doubtful
age, and one whose countenance rather indicated, 
that the uncertainty was likely to continue, until 
the record of the tomb-stone divulged the so-often contested circumstance
to the world -- her eye also wandered at
</para>
<para>
times to the gayer scenes, but with an expression 
of censoriousness, mingled with her
longings; nor did she neglect the progress
of the game as frequently as her more heedless partner -- 
a cast of her eye, thrown often
on the golden pair which was placed between
her and her neighbour on her right, marked
the importance of the corner, as the precision of 
that neighbour, had regarded as necessary an exhibition 
of the prize, as a quickener of the intellects, or, perhaps, a mean to
remedy the defects of bad memories.
</para>
<para>
Her neighbour on the right, was a man of
sixty, and his vestments announced him a servant 
of the sanctuary -- his intentness on the
game, proceeded -- from his habits of reflection;
-- his smile at success, -- from charity to his
neighbours; -- his frown in adversity -- from displeasure 
at the triumphs of the wicked; for
such, in his heart, he had set down Miss
Wigram to be -- and his unconquerable gravity in 
the employment -- from a profound
regard to the dignity of his holy office.
</para>
<para>
The fourth performer in this trial of memories, 
was an ancient lady, gayly dressed,
and intently eager on the game; between her
and the young man was a large pile of guineas, and 
which appeared to be her exclusive property, from which she repeatedly,
during the play, tendered one to his acceptance 
on the event of a hand or a trick, and
to which she seldom failed, from the inadvertance 
of her antagonist, to add his mite, as
contributing to accumulate the pile.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Two double and the rub, my dear Doctor,&quot; 
exclaimed the senior lady, in triumph
-- &quot;Sir William you owe me ten&quot; -- the
money was paid as easily as it had been
won, and the Dowager proceeded to settle
some bets with her female antagonist.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Too more, I fancy, ma'am,&quot; said she,
scanning closely the contributions of the
maiden.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I believe it is right, my Lady,&quot; was the
answer, with a look, that said pretty plainly,
that or nothing.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I beg pardon, my dear, here are but four
-- and you remember -- two on the corner,
and four on the points -- Doctor, I will trouble 
you for a couple of guineas from Miss
Wigram's store by you -- I am in haste to get
to the Countess's route.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The Doctor was cooly helping himself
from the said store, under the watchful eyes
of its owner, and secretly exulting in his own
judgment in requiring the stakes -- as the
maiden replied in great warmth, &quot;your
ladyship forgets the two you lost me at Mrs.
Howard's.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It must be a mistake, my dear, I always
pay as I lose,&quot; cried the Dowager, with
great spirit, stretching over the table, and
coolly helping herself to the disputed money.
</para>
<para>
Mr. Benfield and Emily had stood silent
spectators of the whole scene, the latter
in astonishment to meet such manners, in
such society, and the former under feelings
it would have been difficult to describe, for,
in the face of the Dowager, which was inflamed, 
partly from passion, and more from
high-living, he recognised the remains of
his -- Lady Juliana -- now the Viscountess
Dowager Haverford.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Emmy, dear,&quot; said the old man, with
a heavy-drawn sigh, as if awaking from a
long and troubled dream, &quot;we will go&quot; -- the
phantom of forty years had vanished before
the truth; and the fancies of retirement 
-- simplicity -- and a diseased imagination 
-- yielded to the influence of life and common sense.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XV.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
With Harriet, now closely connected with
them by marriage as well as regard, the Baronet's family 
maintained a most friendly intercourse, and Mrs. Wilson, 
and Emily, a prodigious favourite with her new cousin, had
consented to pass a day soberly with her, during 
an excursion, of her husband to Windsor,
on business connected with his station. They
had, accordingly, driven round to an early
breakfast; and Chatterton politely regretting
his loss, and thanking their consideration for
his wife, made his bow.
</para>
<para>
Lady Harriet Denbigh had brought the
Baronet a very substantial addition to his fortune; 
and as his sisters were both provided
for by ample settlements, the pecuniary distresses 
which had existed a twelve-month
before had been entirely removed; his income was now 
large; his demands upon it
small, and they kept up an establishment in
proportion to the rank of both husband and
wife.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mrs. Wilson,&quot; cried their hostess, twirling her 
cup as she followed with her eyes
the retreating figure of her husband to the
door, &quot;I am about to take up the trade of
Miss Harris, and become a match maker.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not on your own behalf so soon, surely,&quot;
rejoined the widow, returning her animated
smile.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh no, my fortune is made for life, or
not at all,&quot; continued the other gayly, &quot;but
in behalf of our little friend Emily here.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Me,&quot; cried Emily, starting from a reverie, in which 
the prospect of happiness to Lady Laura was the subject, &quot;you are very
good Harriet, and for whom does your consideration 
intend me!&quot; she added with a
faint smile.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Who? why who is good enough for you,
but my cousin Pendennyss. Ah!&quot; she cried
laughingly, as she caught Emily by the hand,
&quot;Derwent and myself have both settled the
matter long since, and I know you will yield,
when you come to know him.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Duke!&quot; cried the other with a surprise 
and innocence, that immediately brought
a blush of the brightest vermillion into her face,
as she caught the expression of her companion.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, the Duke,&quot; said Lady Chatterton,
&quot;you may think it odd for a discarded lover
to dispose of his mistress so soon in this way,
but both our hearts are set upon it. The Earl
arrived last night, and this day himself and
sister dine with us in a sober way: now my
dear madam,&quot; turning to Mrs. Wilson &quot;have
I not prepared an agreeable surprise for
you?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Surprise indeed,&quot; said the widow, excessively 
gratified at the probable termination
to her anxieties for this meeting, &quot;but where
are they from?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;From Northamptonshire, where the earl
has already purchased a residence, I understand, 
in your neighbourhood too; so, you
perceive, he at least begins to think of the
thing.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;A certain evidence, truly,&quot; cried Emily,
&quot;his having purchased the house. But was
he without a residence, that he bought the
Deanery.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh no! he has a palace in town, and
three seats in the country -- but none in
Northamptonshire, but this,&quot; said the lady,
with a laugh. &quot;To own the truth, he did
offer to let George Denbigh have it for the
next summer, but the Colonel chose to be
nearer Eltringham; and I take it, it was only a ruse 
in the Earl to cloak his own designs.
You may depend upon it, we trump't your
praises to him incessantly in Westmoreland.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And is Col. Denbigh in town,&quot; said Mrs.
Wilson, stealing an anxious glance towards
her niece, who, in spite of all her efforts, sensibly changed colour.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh yes! and Laura as happy -- as happy -- 
as myself,&quot; said Lady Chatterton, with
a glow on her cheeks, as she attended to the
request of her housekeeper, and left the room.
</para>
<para>
Her guests sat in silence, occupied with
their own reflections, while they heard a
summons at the door of the house; it was
opened, and footsteps approached the door of
their own room. It was pushed partly open,
as a voice on the other side said, speaking to
a servant without,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Very well. Do not disturb your lady.
I am in no haste.&quot;
</para>
<para>
At the sound of its well known tones, both the
ladies almost sprang from their seats -- here
could be no resemblance, and a moment removed 
their doubts. The speaker entered.
It was Denbigh.
</para>
<para>
He stood for a moment as fixed as a statue.
It was evident the surprise was mutual. His
face was pale as death, as his eye first met the
countenances of the occupants of the room,
and then instantly was succeeded by a glow
of fire. Approaching them, he paid his compliments, 
with great earnestness, and in a
voice in which his softest tones preponderated.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am happy -- very happy, to be so fortunate 
in again meeting with such friends, and
so unexpectedly,&quot; -- he continued, after his
inquiries concerning the Baronet's family
were ended.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson bowed in silence to his compliment, 
and Emily, pale as himself had been the
moment before, sat with her eyes fixed on the
carpet, without daring to trust her voice with
an attempt to speak.
</para>
<para>
After struggling with his mortified feelings a
moment, Denbigh rose from the chair he had
taken, and drawing near the sopha on which
the ladies were placed, exclaimed with fervour,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Tell me, dear madam -- lovely -- too lovely
Miss Moseley, has one act of folly -- of wickedness if you 
please -- lost me your good opinions forever? Derwent had given me hopes
that you yet retained some esteem for my
character, lowered as I acknowledge it to be,
in my own estimation.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Duke of Derwent? Mr. Denbigh!&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do not -- do not use a name, dear madam, almost 
hateful to me,&quot; cried he, in a
tone of despair.
</para>
<para>
&quot;If,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson gravely, &quot;you
have made your own name disreputable, I
can only regret it, but&quot; 
 -- 
   &quot;Call me by my title -- oh! do not remind
me of my folly -- I cannot bear it -- and from
you&quot; -- he cried, interrupting her hastily.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your title!&quot; exclaimed Mrs. Wilson in
a cry of wonder, and Emily turned on him a
face, in which the flashes of colour and succeeding paleness, 
were as quick, and almost as
vivid, as the glow of lightning, while he caught
this astonishment in equal surprise.
</para>
<para>
&quot;How is this; some dreadful mistake I
am yet in ignorance of,&quot; he cried, taking the
unresisting hand of Mrs. Wilson, and pressing
it with warmth between both his own, as he
added, &quot;do not leave me in suspense.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;For the sake of truth -- for my sake -- for the
sake of this suffering innocent, say, in sincerity,
who, and what you are?&quot; said Mrs. Wilson in a
solemn voice, and gazing on him in dread of
his reply.
</para>
<para>
Still retaining her hand, he dropped on his
knees before her, as he answered,
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am the pupil -- the child of your late
husband -- the companion of his dangers -- 
sharer of his joys and griefs -- and would I
could add, the friend of his widow. I am the
Earl of Pendennyss.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson's head dropped on the shoulder of the kneeling youth -- her arms were
thrown in fervor around his neck, and she
burst into a flood of tears: for a moment, both
were absorbed in their own feelings, but a cry
from Pendennyss, aroused the aunt to the situation of her niece.
</para>
<para>
Emily had fallen back senseless on the sofa which supported her.
</para>
<para>
An hour elapsed, before her engagements
admitted of the return of Lady Chatterton to
the breakfast parlour, where she was surprised
to find the breakfast equipage yet standing,
and her cousin, the Earl; looking from one to
the other in surprise, the lady exclaimed,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Very sociable, upon my word; how long
has your lordship honoured my house with
your presence, and have you taken the liberty
to introduce yourself to Mrs. Wilson and
Miss Moseley.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Sociability and ease are the fashion of the
day. -- I have been here an hour, my dear
coz, and have taken the liberty of introducing
myself to Mrs. Wilson and Miss Moseley,&quot;
replied the Earl gravely, although a smile of
great meaning lighted his handsome features,
as he uttered the latter part of the sentence, 
which was returned by Emily with a
look of archness and pleasure, that would have
graced her happiest moments of juvenile joy.
</para>
<para>
There was such an interchange of looks,
and such a visible alteration in the appearance 
of her guests, that it could not but
attract the notice of Lady Chatterton; after
listening to the conversation between them
for some time in silence, and wondering
what could have wrought so sudden a change
below stairs, she broke forth with saying,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Upon my word, you are an incomprehensible party to me 
-- I left you ladies alone,
and find a beau with you. I left you grave 
 -- if not melancholy -- and find you all life and
gayety. I find you with a stranger, and you
talk with him about walks and rides, and
scenes and acquaintances; will you, madam,
or you, my lord, be so kind as to explain
these seeming inconsistencies?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No,&quot; cried the Earl gayly, &quot;to punish
your curiosity, I will keep you in ignorance;
but Marian is in waiting for me at your
neighbour's, Mrs. Wilmot, and I must hasten to her 
-- you will see us both by five,&quot;
and rising from his seat he took the offered
hand of Mrs. Wilson, and pressed it to his
lips: to Emily, he also extended his hand,
and received hers in return, though with a
face suffused with the colour of the rose.
Pendennyss held it to his heart for a moment
with fervor, and kissing it, precipitately left
the room to hide his emotions. Emily concealed 
her face with her hands, and dissolving
in tears, sought the retirement of an adjoining apartment.
</para>
<para>
All these unaccountable movements, filled 
Lady Chatterton with an amazement;
that would have been too painful for further endurance; 
and Mrs. Wilson knowing that concealment with so near a 
connection would have been impossible, if not unnecessary, 
entered into a brief explanation of
the Earl's masquerade, (although ignorant
herself of its cause, or the means of supporting it,)
 and his present relation with her niece.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I declare it is provoking,&quot; cried Lady
Chatterton gayly, but with a tear in her eye,
&quot;to have such ingenious plans as Derwent and 
I had made, all lost from the
want of necessity of putting them in force.
Your demure niece, has deceived us all
handsomely; and my rigid cousin too -- I will
rate him soundly for his deception.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I believe he already repents sincerely of
his having practised it,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson
with a smile, &quot;and is sufficiently punished
for his errors by its consequence -- a life of
misery to a lover, for four months, is a serious
penalty.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes,&quot; said the other archly in reply,
&quot;I am afraid his punishment was not confined 
to himself alone; he has made others
suffer from his misconduct. Oh! I will rate
him famously, depend upon it I will.&quot;
</para>
<para>
If any thing, the interest felt by Lady
Chatterton for her friend, was increased by
this discovery of the affections of Pendennyss, 
and a few hours were passed by the
three, in, we will not say sober delight, for
transport would be a better word -- Lady
Chatterton declared she would rather see
Emily the wife of the Earl than her brother,
for he alone was good enough for her -- and
Mrs. Wilson felt an exhiliration of spirits in
this completion of her most sanguine wishes,
that neither her years, her philosophy or her
religion even, could entirely restrain: the face
of Emily was a continued blush, her eye sparkled 
with the lustre of renewed hope, and her
bosom was heaving with the purest emotions
of happiness.
</para>
<para>
At the appointed hour the rattling of
wheels announced the approach of the Earl
and his sister, to fulfil their engagements.
</para>
<para>
Pendennyss came into the room with a
young woman of great personal beauty,
and extremely feminine manners, leaning on
his arm. He first announced her to Mrs.
Wilson as his sister, Lady Marian Denbigh,
who received with a frank cordiality that
made them instantly acquainted. Emily,
although confiding in the fullest manner, in
the truth and worth of her lover, had felt an
inexplicable sensation of pleasure, as she had
heard the Earl speak of his sister by the
name of Marian -- love is such an unquiet,
and generally such an engrossing passion,
that few avoid unnecessary uneasiness while
under its influence, unless so situated as to
enjoy a mutual confidence.
</para>
<para>
As this once so formidable Marian approached 
to salute her, and with an extended hand, 
Emily rose from her seat, with a
face illumined with pleasure, to receive
her -- Marian viewed her for a moment
intently, and folding her arms around her,
whispered softly as she pressed her to her
heart, &quot;my sister, my only sister.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Our heroine was affected to tears, and
Pendennyss gently separating the two he
loved best in the world -- they soon became
calm and attentive to the society they were in.
</para>
<para>
Lady Marian was extremely like her brother,
and had a family resemblance to her cousin
Harriet, but her manners were softer and
more retiring, and she had a slight tinge of a
settled melancholy -- when her brother spoke,
she was generally silent, not in fear but in
love -- she evidently regarded him amongst
the first of human beings, and all her love was
amply returned.
</para>
<para>
Both the aunt and niece studied the manners 
of the Earl closely, and found several
shades of distinction between what he was,
and what he had been -- He was now the
perfect man of the world, without having
lost the frank sincerity, which inevitably
caused you to believe all he said. -- Had
Pendennyss once told Mrs. Wilson with
his natural air and manner, &quot;I am innocent,&quot;
she would have believed him, and an earlier
investigation would have saved them months
of misery -- but the consciousness of his deception 
had oppressed him with the curse of
the wicked -- to whatever degree we err, so it
be proportionate in any manner to our habits and principles -- 
a guilty conscience; and
imagining her displeasure to arise from a detection of his 
real name by the possession of
his pocket book -- his sense of right would
not allow him to urge his defence.
</para>
<para>
He had lost that air of embarrassment and
alarm, which had so often startled the aunt,
even in her hours of greatest confidence, and
which had their original in the awkwardness of disguise -- 
But he retained his softness -- his respect, 
his modest diffidence of his opinions -- 
although somewhat corrected now,
by his acknowledged experience and acquaintance with man.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson thought the trifling alterations
in manner to be seen were great improvements; 
but it required some days and a few
tender speeches to reconcile Emily to any
change in the appearance of the Earl, from
what she had been fond to admire in Denbigh.
</para>
<para>
Lady Marian had ordered her carriage
early, as she had not anticipated the pleasure
she had found, and was engaged to accompany her cousin, 
Lady Laura, to a fashionable route that evening. Unwilling to be
torn from his newly found friends, the Earl
proposed the three ladies should accompany
his sister to Annerdale House, and then accept himself as 
an escort to their own residence. To this, Harriet assented, 
and leaving a message for Chatterton, they entered
the coach of Marian, and Pendennyss mounting the dickey, they drove off.
</para>
<para>
Annerdale House was amongst the best edifices 
of London. It had been erected within
the preceding century, and Emily for a moment 
felt as she went through its splendid
apartments, that it threw a chill around her
domestic affections; but the figure of Pendennyss by her side, 
reconciled her to a magnificence she had been unused to -- he looked
the lord indeed, but with so much modesty
and softness, and so much attention to herself,
that before she left the house, Emily began
to think it very possible to enjoy happiness
even in the lap of splendour.
</para>
<para>
The names of Colonel Denbigh and Lady
Laura, were soon announced, and this formidable 
gentleman made his appearance -- he
resembled Pendennyss more than the Duke
even, and appeared about the same age.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson soon saw she had no grounds
for pitying Lady Laura, in the manner she
had done since their acquaintance. The
Colonel was a polished, elegant man, of
evident good sense, and knowledge of the
world -- and apparently devoted to his wife 
 -- He was called George frequently by all his
relatives, and he, not unfrequently, used the
same term himself, in speaking to the Earl 
 -- something was said of a much admired bust
-- and the doors of a large library opened, to
view it. Emily was running over the backs
of a case of books, until her eye rested on
one; and half smiling and blushing, she turned
to Pendennyss, who watched her every movement, 
as she said, playfully: -- &quot;Pity me, my
Lord, and lend me this volume.&quot; &quot;What is it
you would read,&quot; he asked, as he bowed his
cheerful assent. But Emily hid the book
in her handkerchief. Pendennyss noticing
an unwillingness, though an extremely playful 
one, to let him into the secret, examined
the case, and perceiving her motive, smiled, 
as he took down another volume and
said 
 -- 
   &quot;I am not an Irish, but an English peer,
Emily. You had the wrong volume.&quot; Emily
laughed, as with deeper blushes, she found her
wishes detected -- while the Earl, opening the
volume he held -- the first of Debrett's Peerage; 
pointed, with his finger, to the article
concerning his own family, and said to Mrs.
Wilson, who had joined them at the instant 
 -- 
   &quot;To-morrow, dear madam, I shall beg
your attention to a melancholy tale, and which
may, in some slight degree, extenuate the offence 
I was guilty of, in assuming, or rather
maintaining an accidental disguise.&quot; As he
ended, he went to the others, to draw off their
attention while Emily and her aunt examined the 
paragraph. It was as follows: 
 -- 
   &quot;George Denbigh -- Earl of Pendennyss
-- and Baron Lumley, of Lumley Castle 
 -- Baron Pendennyss -- Beaumaris, and Fitzwalter, 
born -- , of -- , in the year of
-- ; a bachelor.&quot; The list of Earls and
Nobles occupied several pages, but the closing
article was as follows: 
 -- 
   &quot;George, the 21st Earl, succeeded his mother Marian, late Countess of Pendennyss,
in her own right, being born of her marriage with George
 Denbigh, Esqr. a cousingerman to Frederic, the 9th Duke of Derwent.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Heir apparent. The titles being to heirs
general, will descend to his lordship's sister,
Lady, Marian Denbigh, should the present
Earl die without lawful issue.&quot;
</para>
<para>
As much of the explanation of the mystery of our tale 
is involved in the foregoing paragraphs, 
we may be allowed to relate in our
own language, what Pendennyss made his
friends acquainted with, at different times,
and in a manner, suitable to the subject and
his situation.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XVI.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
It was at the close of that war which lost
this country the wealthiest and most populous 
of her American colonies, that a fleet
of ships were returning from their service,
amongst the islands of the New World, to
seek for their worn out, and battered hulks,
and equally weakened crews, the repairs and
comforts of England and home.
</para>
<para>
That latter, most endearing to the mariner
of all sounds, had, as it were, drawn together
by instinct, a group of sailors on the forecastle
of the proudest ship of the squadron -- who
gazed with varied emotions on the land
which gave them birth -- but with one common 
feeling of joy, that the day of their
attaining it was at length arrived.
</para>
<para>
The water curled from the bows of this
castle of the ocean, in increasing waves and
growing murmurs, that at times drew the
attention of the veteran tar to their quickening 
progress, and who having cheered his
heart with the sight -- cast his experienced
eye in silence on the swelling sails, to see if
nothing more could be done to shorten the
distance between him and his country.
</para>
<para>
Hundreds of eyes were fixed on the land of
their birth, and hundreds of hearts were beating in that 
one vessel with the awakening delights of domestic 
love, and renewed affections,
but no tongue broke the disciplined silence
of the ship, into sounds that overcame the
propitious ripple of the water, they began
smoothly and steadily to glide through.
</para>
<para>
On the highest summit of their towering
mast, floated a small blue flag -- the symbol of
authority -- and beneath it paced a man, to
and fro the deck -- deserted by his inferiors
to his more elevated rank. His square built
form, and care-worn features, which had lost
the brilliancy of an English complexion 
-- and hair whitened prematurely -- spoke of
bodily vigour -- and arduous services, which
had put that vigour to the severest trials.
</para>
<para>
At each turn of his walk, as he faced the
land of his nativity, a lurking smile stole
over his sun-burnt features, and then a glance
of his eye would scan the progress of the
far-stretched squadron, which obeyed his orders, 
and which he was now returning to
his superiors, undiminished in numbers, and
proud with victory.
</para>
<para>
By himself stood an officer in a uniform differing 
from all around him -- his figure was
small -- his eye restless, quick, and piercing,
and bent on those shores to which he was
unwillingly advancing, with a look of anxiety
and mortification, that showed him the late
commander of those vessels around them,
which, by displaying their double flags, manifested to 
the eye of the seaman, a recent change of masters.
</para>
<para>
Occasionally the conqueror would stop, and
by some effort of his well-meant but rather
uncouth civility, endeavour to soften the
bonds of captivity to his guest; and which
were received with the courtesy of the most
punctilious etiquette, but a restraint, that
showed them civilities that were unwelcome.
</para>
<para>
It was, perhaps, the most unlucky moment
that had occurred, within the two months of
their association, for an exchange of their
better feelings. The honest heart of the English 
tar, dilated with ill-concealed delight at
his approach to the termination of labours,
performed with credit and honour -- and his
smiles and good humour, which partly proceeded 
from the feelings of a father and a
friend, were daggers to the heart of his discomfited rival.
</para>
<para>
A third personage now appeared from the
cabin of the vessel, and approached the spot
where the adverse admirals were, at the moment, 
engaged in one of these constrained
conferences
</para>
<para>
The appearance and dress of this gentleman 
differed yet more widely from the two
just described. He was tall, graceful, and
dignified; he was a soldier, and clearly of
high rank. His carefully dressed hair, concealed 
the ravages of time; and on the 
quarter-deck of a first-rate, his attire and 
manners were suited to a field-day in the park.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I really insist, Monsieur,&quot; cried the Admiral, 
good naturedly, &quot;that you shall take
part of my chaise to London; you are a
stranger to the country, and it will help to
keep up your spirits by the way.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are very good, Monsieur Howell,&quot;
replied the Frenchman, with a polite bow,
and forced smile' misconstruing ill-judged
benevolence into a wish for his person to
grace a triumph -- &quot;but I have accepted the
offer Monsieur le General Denbigh was so
good as to make me.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Compte is engaged to me, Howell,&quot;
said the General, with a courtly smile, &quot;and
indeed, you must leave the ship to-night, or
as soon as we anchor. -- But I shall take daylight, and to-morrow.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well -- well -- Denbigh,&quot; exclaimed the
other, rubbing his hands with pleasure, as he
viewed the increasing power of the wind,
&quot;only make yourselves happy, and I am contented.&quot;
</para>
<para>
A few hours yet intervened before they
reached the Bay of Plymouth; and round
the table, after their dinner, were seated the
General and English Admiral. -- The Compte,
under the pretence of preparing his things
for a removal, had retired to his apartment,
for the concealment of his feelings; -- and the
Captain of the ship was above, superintending the 
approach of the vessel to the anchorage-ground. 
Two or three well emptied
bottles of wine yet remained, but as the
healths of all the branches of the House of
Brunswick had been propitiated from their
contents, with a polite remembrance of Louis
the XVI., and Marie Antoinette, from General 
Denbigh -- neither of the superiors were
much inclined for action.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Is the Thunderer in her station?&quot; said
the Admiral, to his signal Lieutenant, who
at that moment came below with a report.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes sir, and has answered,&quot; -- was the
reply.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Very well -- make the signal to prepare
to anchor.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay -- ay, sir.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And here, Bennett,&quot; to the retiring Lieutenant -- 
&quot;call the transports all in shore of
us.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Three hundred and eighty-four, sir,&quot;
said the officer, looking at his signal-book. 
 -- The Admiral cast his eye at the book, and
nodded his assent.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And let the Mermaid -- Flora -- Weasel 
 -- Bruiser, and all the sloops, lie well off, until
we have landed the soldiers; the pilot says
the channel is full of luggers, and Jonathan
is grown very saucy.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The Lieutenant made a complying bow,
and was retiring to execute these orders, as
Admiral Howell, taking up a bottle not yet
entirely deserted by its former tenant -- cried
stoutly -- &quot;Here, Bennet -- I forgot -- take a
glass of wine -- drink success to ourselves,
and defeat to the French all over the world.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The General pointed significantly to the
adjoining cabin of the French Admiral, as he
pressed his hand on his lips for silence.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh!&quot; cried Admiral Howell, recollecting
himself; and continued in a whisper, &quot;but
you can drink it in your heart.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The signal-officer nodded, and drank the
liquor; as he smacked his lips on going on
deck, he thought to himself, these nabobs
drink famous good wine.
</para>
<para>
Although the feelings of General Denbigh
were under much more command, and disciplined 
obedience, than those of his friend,
yet was he unusually elated with his return to
his home, and expected honours. If the
Admiral had captured a fleet, he had taken
an island; -- and hand in hand they had cooperated in 
unusual harmony, through the
difficulties of an arduous campaign. This
rather singular circumstance was owing to
their personal friendship. -- From their youth
they had been companions, and although of
very different characters and habits, chance
had cemented their intimacy in their more
advanced life; -- while in subordinate stations,
they had been associated together in service;
and the now General and Admiral, in command of an army, 
and a fleet, had once before returned to England with lesser renown,
as a Colonel and Captain of a frigate. The
great family influence of the soldier, with
the known circumstance of their harmony,
had procured them this later command, and
home with its comforts and rewards was
close before them. Pouring out a glass of
Madeira, the General, who always calculated 
what he said, exclaimed,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Peter -- we have been friends from boys.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;To be sure we have,&quot; said the Admiral,
looking up in a little surprise, at this unexpected 
commencement -- &quot;and it will not be
my fault, if we do not die such, Frederic.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Dying was a subject the General did not
much delight in, although of conspicuous
courage in the field; and he proceeded to
his more important purpose 
 -- 
   &quot;I could never find, although I have looked over 
our family tree so often, that we are
in any manner related, Howell.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I believe it is too late to mend that matter 
now,&quot; said the Admiral, musing.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why no -- hem -- I think not, Howell, 
 -- take a glass of this Burgundy.&quot; The Admiral shook 
his head with a stubborn resolution to taste nothing French -- but helped
himself to a bountiful stock of Madeira, as
he replied,
</para>
<para>
&quot;I should like to know how you can
bring it about, this time a-day, Denbigh.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How much money will you be able to
give that girl of yours, Peter?&quot; said his
friend, evading the point.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Forty thousand down, my good fellow,
and as much more when I die,&quot; cried the
open-hearted sailor, with a nod of exultation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;George, my youngest son, will not be
rich -- but Francis will be a Duke, and have
a noble estate -- yet&quot; said the General, me
ditating -- &quot;he is so unhappy in his disposition, 
and uncouth in his manners, I cannot
think of offering him to your daughter as a
husband.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Isabel shall marry a good-natured man,
like myself, or not at all,&quot; said the Admiral
positively, but not in the least suspecting the
drift of his friend -- who was influenced by
any thing but a regard to the lady's happiness.
</para>
<para>
Francis, his first born, was, in truth, as
he had described -- but his governing wish
was to provide for his favourite George 
 -- Dukes could never want wives -- but 
unportioned Captains in the Guards might.
</para>
<para>
&quot;George is one of the best tempers in
the world,&quot; said his father, with strong
feeling, &quot;and the delight of all -- I could
wish he had been the heir to the family
honours.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That it is certainly too late to help,&quot;
cried the Admiral, wondering if the ingenuity
of his friend could devise a remedy for this
evil too.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, too late, indeed,&quot; said the other,
with a heavy sigh, &quot;but Howell, what say
you to matching Isabel with my favourite
George.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Denbigh,&quot; cried the sailor, eyeing him
keenly, &quot;Isabel is my only child -- and a dutiful, 
good girl -- one that will obey orders if
she breaks owners, as we sailors say -- now.
I did think of marrying her to a seaman,
</para>
<para>
when a proper man came athwart my course;
yet, your son is a soldier, and that is next to
being in the navy -- if-so-be you had made
him come aboard me, when I wanted you
to, there would have been no objection at
all -- however, when occasion offers, I will
overhaul the lad, and if I find him staunch,
he may turn in with Bell and welcome.&quot;
</para>
<para>
This was uttered in perfect simplicity, and
no intention of giving offence; and partook
partly of the nature of a soliloquy -- so the
General, greatly encouraged, was about to
proceed to push the point, as a gun was
fired from their own ship.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There's some of them lubberly transports won't 
mind our signals -- they have had
these soldiers so long on board, they get
as clumsy as the red-coats themselves,&quot;
muttered the Admiral, as he hapened on
deck to enforce his commands.
</para>
<para>
A shot or two, sent significantly, in the
direction of the wanderers, but so as not to
hit them, restored order; and within an
hour, forty line of battle ships, and an hundred 
transports, were disposed in the best
manner for convenience and safety.
</para>
<para>
On their presentation to their sovereign,
both veterans were embellished with the
ribbon of the Bath, and as their exploits
filled the mouths of the news-mongers, and
columns of the public prints of the day 
-- the new Knights began to think seriously
of building a monument to their victories,
in an union between their children; the
Admiral, however, determined to do nothing
with his eyes shut, and demanded a scrutiny.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Where is the boy who is to be a Duke?&quot;
exclaimed he, one day, his friend had introduced the point 
with a view to a final arrangement. &quot;Bell has good blood in her
veins -- is a tight built little vessel -- clean
heel'd and trim, and would make as good a
Duchess as the best of them; so, Denbigh,
I will begin by taking a survey of the senior&quot; -- to this 
the General had no objection,
as he well knew, Francis would be wide of
pleasing the tastes of an open-hearted, simple man, like 
the sailor -- they met accordingly, for what 
the General facetiously called
their review, and the Admiral, innocently
termed, his survey -- at the house of the
former, and the young gentlemen were submitted to his inspection.
</para>
<para>
Francis Denbigh was about four and
twenty, of a feeble body, and face marked
with the small-pox, to approaching deformity; his eye 
was brilliant and piercing, but
unsettled, and, at times, wild -- his manner
awkward -- constrained and timid; there
would seem, it is true, an intelligence and
animation, which occasionally lighted his
countenance into gleams of sunshine, that
caused you to overlook the lesser accompaniments 
of complexion and features, in the
expression -- but they were transient, and in
evitably vanished, whenever his father spoke,
or in any manner mingled in his pursuits.
</para>
<para>
An observer, close as Mrs. Wilson, would
have said -- the feelings of the father and
son, were not such as ought to exist between parent and child.
</para>
<para>
But the Admiral, who regarded model and
rigging, a good deal, satisfied himself with
muttering, as he turned his eyes on the junior.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He may do for a Duke -- but I would not
have him for a cockswain.&quot;
</para>
<para>
George was a year younger than Francis;
in form -- stature, and personal grace, the
counterpart of his father; his eye was less
keen, but more attractive, than that of his
brother -- his air open -- polished and manly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah!&quot; thought the sailor, as he ended his
satisfactory survey of the youth -- &quot;what a
thousand pities Denbigh did not send him to
sea.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The thing was soon settled, and George
was to be the happy man; Sir Peter concluded to 
dine with his friend, in order to
arrange and settle preliminaries over their
bottle, by themselves -- the young men and
their mother, being engaged to their uncle
the Duke.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well, Denbigh,&quot; cried the Admiral, as
the last servant withdrew, &quot;when do you
mean to have the young couple spliced?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why,&quot; replied the wary soldier, who knew
he could not calculate on obedience to his
mandates, with as great a certainty, as his
friend -- &quot;the better way is to bring the
young people together, in order they may
become acquainted, you know.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Acquainted -- together -- &quot; cried his 
companion, in a little surprise, &quot;what better way
is there to bring them together, than to have
them up before a priest -- or to make them
acquainted, than by letting them swing in the
same hammock?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It might answer the end, indeed,&quot; said
the General, with a smile, &quot;but, some how
or other, it is always the best method to
bring young folks together, to let them have
their own way in the affair, for a time.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Own way!&quot; rejoined Sir Peter, bluntly,
&quot;did you ever find it answer to let a woman
have her own way, Sir Frederic?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not common women, certainly, my
good friend,&quot; said the general, &quot;but such a
girl as my intended daughter is an exception.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I don't know,&quot; cried the sailor, &quot;Bell is a
good girl, but she has her quirks and whims,
like all the sex.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have had no trouble with her, as
yet, I believe, Howell,&quot; said Sir Frederic,
cavalierly, but throwing an inquiring glance
on his friend.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, not yet -- nor do I think she will
ever dare to mutiny -- but there has been one
wishing to take her in tow already, since
we got in.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How!&quot; said the other, in alarm -- &quot; who 
</para>
<para>
what is he -- some officer in the navy, I suppose.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, he was a kind of a chaplain -- one
Parson Ives -- a good sort of a youth enough,
and a prodigious favourite with my sister,
Lady Hawker.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well, what did you answer, Peter?&quot;
cried his companion, in increasing uneasiness, 
&quot;did you put him off?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Off! to be sure I did -- do you think I
wanted a barber's clerk for a son-in-law -- no
-- no -- Denbigh, a soldier is bad enough,
without having a preacher.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The General compressed his lips, at this
direct attack on a profession, he thought most
honourable of any in the world, in some
resentment -- but remembering the eighty
thousand pounds -- and accustomed to the
ways of the other, he curbed his temper, and
inquired -- &quot;But Miss Howell -- your daughter -- how
did she stand affected to this said priest?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How? -- why -- how? -- why I never asked
her.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Did not?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No -- never asked -- she is my daughter,
you know -- and bound to obey my orders,
and I did not choose she should marry a parson -- 
but once for all, when is the wedding
to be?&quot;
</para>
<para>
General Denbigh had indulged his younger
son, too blindly, and too fondly, to expect
that implicit obedience, the Admiral calculated 
to a certainty on, and with every prospect
of not being disappointed, from his daughter
-- Isabel Howell was pretty -- mild and timid,
and unused to oppose any of her father's
commands -- but George Denbigh was haughty -- positive 
and self-willed, and unless the
affair could be so managed, as to make him
a willing assistant in the courtship -- his father
knew it might be abandoned at once -- he
thought he might be led, but not driven 
-- and relying on his own powers for managing,
the General saw his only safety in executing the scheme, 
in postponing his advances for a regular 
seige to the lady's heart.
</para>
<para>
Sir Peter chafed and swore at this circumlocution -- 
the thing could be done as well
in a week as in a year; and the veterans, who
had, for a miracle, agreed in their rival stations, 
and in doubtful moments of success 
-- were near splitting, on the point of marrying
a girl of nineteen.
</para>
<para>
As Sir Peter both loved his friend, and had
taken a prodigious fancy to the youth -- he
was fain to submit to a short probation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are always for going a round-about
way to do a thing,&quot; said the admiral, as he
yielded the point, &quot;now when you took that
battery -- had you gone up in front as I advised you -- 
you would have taken it in ten
minutes, instead of five hours&quot; -- &quot;Yes,&quot; said
the other, with a friendly shake of the hand,
at parting, &quot;and lost fifty men, in place of
one, by the step.&quot;
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XVII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The Hon. General Denbigh was the youngest of three 
sons. His seniors, Francis and
George, were yet bachelors. The death of a
cousin had made Francis a Duke, while a
child, and both he and his favourite brother
George, had decided on lives of inactivity and
sluggishness.
</para>
<para>
&quot;When I die, brother,&quot; the oldest would
say, &quot;you will succeed me, and Frederic can
provide heirs for the name hereafter.&quot;
</para>
<para>
This arrangement had been closely adhered to, 
and the brothers had reached the ages of
fifty-five and fifty-six, without altering their
condition. In the mean time, Frederic had
married a young woman of rank and fortune,
and the fruits of their union, were the two
young candidates for the hand of Isabel
Howell.
</para>
<para>
Francis Denbigh, the eldest son of the General, 
was diffident of himself by nature, and in
addition thereto, it was his misfortune to be the
reverse of captivating in his external appearance. 
The small pox sealed his doom; -- ignorance, 
and the violence of his attack, left
him indelibly impressed with the ravages of
that dreadful disorder. On the other hand,
his brother escaped without any vestiges of
the complaint, and his spotless skin, and fine
open countenance, met the gaze of his mother,
as contrasted with the deformed lineaments
of his elder brother. Such an occurrence is
sure to excite one of two feelings in the breast
of every beholder -- pity or disgust -- and, 
unhappily for Francis, maternal tenderness was
unable to counteract the latter sensation in
his case. George became a favourite, and
Francis a neutral. The effect was now easy
to be seen -- it was rapid, as it was indelible.
</para>
<para>
The feelings of Francis were tensitive to
an extreme -- he had more quickness -- more
sensibility -- more real talents than George 
-- and all these enabled him to perceive, and the
more acutely to feel, the partiality of his mother, 
to his own prejudice.
</para>
<para>
As yet, the engagements and duties of the
General, had kept his children, and their improvements, 
out of his sight; but at the ages
of eleven and twelve, the feelings of a father,
began to pride themselves in the possession of
his sons.
</para>
<para>
On his return from a foreign station, after
an absence of two years, his children were
ordered from school to meet him. Francis
had improved in stature, but not in beauty 
-- George had flourished in both.
</para>
<para>
The natural diffidence of the former was
increased, by perceiving himself no favourite,
and the effects began to show itself in his
manners, at no time engaging. He met his
father with doubts as to his impressing him
favourably, and he saw with anguish, that
the embrace received by his brother far exceeded 
in warmth, what had been bestowed on himself.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Lady Margaret,&quot; said the General to his
wife, as he followed the retiring boys with
his eyes from the dinner table, &quot;it is a
thousand pity's George had not been the elder. 
He would have graced a dukedom or a
throne. Frank is only fit for a parson.&quot;
</para>
<para>
This ill-judged speech was uttered sufficiently 
loud to be overheard by both the sons;
on the younger, it made a pleasurable sensation 
for the moment. His father -- his dear
father, had thought him fit to be a king -- and
his father must be a judge, whispered his native 
vanity -- but all this time the connexion
between the speech and his brother's rights
did not present themselves to his mind. 
-- George loved this brother too well -- too sincerely, 
to have injured him even in thought;
and so far as Francis was concerned, his vanity was as 
blameless, as it was natural.
</para>
<para>
The effect produced on the mind of Francis, was 
both different in substance and degree. It mortified 
his pride -- alarmed his
delicacy -- and wounded his already morbid
sensibility to such an extent, as to make him
entertain the romantic notion of withdrawing 
from the world, and yielding a birthright
to one so every way more deserving of it than
himself.
</para>
<para>
From this period, might be dated the opinion of 
Francis, which never afterwards left
him; that he was doing injustice to another,
</para>
<para>
and that other, a brother whom he ardently
loved, by continuing to exist. Had he met
with fondness in his parents, or sociability in
his play-fellows, these fancies would have
left him as he grew into life. But the affections of 
his parents were settled on his more
promising brother, and his manners, daily increasing 
in their repulsive traits, drove his
companions to the society of others, more
agreeable to their own buoyancy and joy.
</para>
<para>
Had Francis Denbigh, at this age, met with
a guardian, clear-sighted enough to fathom
his real character, and competent to direct
his course onward, to his great and prominent duties 
in life, he would yet have become
an ornament to his name and country, and a
useful member of society. But no such guide
existed. His natural guardians, in his particular case, 
were his worst enemies -- and the
boys left school for college four years afterwards, 
each advanced in their respective properties 
of attraction and repulsion.
</para>
<para>
Irreligion is hardly a worse evil in a family than 
favouritism; when once allowed to exist, acknowledged, 
in the breast of the parent,
though hid apparently from all other eyes 
-- its sad consequences begin to show themselves
-- effects are produced, and we look in vain
for the cause. The awakened sympathies of
reciprocal caresses and fondness, are mistaken for 
uncommon feelings, and the forbidding aspect of deadened affections miscalled
native insensibility.
</para>
<para>
In this manner the evil increases itself, until 
manners are formed, and characters created, that 
must descend, with their possessor, to the tomb.
</para>
<para>
In the peculiar formation of the mind of
Francis Denbigh, the evil was doubly injurious. 
His feelings required sympathy and
softness, when they met only with coldness
and disgust. George alone was an exception
to the rule. He did love his brother; but even
his gayety and spirits, soon tired of the dull
uniformity of the diseased habits of his elder.
</para>
<para>
The only refuge Francis found in his solitude, 
amidst the hundreds of the university,
was in his muse and powers of melody.
The voice of his family has been frequently mentioned 
in these pages. And if, as Lady Laura had intimated, there had ever been
a syren in the race, it was a male one. He
wrote prettily, and would sing these efforts of
his muse, to music of his own, that would
often draw crowds around his windows, in
the stillness of the night, to listen to sounds,
as melodious as they were mournful. His poetical 
efforts partook of the distinctive character of the man, 
and were melancholy -- wild -- and sometimes pious.
</para>
<para>
George was always amongst the most admiring of 
his brother's auditors, and would
feel a yearning of his heart towards him at
such moments, that was painful. But George
was too young, and too heedless, to supply
the place of a monitor, or a guide, for Francis, 
to draw his thoughts into a more salutary
train. This was the duty of his parents, and
should have been their task. But the world
-- his rising honours -- and his professional
engagements, occupied the time of his father;
and fashion, parties and pleasure, killed the
time of his mother -- when they did think
of their children, it was of George -- the painful 
image of Francis, was as seldom admitted
to disturb their serenity as possible.
</para>
<para>
George Denbigh was open-hearted, without suspicion, 
and a favourite. The first taxed his generosity -- 
the second subjected him
to fraud -- and the third supplied him with
the means. But these means sometimes failed. The 
fortune of the General, though
handsome, was not more than competent to
the support of his style of living. He expected to 
be a duke himself one day, and
was anxious to maintain an appearance now,
that would not disgrace his future elevation.
A system of strict but liberal economy had
been adopted in the case of his sons. They
had, for the sake of appearance, a stated and
equal allowance for each.
</para>
<para>
The Duke had offered to educate the heir
himself, and under his own eye. But to this
Lady Margaret had found some ingenious
excuse in objection, and one that seemed to
herself and the world, as honourable to her
natural feeling; but had the offer been made
to George, these reasons would have vanished 
in the desire to advance his interests, or
gratify his propensities. Such decisions are
by no means uncommon; as parents having
once decided on the merits and abilities of
their children, frequently decline the interference 
of third persons, as the improvement
of their denounced offspring might bring
their own judgment into question, if it did
not convey an indirect censure on their justice.
</para>
<para>
The heedlessness of George, had brought
his purse to a state of emptiness. His last
guinea was gone, and two months was wanting to the end of his quarter. George had
played and been cheated. He had ventured
to apply to his mother for small sums, when
his dress or some trifling indulgence required
an advance; and always with success. But
here were sixty guineas gone at a blow -- and
his pride -- his candour, forbade his concealing 
the manner of his loss, if he made the
application. This was dreadful -- his own
conscience reproached him -- and he had so
often witnessed the violence of his mother's
resentments against Francis, for faults which
appeared to him very trivial, not to stand in
the utmost dread of her more just displeasure in his present case.
</para>
<para>
Entering the apartment of his brother, in
this disturbed condition, George threw himself into a 
chair, and with his face concealed
between his hands, sat brooding over his forlorn situation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;George!&quot; said his brother, soothingly,
</para>
<para>
&quot;you are distressed at something? -- can I
relieve you in any way?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! no -- no -- no -- Frank; it is entirely
out of your power.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Perhaps not, my dear brother&quot; -- continued the 
other, endeavouring to draw his hand into his own.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Entirely! -- entirely!&quot; said George. And
then, springing up in despair, he exclaimed:
&quot;But I must live -- I cannot die.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Live! -- die!&quot; -- cried Francis, recoiling
in horror. &quot;What do you mean by such language. Tell me, 
George, am I not your brother? -- Your only brother and best friend?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Francis felt he had none, if George was
not that friend, and his face grew pale with
emotion, as the tears flowed rapidly down his
cheeks.
</para>
<para>
George could not resist such an appeal.
He caught the hand of his brother, and made
him acquainted with his losses and his wants.
</para>
<para>
Francis mused some little time over his
narration, ere he broke silence with 
-- 
   &quot;It was all you had?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The last shilling,&quot; cried George, beating
his head with his hand.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And how much will you require to make
out the quarter?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh I must have at least fifty guineas, or
how can I live at all.&quot; -- The ideas of life in
George were connected a good deal with the
manner it was to be enjoyed -- His brother
appeared struggling with himself, and then
turning to the other, continued, &quot;But 
surely, under present circumstances
you could make less do.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Less, never -- hardly that&quot; -- interrupted
George vehemently; &quot;If Lady Margaret did
not enclose me a note now and then, how
could we get along at all -- dont you find it
so yourself, brother?'
</para>
<para>
&quot;I don't know,&quot; said Francis, turning
pale -- &quot;Don't know,&quot; cried George, catching a
view of his altered countenance -- &quot;you get
the money though.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I do not remember it,&quot; said the other,
sighing heavily.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Francis,&quot; cried George, comprehending
the truth, &quot;you shall share every shilling I
receive in future -- you shall -- indeed you
shall.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well, then,&quot; rejoined Francis with a
smile, &quot;it is a bargain, and you will receive
from me a supply in your present necessities.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Without waiting for an answer, Francis
withdrew into an inner apartment, and
brought out the required sum for his brother's subsistence 
for two months -- George
remonstrated -- but Francis was positive; he
had been saving, and his stock was ample for
his simple habits without it.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Besides, you forget we are partners, and
in the end I shall be a gainer.&quot; George
yielded to his wants and his brother's entreaties, 
although he gave him credit for the disinterestedness 
of the act -- several weeks passed over without any further allusion to this
disagreeable subject -- which had at least
the favorable result to make George more
guarded and a better student in future.
</para>
<para>
The brothers, from this period, advanced gradually in 
the acquiring those distinctive qualities which were to mark the future men 
 -- George daily improving in grace and attraction
-- Francis in an equal ratio, receding from
those very attainments, which it was only his
too great desire to possess. In the education
of his sons, General Denbigh had preserved
the appearance of impartiality; his allowance
to each was the same, they were at the same
college -- they had been at the same school 
 -- and if Frank did not improve as much as his
younger brother, it was his own obstinacy
and stupidity, and surely not want of opportunity or favour.
</para>
<para>
Such, then, were the artificial and accidental
causes, which kept a noble, a proud, an acute
but diseased mind much below in acquirements, another, 
every way its inferior, excepting in the happy circumstance, of wanting
those very excellencies, the excess and indiscreet 
management of which proved the ruin,
instead of blessing of their possessor.
</para>
<para>
The Duke would occasionally rouse himself from his 
lethargy, and complain to the
father, that the heir of his honours was far
inferior to his younger brother in acquirements, and remonstrate against the course
</para>
<para>
which produced such an unfortunate inequality; on these 
occasions a superficial statement of his system, from the General, met
the objection: they cost the same money, and
he was sure he not only wished, but did,
every thing an indulgent parent could, to render 
Francis worthy of his future honours 
 -- another evil of the admission of feelings of
partiality, in the favour of one child, to 
the prejudice of another, is that 
the malady is contagious, as well as lasting: it exists without
our own knowledge, and it seldom fails by
its influence to affect those around us.
The uncle soon learnt to distinguish George
as the hope of the family, yet Francis
must be the heir of its honours, and consequently its wealth.
</para>
<para>
The Duke and his brother were not much
addicted to action, hardly to reflection -- but
if any thing could rouse them to either, it
was the reputation of the house of Denbigh.
Their ideas of reputation, it is true, were of
their own forming, but constant dropping
wears away the stone. -- So long and confirmed 
habits were unsettled by incessant
broodings on the character of their heir;
matrimony became less formidable in their
eyes, but the importance of the step still held
them in suspence.
</para>
<para>
The hour at length drew near when George
expected a supply from the ill-judged generosity 
of his mother; it came, and with a
heart beating with pleasure, the youth flew
to the room of Francis, with a determination
</para>
<para>
to force the whole of his twenty pounds on
his acceptance. On throwing open his door,
he saw his brother evidently striving to conceal 
something behind some books. It was
at the hour of breakfast, and George had
intended for a novelty to share his brother's 
morning repast. They always met
at dinner, but their other meals were made
in their own rooms. George looked in vain
for the usual equipage of the table; the truth
began to dawn upon him, he threw aside the
books, and a crust of bread and glass of
water met his eye -- it now flashed upon him
in all its force.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Francis, my brother, to what has my extravagance 
reduced you,&quot; exclaimed the contrite George, with a heart nearly ready to
burst with his emotion. Francis endeavored
to explain, but a sacred regard to the truth
held him tongue-tied, until dropping his head
on the shoulder of George, he sobbed out 
 -- &quot;It is a trifle, nothing to what I would
do for you, my brother.&quot;
</para>
<para>
George felt all the horrors of remorse, and
was too generous to conceal his error any
longer; he wrote a circumstantial account of
the whole transaction to Lady Margaret.
</para>
<para>
Francis for a few days was a new being 
 -- he had acted nobly, his conscience approved
of his motives, and his delicate concealment
of them; he in fact began to think there
were in himself the seeds of usefulness, as
his brother, who from this moment began to
understand his character better, attached 
himself more closely to him as a companion.
</para>
<para>
The eye of Francis met that of George
with the look of acknowledged affection, his
mind became less moody, and his face sometimes 
embellished with a smile.
</para>
<para>
The reply of their mother to the communication 
of George threw a damp on these
revived hopes of the senior, and drove
him back into himself, with tenfold humility.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am shocked, my child, to find you have
lowered yourself, and forgot the family you
belong to, so much as to frequent those gambling 
houses, which ought not to be suffered
in the neighbourhood of the universities; when
at a proper age and in proper company, your
occasional indulgence at cards I could not
object to, as both your father and myself,
sometimes resort to it as an amusement, but
never in low company; the consequence of
your mingling in such society is, that you
were cheated, and such will always be your
lot, unless you confine yourself to associates,
more becoming your rank and illustrious
name.
</para>
<para>
&quot;As to Francis, I see every reason to condemn 
the course he has taken. He should,
being the senior by a year, have taken the
means to prevent your falling into such company; and he 
should have acquainted me immediately, with your loss, 
in place of wounding your pride, by subjecting you to 
the mortification of receiving a pecuniary obligation,
</para>
<para>
from one so little older than yourself, and exposing 
his own health by a diet on bread and water, as you 
wrote me, for a whole month. Both
the General and myself are seriously displeased with 
him, and think of separating you,
as you thus connive at each others follies.&quot;
</para>
<para>
George was too indignant to conceal this letter, 
and the reflections of Francis on it were
dreadful.
</para>
<para>
For a short time he actually meditated suicide, as 
the only method of removing a child,
from the way of impeding the advancement
of his more favoured brother, to the wishes of
their common parents.
</para>
<para>
Had not George been more attentive and
affectionate than formerly, the awful expedient might have been resorted to.
</para>
<para>
From college, the young men went, one
into the army, and the other to the mansion
of his uncle. George became an elegant 
-- gay -- open-hearted -- admired -- captain in the
guards; and Francis stalked through the
halls of his ancestors, their acknowledged
future Lord, but a misanthrope -- hateful to
himself, and disagreeable to all around him.
</para>
<para>
This picture may be highly wrought,
and the effects in the case of Francis, increased 
by the peculiar tone of his diseased state
of mind. But the indulgence of favouritism
always brings its sad consequences, in a greater or 
less degree, and seldom fails to give
sorrow and penitence to the bosom of the
parents.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XVIII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
No little art and management had been
necessary, to make the Admiral auxiliary to
the indirect plan, proposed by his friend, to
bring George and Isabel together. This
however effected, the General turned his
whole movements, to the impression to be
made on the heart of the young gentleman.
</para>
<para>
Sir Frederic Denbigh had the same idea of
the virtue of management, as were entertained by the Dowager, Lady Chatterton 
 -- but understood human nature better.
</para>
<para>
Like a prudent officer, his attacks were all
masked, and like a great officer, seldom failed in their success.
</para>
<para>
The young couple were thrown in each
other's way -- and as Isabel was extremely
attractive -- somewhat the opposite to himself in ardour of temperament and vivacity
-- modest and sensible, it cannot be expected, the association was maintained by the
youth with perfect impunity. Within a couple of months, 
he fancied himself desperately in love with Isabel Howell; and in
truth he had some reason for his supposition.
</para>
<para>
The General noticed every movement of
his son with a wary and watchful eye 
 -- occasionally adding fuel to the flame, by
drawing his attention to projects of matrimony, 
in other quarters, until George began
to think, he was soon to undergo the trial of
his constancy -- and in consequence, armed
himself with a double portion of admiration
for his Isabel, to enable him to endure the
persecution; while the Admiral several times
endangered the success of the whole enterprise, 
by his volunteer contributions to the
hopes of the young man, which only escaped 
producing an opposite effect to what
they were intended for, by being mistaken
for the overflowings of good nature and
friendship.
</para>
<para>
After suffering his son to get, as he thought,
sufficiently entangled in the snares of cupid,
Sir Frederic determined to fire a volley from
one of his masked batteries, which he rightly
judged would bring on a general engagement. 
They were sitting by the table after
dinner, by themselves, as the General took
the advantage of the name of Miss Howell
being accidentally mentioned, to say 
 -- 
   &quot;By-the-by, George, my friend the Admiral, 
   said something yesterday on the subject
of your being so much with his daughter. 
-- I wish you to be cautious, not to give the old
sailor offence in any way, as he is my particular friend.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He need be under no violent apprehensions,&quot; 
cried George in reply, colouring
highly with shame and pride, &quot;I am sure a
Denbigh, is no unworthy match, for a daughter of Sir Peter Howell.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! to be sure not, boy -- we are as old
a house as there is in the kingdom, and as
noble too; but the Admiral has queer notions, 
and perhaps, has some cub of a sailor
in his eye for a son-in-law. Be prudent boy 
 -- be prudent, is all I ask of you.&quot; And the
General, satisfied with the effect he had produced, 
carelessly arose from his seat, and
joined Lady Margaret in her drawing-room.
</para>
<para>
George remained for several minutes musing on his 
father's singular request, and the
Admiral's caution -- when he sprang from his
seat, caught up his hat and sword, and in ten
minutes rung at Sir Peter's door, in Grosvenor-Square. 
He was admitted, and on ascending to the drawing-room, 
met the Admiral on his way out. Nothing was farther
from the thoughts of the veteran, than a finesse like the 
General's; and delighted to
see George on the battle ground, he pointed
significantly with his finger, over his shoulder, 
towards the door of the room Isabel was
in, as he exclaimed with a good-natured smile,
</para>
<para>
&quot;There she is, my hearty -- lay her along
side -- and hang me, if she don't strike. -- I
say, George, faint heart never won a fair
lady; remember that, my boy -- no, nor a
French ship.&quot;
</para>
<para>
George would have been at some loss to
have reconciled this speech to his father's
caution, if time had been allowed him to
think at all, but as the door was open, he entered, 
and found Isabel endeavouring to hide
her tears.
</para>
<para>
The Admiral, dissatisfied from the beginning, 
with the tardy method of dispatching
things -- had thought he might be of use in
breaking the ice for George, by trumpeting
his praises, on divers occasions, to his daughter. 
Under all circumstances, he thought
she might be learning to love the man, as he
was to be her husband; and speeches like
the following, had been frequent of late,
from the parent to the child: &quot;There's that
youngster George Denbigh, now, Bell, is he
not a fine looking lad? -- then I know he is
brave. His father before him was good
stuff, and a true Englishman. What a proper husband he 
would make for a young woman, he loves his king and country so 
 -- none of your new-fangled notions about religion 
and government -- but a sober, religious,
churchman -- that is, as much so, girl, as you
can expect in the guards. No Methodist, to
be sure; -- it's a great pity he was'nt sent to
sea, don't you think so? but cheer up, girl,
one of these days he may be taking a liking
to you yet.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Isabel, whose fears taught her the meaning of these eloquent 
praises of Captain Denbigh, listened to his harangues in silence,
and often meditated on their import, by herself, in tears.
</para>
<para>
George approached the sopha on which
the lady was seated, before she had time to
conceal the traces of her sorrow, and in a
</para>
<para>
voice softened by emotion, took her hand
gently, as he said,
</para>
<para>
&quot;What can have occasioned this distress
to Miss Howell? if any thing in my power
to remove, or a life devoted to her service,
can mitigate, she has only to command me,
to find a cheerful obedience.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The trifling causes of sorrow in a young
woman,&quot; replied Isabel, endeavouring to
smile, &quot;will hardly require such serious services to remove them.&quot;
</para>
<para>
But the lady was extremely interesting at
the moment. George was goaded by his
father's caution, and urged on by his own
feelings; with great sincerity, and certainly
much eloquence, he proffered his love and
hand, to the acceptance of his mistress.
</para>
<para>
Isabel heard him in painful silence; she
respected him, and dreaded his power over
her father; but unwilling to abandon hopes
to which she yet clung, as to her spring of
existence -- she with a violent effort, 
determined to throw herself on the generosity of
her lover.
</para>
<para>
During the late absence of her father, Isabel had, as usual, 
since the death of her mother, been left with his sister, and 
had formed an attachment for a young clergyman,
a younger son of a baronet, and the present
Dr. Ives; -- their inclinations had been mutual, 
and as Lady Hawker knew her brother
to be perfectly indifferent to money, she could
see no possible objection to its indulgence.
</para>
<para>
Oh his return, Ives had made his proposals
as related, and although warmly backed by
the recommendations of the aunt, refused,
out of delicacy. The wishes of Isabel had
not been mentioned by her clerical lover,
and the Admiral supposed he had only complied 
with his agreement with the General,
without, in any manner affecting the happiness 
of his daughter, by his answer. But
the feelings which prompted the request,
still remained in full vigour in the lovers;
and Isabel now, with many blushes, and
some hesitation of utterance, made George
fully acquainted with the state of her heart,
giving him at the same time to understand,
that he was the only obstacle to her happiness.
</para>
<para>
It cannot be supposed that George heard her
without pain, and some mortification. -- The
struggle with self-love, was a severe one,
but his better feelings prevailed, and he
assured the anxious Isabel, that from his
importunities she had nothing to apprehend
in future. -- The grateful girl overwhelmed
him with her thanks, and George had to fly
-- ere he repented of his own generosity.
</para>
<para>
Miss Howell intimated, in the course
of her narrative, that a better understanding
existed between their parents, than the caution of 
the General had discovered to his unsuspecting child; 
and George was determined to know the worst, at once.
</para>
<para>
At supper he mentioned, as if in rememberance 
of his father's injunction, that he
had been to take his leave of Miss Howell,
since he found his visits gave uneasiness to
her friends. &quot;On the whole,&quot; he added, 
endeavouring to yawn carelessly, &quot;I believe I
shall visit there no more.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nay -- nay -- &quot; returned Sir Fredric, a
little displeased at his son's indifference, &quot;I
meant no such thing; neither the Admiral or
myself, have the least objection to your visiting in moderation; indeed, you may marry
the girl, with all our hearts, if you can
agree.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But we can't agree, I take it,&quot; said
George, looking up at the wall.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why not -- what hinders?&quot; cried his father, hastily.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Only -- only I don't like her,&quot; said the
son, tossing off a glass of wine, which nearly
strangled him.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You don't,&quot; cried the General, with great
warmth, thrown off his guard by this unexpected 
declaration, &quot;and may I presume to
ask the reason why you do not like Miss
Howell, Sir?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! you know one never pretends to
give a reason for these sort of feelings, my
dear sir,&quot; said George cooly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then,&quot; cried his father, with increasing
heat, &quot;you must allow me to say, my dear
sir, that the sooner you get rid of these sort
of feelings the better. I choose you shall not
only like, but love Miss Howell; and this I
have promised to her father.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I thought,&quot; said the youth drily, &quot;that
the Admiral was displeased with my coming
to his house so much -- or did I not understand you this morning.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I know nothing of his displeasure, and
care less,&quot; rejoined his father. &quot;He has
agreed Isabel shall be your wife, and I have
passed my word to the engagement; and if,
sir, you wish to be considered as my son,
you will prepare to comply.&quot;
</para>
<para>
George was expecting to discover some
management on the part of his father, but by
no means so settled an arrangement, and his
anger was in proportion to the deception.
</para>
<para>
To annoy Isabel any farther, was out of
the question -- to betray her -- base; -- and the
next morning he sought an audience with the
Duke. To him, he mentioned his wish for
actual service, but hinted the maternal fondness 
of Lady Margaret, was averse to his
seeking it. This was true -- and George now
pressed his uncle to assist him in effecting an
exchange.
</para>
<para>
The boroughs of the Duke of Derwent
were represented by loyal members of parliament -- 
his two brothers being cotemporary
with Mr. Benfield in that honour. And a
request from a man who sent six members to
the commons, besides a seat in the lords, in
his own person, must be listened to.
</para>
<para>
Within the week, George ceased to be a
captain in the guards, and became lieutenantcolonel 
of a regiment, under orders for America.
</para>
<para>
Sir Frederic soon became sensible of the
error his warmth had led him into, and endeavoured, 
by soothing and indulgence, to
gain the ground he had so unguardedly lost.
But terrible was his anger, and bitter his denunciations, 
when his son acquainted him
with his approaching embarkation with his
new regiment for America. They quarrelled -- and as the 
favourite child had never, until now, been thwarted, or 
spoken harshly to, they parted in mutual disgust. With
his mother, George was more tender; and
as Lady Margaret had never thought the
match such as the descendant of two lines of
Dukes was entitled to form, she almost
pardoned the offence in the cause.
</para>
<para>
&quot;What's this here I see!&quot; cried Sir Peter
Howell, as he ran over a morning paper at
the breakfast table: &quot;Capt. Denbigh, late of
the guards, has been promoted to the Lieut.
Colonelcy of the -- foot, and sails to-morrow to 
join that regiment, now on its way to
America.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It's a lie! Bell? -- its all a lie? not but
what he ought to be there, too, serving his
king and country, but he never would serve
you so.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Me?&quot; said Isabel, with a heart throbbing
with the contending feelings of admiration
for George's generosity, and delight at her
own deliverance. &quot;What have I to do with
the movements of Mr. Denbigh?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;What?&quot; cried her father in astonishment! &quot;a'nt 
you to be his wife, an't it all
agreed upon -- that is, between Sir Frederic
and me, which is the same thing you know.&quot; 
 -- Here he was interrupted by the sudden appearance 
of the General, who had just learnt
the departure of his son, and hastened, with
the double purpose of breaking the intelligence to 
his friend, and making his own
peace.
</para>
<para>
&quot;See here, Denbigh,&quot; exclaimed the Admiral 
abruptly, pointing to the paragraph,
&quot;what do you say to that?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Too true -- too true, my dear friend,&quot;
replied the General, shaking his head mournfully.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Hark ye, Sir Frederic Denbigh,&quot; cried
the Admiral fiercely; &quot;did you not say your
son George was to marry my daughter?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I certainly did, Peter,&quot; said the other
mildly, &quot;and am sorry to say, that in defiance of 
my intreaties and commands, he has
deserted his home, and in consequence,
I have discarded him for ever.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Now, Denbigh,&quot; said the Admiral, a
good deal mollified by this declaration: 
-- &quot;have I not always told you, that in the army you 
know nothing of discipline. Why,
Sir, if he was a son of mine, he should marry blind-folded, 
if I chose to order it. I wish,
now, Bell had an offer, and dared to refuse it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There is the barbers's clerk, you know,&quot;
said the General, a good deal irritated by the
contemptuous manner of his friend.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And what of that, Sir Frederic,&quot; said the
sailor sternly, &quot;if I choose her to marry a
quill-driver, she shall comply.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah! my good friend,&quot; said the General,
willing to drop the disagreeable subject, &quot;I
am afraid we will both find it more difficult
to control the affections of our children, than
we at first imagined.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You do, General Denbigh,&quot; said the admiral with 
a curl of contempt on his lip, and
ringing the bell violently, he bid the servant
send his young lady to him. On the appearance of 
Isabel, her father inquired with an
air of settled meaning, where young Mr. Ives
resided. It was only in the next street, and
a messenger was sent to him, with Sir Peter
Howell's compliments, and a request to see
him without a moment's delay.
</para>
<para>
&quot;We'll see, we'll see, my old friend, who
keeps the best discipline,&quot; muttered the Admiral, 
as he paced up and down the room, in
eager expectation of the return of his messenger.
</para>
<para>
The wondering general gazed on his friend,
to see if he was out of his senses. He knew
he was quick to decide, and excessively obstinate; 
but he did not think him so crazy,
as to throw away his daughter in a fit of
spleen. It never occurred to Sir Frederic,
that the engagement with himself, was an act
of equal injustice and folly, because it was
done with more form and deliberation; which,
to the eye of sober reason, would rather make
the matter worse. Isabel sat in trembling
suspense of the issue of the scene, and lves
in a few minutes made his appearance in no
little alarm.
</para>
<para>
On entering, the admiral addressed him
abruptly, by inquiring if he still wished to
marry that girl, pointing to his daughter: the
reply was an eager affirmative. Sir Peter
beckoned to Isabel, who approached covered
with blushes; and her father having placed
her hand in that of her lover -- with an air
of great solemnity gave them his blessing.
The young people withdrew to another room
at Sir Peter's request, as he turned to his
friend, delighted with his own decision and
authority, and exclaimed, &quot;There Frederic 
Denbigh, that is what I call being minded.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The General had penetration enough to
see the result was agreeable to both the
young people, a thing he had apprehended
before; and being glad to get rid of the
affair in any way, that did not involve him in
a quarrel with his old comrade, gravely congratulated 
the Admiral on his good fortune,
and retired.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, yes,&quot; said Sir Peter to himself, as
he paced up and down his room, &quot;Denbigh
is mortified enough, with his joy, and felicity,
and grand children. I never had any opinion
of their manner of discipline at all -- too much
bowing and scraping -- I'm sorry though he is
a priest; not but what a priest may be as
good a man as another -- but let him behave
ever so well, he can only get to be a bishop at
the most. Heaven forbid, he should ever get
to be a Pope -- after all, his boys may be 
admirals, if they behave themselves,&quot; and he
went to seek his daughter, having in imagination, 
manned her nursery, with vice and rear
admirals in embryo, by the half dozen.
</para>
<para>
Sir Peter Howell survived the marriage of
his daughter, but eighteen months; yet that
was sufficient to become attached to his invaluable 
son-in-law. Mr. Ives insensibly led
the Admiral, during his long indisposition, to
a more correct view of sacred things, than he
had been wont to indulge; and the old man
breathed his last, blessing both his children 
for their kindness, and with a humble
hope of future happiness. Some time before his 
death, Isabel, whose conscience had
always reproached her with the deception
practised on her father, and the banishment
of George from his country and home; threw
herself at the feet of Sir Peter, and acknowledged her transgression.
</para>
<para>
The Admiral heard her in astonishment,
but not in anger -- his opinions of life had sensibly 
changed, and his great cause of satisfaction with his 
new son, removed all motives for regret for any thing, but the fate of
poor George. With the noble forbearance
and tenderness of the young man to his
daughter, the hardy veteran was sensibly
touched; and his intreaties with Sir Frederic, 
made his peace with a father, already
longing for the return of his only hope.
</para>
<para>
The Admiral left Colonel Denbigh his blessing, 
nd his favourite pistols, as a remembrance of 
his esteem; but did not live to see
the reunion with his family.
</para>
<para>
George had soon learnt, deprived of hope,
and in the midst of novelty, to forget those
passions which could no longer be prosperous;
and two years from his departure, returned to
England, glowing in health, and improved in
person and manners, by a more extensive
knowledge of the world and mankind.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XIX.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
During the time occupied by the foregoing
events, Francis had continued a gloomy inmate of his 
uncle's house. The Duke and
his brother George, were too indolent and inactive in 
their minds to pierce the cloud, that
mortification and deadened affections, had
drawn around the real character of their nephew; and 
although he was tolerated as the
heir, he was but little loved as a man.
</para>
<para>
In losing his brother, Francis lost the only human 
being, with whom he possessed any sympathies in common; and he daily drew more
and more into himself, in gloomy meditation,
on his forlorn situation, in the midst of wealth
and expected honours. The attentions he received, 
were paid to his rank; and Francis
had penetration enough to perceive it. His
visits to his parents were visits of ceremony,
and in time, all parties came to look to their
termination with pleasure, as the discontinuance 
of heartless and forced civilities.
</para>
<para>
Affection even in the young man, could not
endure, repulsed as his feelings were, forever;
and in the course of three years, if his attachments 
were not alienated from his parents,
his ardour had become much abated.
</para>
<para>
It is a dreadful truth, that the bonds of natural
affection, can be broken by injustice and contumely; 
and it is yet more to be deplored;
that where, from such causes, we loosen the
ties habit and education have drawn around
us, that a re-action in our feelings commences -- 
we seldom cease to love, but we begin
to hate. Against such awful consequences,
it is one of the most solemn duties of the
parent to provide in season; and what surer
safeguard is there, than to inculcate those
feelings, which teach the mind to love God,
and in so doing, induces love to the whole
human family.
</para>
<para>
Sir Frederic and Lady Margaret attended
the church regularly -- repeated the responses
with much decency -- toasted the church next
to the king -- even appeared at the altars of
their God -- and continued sinners. From such
sowings, no good fruit could be expected to
flourish: yet Francis was not without his
hours of devotion; but his religion was, like
himself, reserved -- superstitious -- ascetic and
gloomy. He never entered into social worship: if he prayed, 
it was with an ill-concealed wish, to end this life of care. 
If he returned thanks, it was with a bitterness that
mock'd the throne he was prostrate before.
Such pictures are revolting; but their originals have, and 
do exist; for what enormity is
there, that human frailty, unchecked by divine assistance, may not be guilty of?
</para>
<para>
Francis received an invitation to visit a
brother of his mother's, at his seat in the
country, about the time of the expected return 
of George from America; in compliance
with the wishes of his uncles, he accepted it.
The house was thronged with visiters, and
many of them were ladies; to these, the arrival 
of the unmarried heir of the house of
Derwent, was a subject of no little interest:
his character had, however, preceded him,
and a few days of his awkward and, as they
conceived, sullen deportment, drove them
back to their former beaux, with the exception 
of one fair; and she was not only amongst
the fairest of the throng, but decidedly of the
highest pretensions, on the score of birth and
fortune.
</para>
<para>
Marian Lumley, was the only surviving
child of the last Duke of Annerdale, with
whom had expired the higher honours of his
house. But the Earldom of Pendennyss,
with numerous ancient baronies, were titles
in fe; and together with his princely estates,
had descended to his daughter, as heir general 
to the family. A peeress in her own right,
with an income far exceeding her utmost
means of expenditure, the lovely Countess
of Pendennyss, was a prize aimed at by all
the young nobles of the empire.
</para>
<para>
Educated in the mids of flatterers and dependants, 
she had become haughty, vain, and
supercilious; still she was lovely -- and no one
knew better how to practise the most winning arts of 
her sex, when whim or interest
prompted her to the trial.
</para>
<para>
Her host was her guardian and relative;
and through his agency, she had rejected, at
the age of twenty, numerous suitors for her
hand. Her eyes were fixed on the ducal coronet; and 
unfortunately for Francis Denbigh, he was at the time, the only man of the
proper age, who could elevate her to that enviable 
distinction, in the kingdom; and an
indirect measure of her own, had been the
means of his invitation to the country.
</para>
<para>
Like the rest of her young companions, Marian was 
greatly disappointed on the view of
her intended captive, and for a day or two, with
them, she abandoned him to his melancholy
and himself. But ambition was her idol; and
to its powerful rival, love, she was yet a stranger. After a few struggles with her 
inclinations, the consideration, that their 
united fortunes and family alliances, would make one of
the wealthiest and most powerful houses in the
kingdom, prevailed; such early sacrifices of the
inclinations in a woman of her beauty, youth,
and accomplishments, may excite surprise 
 -- but where the mind is left uncultivated by the
hand of care -- the soul untouched by the love
of goodness, the human heart seldom fails to
set up an idol of its own to worship. And,
in the Countess of Pendennyss, it was pride.
</para>
<para>
The remainder of the ladies, from ceasing to
wonder at the manners of Francis, had made
them the subject of their mirth; and, nettled
at his apparent indifference to their society,
which they erroneously attributed to his sense
of his importance, they overstepped the
bounds of good-breeding, in manifesting their
displeasure.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mr. Denbigh,&quot; cried one of the most
thoughtless and pretty of the gay tribe,
to him one day, as Francis sat in a corner
abstracted from the scene around him,
&quot;when do you mean to favour the world with
your brilliant ideas in the shape of a book?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! no doubt soon,&quot; said a second,&quot;
and I expect they will be homilies, or another volume to the Whole Duty of Man.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Rather,&quot; cried a third, with bitter irony, 
&quot;another canto to the Rape of the Lock
-- his ideas are so vivid and full of imagery.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Or, what do you think,&quot; said a fourth,
speaking in a voice of harmony, and tones of
the most soothing tenderness &quot;of pity and
compassion, for the follies of those inferior
minds, who cannot enjoy the reflections of a
good sense and modesty, peculiarly his own.&quot;
</para>
<para>
This might also be irony -- and Francis
thought it so; but the tones were so soft and
conciliating, that with a face pale with his
emotions, he ventured to look up, and met
the eye of Marian, fixed on him in an expression that 
changed his death-like hue into the
colour of vermilion.
</para>
<para>
He thought of this speech -- he reasoned
on it -- he dreamt of it; but for the looks
which accompanied it, like the rest of the
party, he would have thought it the cruellest
cut of them all. But that look -- those eyes
-- that voice -- what a commentary on her
language did they not afford.
</para>
<para>
Francis was not left long in suspense; the
next morning a ride was proposed, which included all but himself in its arrangements.
He was either too reserved, or too proud, to
offer services which were not required, by
even a hint, that they would be agreeable.
</para>
<para>
Several gentlemen had contended for the honour 
of driving the Countess, in a beautiful
phaeton of her own. They grew earnest in
their claims: one had been promised by its
mistress, with an opportunity of trying the
ease of the carriage -- another, with the excellent 
training of her hourses; in short, all
had some particular claim to the distinction,
which were urged with a warmth and pertinacity, 
proportionate to the value of the prize
to be obtained. Marian heard the several
claimants with an ease and indifference natural to 
her situation, and ended the dispute by
saying 
 -- 
   &quot;Gentlemen, as I have made so many promises, from 
the dread of giving offence, I
must throw myself on the mercy of Mr. Denbigh, who 
alone, with the best claims, from
his modesty, does not urge them; to you,
then,&quot; continued she, approaching him with
the whip which was to be given the victor,
&quot;I adjudge the prize, if you will condescend
to accept it.&quot; This was uttered by one of
her most attractive smiles, and Francis received the 
whip with an emotion that he with
difficulty could control.
</para>
<para>
The gentlemen were glad to have the contest decided, by adjudging the prize to one
so little dangerous, and the ladies sneered at
her choice, as they proceeded in their ride.
</para>
<para>
There was something so soothing in the
manners of Lady Pendennyss -- she listened
to the little he said, with such a respectful attention -- 
was so anxious to have him give
his opinions, that the unction of flattery, so
sweetly applied, and for the first time, could
not fail of its wonted effects.
</para>
<para>
The communications thus commenced
were continued -- it was so easy to be attentive, 
by being simply polite, to one unused
to notice of any kind, that Marian found the
fate of the young man in her hands, almost
as soon as she attempted to controul it.
</para>
<para>
A new existence opened upon Francis, as
day after day she insensibly led him to a display of powers 
he was unconscious, until now,
of possessing himself. His self-respect began to increase -- 
his limited pleasures to multiply, and he could now look around him
with a sense of participation in the delights
of life, as he perceived himself of consequence
to this much admired woman.
</para>
<para>
Trifling incidents, managed on he part
with consummate art, had led him to the daring
inference, he was not entirely indifferent to
her; and Francis returned the incipient affection of 
his mistress, with a feeling but little removed from adoration. Week flew by
after week, and still he lingered at the residence of 
his kinsman, unable to tear himself
from a society of one, become so valuable,
and yet afraid to take a step, which might involve him in disgrace or ridicule.
</para>
<para>
The condescension of the Countess increased, and 
she had indirectly given him the
most flattering assurance of his success, when
George just arrived from America, having
first paid his greetings to his reconciled parents, 
and the happy couple of his generosity; flew to the arms of his brother in Suffolk.
</para>
<para>
Francis was overjoyed to see George, and
George delighted in the visible improvement
of his brother. Still Francis was far, very
far behind his juniors in graces of mind and
body. Few men in England were more
adapted by nature and education for female
society, than Colonel Denbigh was at the period we write of.
</para>
<para>
Marian witnessed all his attractions and
deeply felt their influence -- for the first time
she felt the emotions of passion, and after
having sported in the gay world, and trifled
with the feelings of others for a course of
years, the Countess in her turn became an
unwilling victim to its power. George met
her flame with a corresponding ardor, and the
struggle between ambition and love became severe -- 
the brothers unconsciously were rivals.
</para>
<para>
Had George for a moment suspected the
situation of the feelings of Francis, his very
superiority in the contest, would have taxed
his generosity to a retreat from the unnatural
rivalry. Had the elder dreamt of the views
of his junior, he would have abandoned his
dearest hopes, in despair for their success; he
had so long been accustomed to consider
George as his superior in every thing, a competition 
with him would have appeared desperate. Marian contrived to keep both in
hopes, undecided herself which to choose,
and perhaps ready to yield to the first applicant. 
A sudden event, however, removed all
doubts, and decided the fate of the three.
</para>
<para>
The Duke of Derwent and his batchelor
brother, became so dissatisfied with the character 
of their future heir, that they as coolly
set about providing themselves with wives as
they performed any other ordinary transaction
of life; they married cousins, and on the same
day, the choice of the ladies was assigned
between them by lots, and if his Grace got the
prettier, his brother certainly got the richest;
under the circumstances, a very tolerable 
distribution of fortune's favours.
</para>
<para>
These double marriages dissolved the
charms of Francis, and Lady Pendennyss
determined to consult her wishes -- a little
pointed encouragement brought out the declaration 
of George, and he was accepted.
</para>
<para>
Francis, who had never communicated his
feelings to any one but the lady, and that
only indirectly, was crushed by the blow -- he
continued in public until the day of their
union, was present, composed, and silent 
 -- but it was the silence of a mountain whose
volcanic contents had not reached the surface. 
The same day he disappeared, and
every inquiry proved fruitless, search was
baffled, and for seven years it was not known
what had become of the General's eldest son.
</para>
<para>
George, on marrying, resigned his commission, 
at the earnest entreaties of his wife, and
retired to one of her seats, to the enjoyment
of ease and domestic love: the countess was
enthusiastically attached to him, and as
motives for the indulgence of her coquetry
were wanting. her character became gradually 
improved, by the contemplation of the
excellent qualities of her generous husband.
</para>
<para>
A lurking suspicion of the cause of Francis's
sudden disappearance, rendered her uneasy
at times; but Marian was too much beloved,
too happy, in the enjoyment of too many
honours and too great wealth, to be open to
the convictions of conscience: it is in our
hours of pain and privation that we begin to
feel its sting; if we are prosperous, we fancy
we reap the fruits of our merit, but if we are
unfortunate, the voice of truth seldom fails to
remind us that we are deserving of our fate.
A blessed provision of Providence that often
makes the saddest hours of our earthly career,
the morn of a day, that is to endure forever.
</para>
<para>
General Denbigh and Lady Margaret both
died within five years of the marriage of
their favourite child, although both lived to
see their descendant, in the person of the
infant Lord Lumley.
</para>
<para>
The Duke and his brother George, were
each blessed with offspring, and in these
several descendants, of the different branches
of the family of Denbigh, may be seen the
different personages of our history. On the
birth of her youngest child, the Lady Marian,
the Countess of Pendennyss, sustained a
shock in her health from which she never
wholly recovered; she became nervous, and
lost most of her energy of both mind and
body; her husband was her solace -- his tenderness 
remained unextinguished, his attention
increased
</para>
<para>
As the fortune of Ives and his Isabel put
the necessity of a living, out of the question,
and as no cure offered for his acceptance, he
was happy to avail himself of an offer to become 
domestic chaplain to his now intimate
friend Mr. Denbigh; for the first six years
they were inmates of Pendennyss Castle;
the rector of the parish was infirm and averse
to a regular assistant; but the unobtrusive
services of Mr. Ives, were not less welcome
to the pastor than to his parishioners.
</para>
<para>
Employed in the duties which of right fell to
the incumbent, and intrusted with the spiritual
guardianship of the dependants of the castle,
our young clergyman had ample occupation
for all his time, if not a sufficient theatre for
his usefulness. Isabel and himself remained
the year round in Wales, and the first dawnings of 
education received by Lord Lumley,
were those he acquired conjointly with Francis from 
the care of the latter's father. They
formed, with the interval of the time spent
by Mr. Denbigh and Lady Pendennyss, in
town in winter, but one family. To the
gentleman, the attachment of the grateful
Ives was as strong as it was lasting. Mrs.
Ives never ceased to consider him as the selfdevoted 
victim to her happiness, and although
a far more brilliant lot had awaited him by
the change, yet they could not think it a
more happy one.
</para>
<para>
The birth of Lady Marian had already, in
its consequences, begun to throw a dark
gloom round the domestic comforts of Denbigh, when he was 
to sustain another misfortune in a separation from his friends.
</para>
<para>
Mr. now Dr. Ives, had early announced his
firm intention, whenever an opportunity was
afforded him, to enter into the fullest 
functions of his ministry, as a matter of duty 
 -- such an opportunity now offered at B -- ,
and the Doctor became its rector about the
period Sir Edward became possessor of his
paternal estate.
</para>
<para>
Denbigh tried every inducement within his
power to keep the Dr. in his own society; if
as many thousands, as his living would give
him hundreds, would effect it, they would
have been at his service; but Denbigh understood 
the character of the divine too well, to
offer such an inducement; he however urged
the claims of friendship to the utmost, but
without success. The Doctor acknowledged
the hold both himself and family had gained
upon his affections, but he added 
 -- &quot;Consider, my dear Mr. Denbigh, what
we would have thought, of one of the earlier
followers of our Saviour, who from motives
of convenience or worldly mindedness, could
have deserted his sacred calling: although the
changes in the times, may have rendered the
modes of conducting them differently, necessary, 
the duties remain the same. The
minister of our holy religion who has once
submitted to the calls of his divine Master,
must allow nothing but ungovernable necessity, to turn 
him from the path he has entered
on; and should he so far forget himself, I
greatly fear he would plead, when too late to
remedy the evil, his worldly duties, his cares,
or even his misfortunes, in vain. Solemn and
arduous are his obligations to labour, but when
faithfully he has discharged these duties 
 -- oh! how glorious must be his reward.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Before such opinions of duty, every barrier
must fall, and the Doctor entered into the
cure of his parish, without further opposition,
though not without unceasing regret on the
part of his friend: their intercourse was however 
maintained by letter, and they also frequently met 
at Lumley Castle, a seat of the
Countess, within two days' ride of the Doctor's parish, 
until her increasing indisposition
rendered her journeying impossible; then, indeed, the 
Doctor extended his rides into
Wales, but with longer intervals between his
visits, though with the happiest effects to the
objects of his journey.
</para>
<para>
Mr. Denbigh, worn down with watching
and blasted hopes, under the direction of the
spiritual watchfulness of the rector of B -- ,
became an humble, sincere, and pious christian; 
although the spring of his sorrows bowed
him down in years to the grave, he sunk into it 
with the hope of a joyful resurrection.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XX.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
It has been already mentioned, that the
health of Lady Pendennyss suffered a severe
shock, in giving birth to a daughter -- change
of scene was prescribed as a remedy for her
disorder, and Denbigh and his wife were
on their return from a fruitless excursion
amongst the northern lakes, in pursuit of
amusement and relief for the latter, as they
were compelled to seek a shelter from the
fury of a sudden gust, in the first building
that offered; it was a farm house of the better sort; 
and the attendants, carriages, and
appearance of their guests, caused no little
confusion to its simple inmates -- a fire was
lighted in the best parlour, and every effort
made by the inhabitants to contribute to the
comforts of the travellers.
</para>
<para>
The Countess and her husband were
sitting, in that kind of listless melancholy, which had been 
too much the companion of their later hours, when in the 
interval of the storm, a male voice in an adjoining room 
commenced singing the following
ballad -- the notes were low -- monotonous,
but unusually sweet, and the enunciation
so distinct, as to render every syllable intelligible:
</para>
<poem><verse><line>
Oh! I have liv'd, in endless pain,</line><line>
And I have liv'd, alas! in vain,</line><line>
     For none regard my woe </line><line>
 -- No Father's care, convey'd the truth,</line><line>
No Mother's fondness, bless'd my youth,</line><line>
     Ah! joys too great to know </line><line>
 -- And Marian's love, and Marian's pride,</line><line>
Have crush'd the heart that would have died,</line><line>
     To save my Marian's tears </line><line>
 -- A Brother's hand, has struck the blow,</line><line>
Oh! may that Brother never know,</line><line>
     Such madly sorrowing years.</line><line>
But hush my griefs -- and hush my song,</line><line>
I've mourn'd in vain -- I've mourn'd too long,</line><line>
     When none have come to soothe </line><line>
 -- And dark's the path, that lies before,</line><line>
And dark have been the days of yore,</line><line>
     And all was dark in youth.
</line></verse></poem>
<para>
The maidens employed around the person
of their comfortless mistress -- the valet of
Denbigh engaged in arranging a dry coat for
his master -- all suspended their employments
to listen in breathless silence, to the mournful
melody of the song.
</para>
<para>
But Denbigh, himself, had started from his
seat, as the first notes struck his ear, and
continued until the voice ceased, gazing in
vacant horror, in the direction of the sounds.
A door opened from the parlour to the room
of the musician -- he rushed through it, and
there -- in a kind of shed to the building 
-- which hardly sheltered him from the fury of
the tempest -- clad in the garments of the extremest poverty -- 
with an eye roving in madness, and a body rocking to and fro, from
mental inquietude, he beheld, seated on a
stone, the remains of his long lost brother,
Francis.
</para>
<para>
The language of the song, was too plain
to be misunderstood. The truth glared
around George, with a violence that dazzled
his brains -- but he saw it all -- he felt it all 
-- and rushing to the feet of his brother, he exclaimed, 
in horror, pressing his hands between
his own:
</para>
<para>
&quot;Francis -- my own brother -- do you not
know me?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The maniac regarded him with a vacant
gaze, but the voice and the person, recalled the
compositions of his more reasonable moments 
to his recollection -- pushing back the
hair of George, so as to expose his fine 
forehead to his view, he contemplated him for a
few moments, and then continued to sing, in
a voice still rendered sweeter than before by
his faint impressions.
</para>
<poem><verse><line>
His raven locks, that richly curl'd,</line><line>
His eye, that proud defiance hurl'd,</line><line>
     Have stole my Marian's love!</line><line>
Had I heen blest by nature's grace,</line><line>
With such a form, with such a face,</line><line>
     Could I so treach'rous prove?</line><line>
And what is man -- and what is care </line><line>
 -- That he should let such passions tear</line><line>
     The bases of the soul?
</line></verse><verse><line>
Oh! you should do, as I have done </line><line>
 -- And having pleasure's summit won,</line><line>
     Each bursting sob controul.
</line></verse></poem>
<para>
On ending the last stanza, the maniac released 
his brother, and broke into the wildest
laugh of madness.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Francis! -- Oh! Francis, my brother&quot; 
-- cried George, in bitterness of sorrow 
-- a piercing shriek drew his eye to the door
he had passed through -- on its threshold lay
the senseless body of his wife -- the distracted 
husband forgot every thing, in the
situation of his Marian -- and raising her in
his arms, he exclaimed,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Marian -- my Marian, revive -- look up 
-- know me.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Francis had followed him, and now
stood by his side -- gazing intently on the
lifeless body -- his looks became more soft 
-- his eye glanced less wildly -- he cried,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Marian -- My Marian, too.&quot;
</para>
<para>
There was a mighty effort -- nature could
endure no more -- he broke a blood-vessel,
and fell at the feet of George -- they flew to
his assistance, giving the Countess to her
women -- he was dead.
</para>
<para>
For seventeen years, Lady Pendennyss
survived the shock; but having reached her
own abode, during that long period, she
never left her room.
</para>
<para>
In the confidence of his reviving hopes,
Doctor Ives and his wife were made acqnainted 
with the real cause, of the grief of
their friend -- but the truth went no further. 
 -- Denbigh was the guardian of his three young
cousins -- The Duke, his sister, and young
George Denbigh; these, with his son, Lord
Lumley, and daughter, Lady Marian, were
removed from the melancholy of the Castle,
to scenes better adapted to their opening 
prospects in life -- yet Lumley was fond of the
society of his father, and finding him a
youth endowed beyond his years -- the care
of his parent, was early turned to the most
important of his duties in that sacred office;
and when he yielded to his wishes to go
into the army -- he knew he went a youth of
sixteen, possessed of principles and self-denial, 
that would become a man of five and
twenty.
</para>
<para>
General Wilson completed the work, his
father had begun; and Lord Lumley formed
a singular exception to the character of his
companions.
</para>
<para>
At the close of the Spanish war, he returned home, 
and was just in time to receive
the parting breath of his mother.
</para>
<para>
A few days before her death, the Countess
requested her children might be made acquainted 
with her history and misconduct,
and she placed in the hands of her son, a letter, 
with directions, for him to open it after
her decease -- it was addressed to both children, 
and after recapitulating generally, the
principal events of her life, continued:
</para>
<letter><para>
&quot;Thus, my children, you perceive the consequences 
of indulgence and hardness of
heart, which made me insensible to the sufferings of others, 
and regardless of the plainest dictates of 
justice -- self, was my idol -- the
love of admiration, which was natural to me,
was increased by the flatterers who surrounded 
me -- and had the customs of our
country, suffered royalty to descend in their
unions, to a grade in life below their own,
your uncle would have escaped the fangs
of my baneful coquetry.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! Marian, my child, never descend so
low as to practice those arts, which have degraded your 
unhappy mother -- I would impress on you, as a memorial 
of my parting affection, these simple truths -- that coquetry,
stands next the want of chastity, in the scale
of female vices -- it is in fact, a kind of mental
prostitution -- it is ruinous to all that delicacy
of feeling, which gives added lustre to female
charms -- it is almost destructive to modesty
itself -- A woman who has been addicted to its
practice, may strive long, and in vain, to regain 
that singleness of heart, which can
bind her up so closely in her husband and
children, as to make her a good wife, or a
mother; and if it should have degenerated
into habit, may lead to the awful result of
infidelity to her marriage vows.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is in vain for a coquette to pretend to religion -- 
its practice involves hypocrisy, falsehood, and 
deception -- every thing that is mean
-- every thing that is debasing -- in short, as it is
bottomed on selfishness and pride, where it has
once possessed the mind, it will only yield
to the truth-displaying banners of the cross 
 -- this, and this only, can remove the evil; for
without it, she, whom the charms of youth
and beauty, have enabled to act the coquette,
will descend into the vale of life, altered, it is
true, but not amended -- as she will find
the world, with its allurements, cling around
her parting years, in vain regrets for days
that are flown, and mercenary views for her
descendants. Heaven bless you, my children -- 
console and esteem your inestimable
father, while he yet remains with you; and
place your reliance on that Heavenly Parent,
who will never desert those, who seek him in
sincerity and love. 
 -- </para><sig>
   Your dying mother,
&quot;M. Pendennyss.&quot;
</sig></letter>
<para>
This letter, evidently written under the
excitement of deep remorse, for the errors of
the writer, made a great impression on both
her children; in Lady Marian it was pity,
regret, and abhorrence of the fault, which
had been the principal cause of the wreck
of her mother's peace of mind; but in her
brother, now Earl of Pendennyss, these feelings 
were united with a jealous dread of his
own probable lot, in the chances of matrimony.
</para>
<para>
His uncle had been the supposed heir to
a more elevated title than his own, but he
was now the actual possessor of as honourable a 
name, and much larger revenues. The
great wealth of his maternal grandfather,
and considerable estate of his own father,
were, or would soon be, centered in himself;
and if a woman as amiable, as faultless, as
his affection had taught him to believe his
mother to be, could yield, in her situation, to
the lure of wordly honours -- had he not great
reason to dread, a hand might be bestowed,
at some day, upon himself, when the heart
would point out some other destination, if
the real wishes of its owner were consulted.
</para>
<para>
Pendennyss was modest by nature, and
humble from principle -- though by no means
distrustful; yet the shock of discovering his
mother's fault -- the gloom of her death, and
his father's declining health, sometimes led
him into a train of reflections, which at
others, he would have fervently deprecated.
</para>
<para>
A short time after the decease of the
Countess, Mr. Denbigh, finding his constitution bending fast, 
under the wasting of a decline he had been in for a year, resolved to
finish his days in the abode of his Christian
friend, Doctor Ives. For several years they
had not met; increasing duties and infirmities 
on both sides having interrupted their
visits.
</para>
<para>
By easy stages he left the residence of his
son in Wales, and accompanied by both his
children, he reached Lumley Castle much
exhausted; here he took a solemn and final
leave of Marian, unwilling she should so
soon witness again the death of another parent,
and dismissing the Earl's equipage and attendants, a 
short day's ride from B -- , they proceeded alone to the rectory.
</para>
<para>
A letter had been forwarded, acquainting
the Doctor of his approaching visit, wishing
it to be perfectly private, but not alluding to
its object, and fixing the day, a week later
than the one he arrived on; this he had altered, on perceiving 
the torch of life more rapidly approaching the socket, than he had at
first supposed. Their unexpected appearance
and reception are known. Denbigh's death
and the departure of his son followed. Francis was his companion, 
to the tomb of his ancestors in Westmoreland.
</para>
<para>
The Earl had a shrinking delicacy under
the knowledge of his family, history, that
made him anxious to draw all eyes from the
contemplation of his mother's conduct -- how
far the knowledge of it, had extended in society, he 
could not know, but he wished it
buried with her in the tomb. The peculiar
manner of his father's death would attract
notice, and might recall attention to the prime
cause of his disorder; they were unknown as
yet, and he wished the Doctor's family to let
them remain so; it was impossible the death
of a man of Mr. Denbigh's rank, should be
unnoticed in the prints, and the care of Francis, 
dictated the simple truth, without comments, as it 
appeared: what was more natural, than that the 
son of Mr. Denbigh, should also be Mr. Denbigh.
</para>
<para>
In the presence of the Rector's family, no
allusions were made to their friends, and the
villagers and the neighbourhood spoke of them
as old and young Mr. Denbigh.
</para>
<para>
The name of Lord Lumley, now Earl of Pendennyss, 
was known to the whole British nation; but the long. 
retirement of his father and
mother, had driven them almost from the recollection of 
their friends. Even Mrs. Wilson
supposed her favourite hero a Lumley. Pendennyss castle 
had been for centuries the proud
residence of that family; and the change of
name in its possessor, was forgotten with the
circumstances that led to it. When, therefore,
Emily met the Earl so unexpectedly the second
time at the rectory, she, of course, with all her
companions, spoke of him as Mr. Denbigh.
</para>
<para>
Pendennyss had called in proper person, in 
expectation of meeting his kinsman,
Lord Bolton; but, finding him absent, could
not resist his desire to visit the rectory -- 
accordingly he sent his carriage and servants on
to London, leaving them at a convenient spot,
and arrived on foot at the house of Dr. Ives.
From the same motives which had influenced
him before -- a wish to indulge, undisturbed by 
useless ceremony, his melancholy
reflections -- he desired his name might not
be mentioned.
</para>
<para>
This was an easy task; both Doctor and
Mrs. Ives had called him when a child, George
or Lumley, and were unused to his new appellation, 
of Pendennyss; indeed, it rather
recalled painful recollections to them all.
</para>
<para>
It may be remembered, circumstances removed the 
necessity of any introduction to Mrs.
Wilson and her party; and the difficulty in
that instance was happily got rid of.
</para>
<para>
The Earl had often heard Emily Moseley
spoken of by his friends, and in their letters
they frequently mentioned her name, as connected with 
their pleasures and employments, always with an affection, Pendennyss
thought exceeding that which they manifested -- 
for their son's wife; and Mrs. Ives, the
evening before, to remove unpleasant thoughts,
had given him a lively description of her
person and character. The Earl's curiosity 
had been a little excited to see this
paragon of female beauty and virtues; and,
unlike most curiosity on such subjects, he
was agreeably disappointed by the examination. He 
wished to know more, and made interest with 
the doctor, to assist him to continue
the incognito, accident had favoured him with.
</para>
<para>
The Doctor objected on the ground of
principle, and the Earl desisted; but the
beauty of Emily, aided by her character, had
made an impression not to be easily shaken
off, and Pendennyss returned to the charge.
</para>
<para>
His former jealousies were awakened in proportion 
to his admiration; and after some
time, he threw himself on the mercy of the
divine, by declaring his new motive, but
without mentioning his parents. The Doctor
pitied him, for he scanned his feelings thoroughly, 
and consented to keep silent, but
laughingly declared, it was bad enough for a
divine, to be accessory to, much less aiding in
a deception; and that he knew if Emily and
Mrs. Wilson, learnt his imposition, he would
lose ground in their favour by the discovery.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Surely, George,&quot; said the doctor with a
laugh, &quot;you don't mean to marry the young
lady as Mr. Denbigh?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh no! it is too soon to think of marrying her 
at all,&quot; replied the Earl with a smile,
&quot;but -- somehow -- I should like to see, what
my reception in the world will be, as plain
Mr. Denbigh -- unprovided for and unknown.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No doubt, my Lord,&quot; said the Rector
archly, &quot;in proportion to your merits very
unfavourably indeed; but then your humility will 
be finely elevated, by the occasional
praises, I have heard Mrs. Wilson lavish on
your proper character, of late.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am much indebted to her partiality,&quot;
continued the Earl mournfully; then throwing off 
his gloomy thoughts, he added;
&quot;I wonder, my dear Doctor, your goodness
did not set her right in the latter particular.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why she has hardly given me an opportunity -- 
delicacy and my own feelings, have
kept me very silent on the subject of your
family to any of that connexion; they think,
I believe, I was a rector in Wales, instead of
your father's chaplain, and somehow,&quot; continued 
the Doctor, smiling on his wife, &quot;the
association with your late parents, was so
connected in my mind, with my most romantic
feelings; that although I have delighted in
it -- I have seldom alluded to it in conversation at all. 
Mrs. Wilson has never spoken of you but twice in my 
hearing, and that since she has expected to meet you -- your
name has undoubtedly recalled the remembrance of her husband.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have many -- many reasons to remember the 
General with gratitude,&quot; cried the
Earl with fervour -- &quot;but Doctor, do not forget
my incognito; only call me George, I ask no more.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The plan of Pendennyss was put in execution -- day after 
day he lingered in Northamptonshire, until his principles and 
character had grown upon the esteem of the Moseleys,
in the manner we have mentioned.
</para>
<para>
His frequent embarrassments were from the
dread and shame of a detection -- with Sir Hubert 
Nicholson, he had a narrow escape; and
Mrs. Fitzgerald and Lord Henry Stapleton
he of course avoided; for having gone so far,
he was determined to persevere to the end.
Egerton he thought knew him, and he disliked his character and manners.
</para>
<para>
When Chatterton appeared most attentive
to Emily, the candour and good opinion of
the young nobleman made the Earl acquainted
with his wishes and his situation. Pendennyss was too 
generous not to meet his rival on
fair grounds. His cousin, the Duke, was requested to 
use their influence secretly, for the
desired station for the Baron -- the result is
known, and Pendennyss trusted his secret to
Chatterton; he took him to London, gave
him in charge to Derwent, and returned to
prosecute his own suit. His note from Bolton Castle was a ruse, to 
conceal his character, as he knew the departure of the baronet's
family to an hour, and had so timed his visit
to the Earl, as not to come in collision with
the Moseleys.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Indeed, my Lord,&quot; cried the Doctor to him
one day, &quot;your scheme goes on swimmingly,
and I am only afraid when your mistress finds
the imposition, you will find your rank producing a 
different effect, from what you have
apprehended.&quot;
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XXI.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
But Dr. Ives was mistaken -- had he seen
the sparkling eyes, and glowing cheeks of
Miss Moseley -- the smile of satisfaction and
happiness, which played on the usually
thoughtful face of Mrs. Wilson, when the Earl
handed them into his own carriage, as they
left his house, on the evening of the discovery; the 
Doctor would have gladly acknowledged the failure of 
his prognostics. In
truth, there was no possible event, that under
the circumstances, could have given both
aunt and niece such heartfelt pleasure, as
the knowledge that Denbigh and the Earl
were the same person.
</para>
<para>
Pendennyss stood holding the door of the
carriage in his hand, irresolute how to act,
when Mrs. Wilson said,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Surely, my Lord, you sup with us.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;A thousand thanks, my dear Madam,
for the privilege,&quot; cried the Earl, as he
sprang into the coach -- the door was closed,
and they drove off.
</para>
<para>
&quot;After the explanation of this morning,
my Lord,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, willing to remove 
all doubts between him and Emily, and
perhaps anxious to satisfy her own curiosity,
&quot;it will be fastidious to conceal our desire
to know more of your movements. How
came your pocket-book in the possession of
Mrs. Fitzgerald?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mrs. Fitzgerald!&quot; cried Pendennyss, in
astonishment, &quot;I lost the book in one of the
rooms of the Lodge, and supposed it had
fallen into your hands, and betrayed my
disguise, by Emily's rejection of me, and
your own altered eye. Was I mistaken then
in both?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson now, for the first time, explained 
their real grounds of refusing his
offers, which, in the morning, she had loosely 
mentioned, as owing to a misapprehension
of his just character, and recounted the
manner of the book's falling into the hands
of Mrs. Fitzgerald.
</para>
<para>
The Earl listened in amazement, and after
musing with himself, exclaimed, &quot;I remember taking it 
from my pocket, to show Col.
Egerton some singular plants I had gathered, and think 
I first missed it, when returning to the place I had then laid it -- it was
gone; in some of the side-pockets were letters from Marian, 
addressed to me, properly;
and I naturally thought they had met your
eye.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson and Emily immediately
thought Egerton the real villain, who had
caused both themselves and Mrs. Fitzgerald
so much uneasiness, and the former mentioned 
her suspicions to the Earl.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nothing more probable, dear Madam,&quot;
cried he, &quot;and this explains to me his startling 
looks when we first met, and evident
dislike to my society, for he must have seen
my person, though the carriage hid him from
my sight.&quot;
</para>
<para>
That Egerton was the wretch, and
through his agency, the pocket-book had
been carried to the Cottage, they all now
agreed, and turned to more pleasant subjects.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Master! -- her -- Master,&quot; said Peter
Johnson, as he stood at a window of Mr.
Benfield's room, stirring a gruel for the old
gentleman's supper, and stretching his neck,
and straining his eyes, to distinguish by the
light of the lamps -- &quot;I do think there is
Mr. Denbigh, handing Miss Emmy from a
coach, covered with gold, and two foot-men,
all dizzined with pride like.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The spoon fell from the hands of Mr.
Benfield -- he rose briskly from his seat,
and adjusting his dress, took the arm of the
steward, as he proceeded to the drawing-room.
While these several movements were in
operation, which consumed some time, the
old bachelor relieved the tedium of Peter's
impatience, by the following speech:
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mr. Denbigh! -- what, back? -- I thought
he never could let that rascal John shoot
him, and forsake Emmy after all; (here the
old gentleman suddenly recollected Denbigh's 
marriage) but now, Peter, it can do
no good either. -- I remember, that when my
friend, the Earl of Gosford -- (and again he
was checked by the image of the card-table,
and the Viscountess,) &quot;but Peter,&quot; he said,
with great warmth, &quot;we can go down and
see him though.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mr. Denbigh!&quot; exclaimed Sir Edward,
in astonishment, as he saw the companion of
his sister and child, enter the drawing-room,
&quot;you are welcome once more to your old
friends; your sudden retreat from us, gave
us much pain, but we suppose Lady Laura
had too many attractions, to allow us to keep
you any longer in Norfolk.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The good Baronet sighed, as he held out
his hand, to the man he had once hoped to
receive as a son.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Neither Lady Laura, nor any other lady,
my dear Sir Edward,&quot; cried the Earl, as he
took the Baronet's hand, &quot;drove me from
you, but the frowns of your own fair daughter; 
and here she is, ready to acknowledge
her offence -- and, I hope, atone for it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
John, who knew of the refusal of his sister, 
and was not a little displeased with the
cavalier treatment he had received at Denbigh's 
hands, felt indignant at such improper
levity, as he thought he now exhibited, being
a married man, and approached with 
 -- &quot;Your servant, Mr. Denbigh -- I hope my
Lady Laura is well.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Pendennyss understood his look, and replied 
very gravely, &quot;Your servant, Mr. John
Moseley -- my Lady Laura is, or certainly
ought to be, very well, as she has this 
moment gone to a route, accompanied by her
husband.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The quick eye of John glanced from the
Earl -- to his aunt -- to Emily; a lurking smile
was on all their features -- the heightened colour 
of his sister -- the flashing eyes of the
young man -- the face of his aunt -- all told
him, something uncommon was about to be
explained; and yielding to his feelings, he
caught the hand, Pendennyss extended to
him, as he cried,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Denbigh, I see -- I feel -- there is some
unaccountable mistake -- we are -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Brothers!&quot; said the Earl, emphatically.
&quot;Sir Edward -- dear Lady Moseley, I throw
myself on your mercy -- I am an impostor 
 -- when your hospitality received me into your
house, it is true, you admitted George Denbigh, 
but he is better known as the Earl of
Pendennyss.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Earl of Pendennyss!&quot; exclaimed
Lady Moseley, in a glow of delight, as she
saw at once through some juvenile folly -- a
deception, which promised both happiness and
rank to one of her children; &quot;is it possible,
my dear Charlotte, this is your unknown
friend.&quot; 
 -- &quot;The very same, Anne,&quot; replied the smiling 
widow, &quot;and guilty of a folly, that at
all events, removes the distance between us
a little, by showing he is subject to the failings 
of mortality. But the masquerade is
ended, and I hope you and Edward will not
only treat him as an Earl, but receive him
as a son.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Most willingly -- most willingly,&quot; cried
the Baronet, with great energy; &quot;be he prince
-- peer -- or beggar -- he is the preserver of
my child, and as such, he is always welcome.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The door now slowly opened, and the
venerable bachelor appeared on its threshold.
</para>
<para>
Pendennyss, who had never forgotten the
good will manifested to him by Mr. Benfield,
met him with a look of pleasure, as he expressed 
his happiness at seeing him again
and in London.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I never have forgotten your goodness in
sending honest Peter, such a distance from
home, or the object of his visit. I now regret a feeling of shame occasioned 
my answering your kindness so laconically;&quot; 
turning to Mrs. Wilson, he added, &quot;for a time,
I knew not how to write a letter even 
 -- afraid to sign my proper appellation, and
ashamed to use my adopted one.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mr. Denbigh, I am happy to see you. I
did send Peter, it is true, to London, on a
message to you -- but it is all over now,&quot; 
 -- and the old man sighed -- &quot;Peter, however,
escaped the snares of this wicked place; and
if you are happy, I am content. I remember when the Earl of -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pendennyss!&quot; exclaimed the other, &quot;imposed 
on the hospitality of a worthy man,
under an assumed appellation, in order to
pry into the character of a lovely female,
who was only too good for him, and who
now is willing to forget his follies, and make
him, not only the happiest of men, but the
nephew of Mr. Benfield.&quot;
</para>
<para>
During this speech, the countenance of Mr.
Benfield had manifested evident emotion 
 -- he looked from one to another, until he saw
Mrs. Wilson smiling near him; pointing to
the Earl with his finger, he stood unable to
speak, as she answered, simply,
</para>
<para>
&quot;Lord Pendennyss.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Emmy dear -- will you -- will you
marry him?&quot; cried Mr. Benfield, suppressing
his feelings, to give utterance.
</para>
<para>
Emily felt for her uncle, and blushing
deeply, with great frankness, put her hand in
that of the Earl, who pressed it with rapture
again and again to his lips.
</para>
<para>
Mr. Benfield sunk into a chair, and with
a heart softened by his emotions, burst into
tears. &quot;Peter,&quot; he cried, struggling with
his feelings, &quot;I am now ready to depart in
peace -- I shall see my darling Emmy, happy,
and to her care, I shall commit you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily, deeply affected with his love, threw
herself into his arms in a torrent of tears, and
was removed from them by Pendennyss, in
consideration for the feelings of both.
</para>
<para>
Jane felt no emotions of envy for her sister's 
happiness; on the contrary, she rejoiced
in common with the rest of their friends in
her brightening prospects, and they took
their seats at the supper table, as happy a
group, as was contained in the wide circle of
the Metropolis; a few more particulars served
to explain the mystery sufficiently, until a
more fitting opportunity made them acquainted 
with the whole of the Earl's proceedings.
</para>
<para>
&quot;My Lord Pendennyss,&quot; said Sir Edward,
pouring out a glass of wine, and passing the
bottle to his neighbour: &quot;I drink your health 
 -- and happiness to yourself and my darling
child.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The toast was drank by all the family,
and the Earl replied to them with his thanks
and smiles, while Emily could only notice
them, with her blushes and tears.
</para>
<para>
But this was an opportunity not to be lost
by the honest steward, who had, from affection and long 
services, been indulged in familiarities, exceeding any 
other of his master's
establishment. He very deliberately helped
himself to a glass of wine, and drawing near
the seat of the bride-elect, with a humble reverence, 
commenced his speech as follows:
</para>
<para>
&quot;My dear Miss Emmy: -- Here's hoping
you'll live to be a comfort to your honoured
father, and your honoured mother, and my
dear honoured master, and yourself, and
Madam Wilson.&quot; The steward paused to
clear his voice, and cast his eye round the
table to collect the names; &quot;and Mr. John
Moseley, and sweet Mrs. Moseley, and pretty Miss Jane,&quot; 
(Peter had lived too long in
the world to compliment one handsome woman in the presence 
of another, without qualifying his speech a little) 
&quot;and Mr. Lord Denbigh -- Earl like, as 
they say he now is, and&quot;
-- Peter stopped a moment to deliberate, and
then making another reverence, he put the
glass to his lips; but before he had got half
through its contents, recollected himself,
and replenishing to the brim, with a
smile, acknowledging his forgetfulness, continued, 
&quot;and the Rev. Mr. Francis Ives, and
the Rev. Mrs. Francis Ives.&quot; Here the unrestrained 
laugh of John interrupted him;
and considering with himself that he had
included the whole family, he finished his
bumper. Whether it was pleasure at his eloquence, 
in venturing on so long a speech, or
the unusual allowance, that affected the steward, 
he was evidently much satisfied with
himself, and stepped back, behind his master's chair, 
in great good humour.
</para>
<para>
Emily, as she thanked him, noticed with a
grateful satisfaction, a tear in the eye of the
old man, as he concluded his oration, that
would have excused a thousand breaches of
fastidious ceremony. But Pendennyss rose
from his seat, and took him kindly by the hand,
as he returned his own thanks for his good
wishes.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I owe you much good will, Mr. Johnson,
for your two journies in my behalf, and trust
I never shall forget the manner in which you
executed your last mission, in particular.
We are friends, I trust, for life.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Thank you -- thank your honour's lordship,&quot; said 
the steward, almost unable to utter; &quot;I hope you may 
live long, to make dear little Miss Emmy as happy -- as I know
she ought to be.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But really, my lord,&quot; cried John, observing that 
the steward's affection for his sister,
had affected her to tears, &quot;it was a singular circumstance, 
the meeting of the four passengers of the stage, so soon at your hotel?&quot;
and Moseley explained his meaning to the
rest of the company.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not so much so as you imagine,&quot; said
the Earl in reply; &quot;yourself and Johnson
were in quest of me; Lord Henry Stapleton
was under an engagement to meet me that
evening at the hotel, as we were both going
to his sister's wedding -- I having arranged
the thing with him, by letters previously; 
 -- and the General, M'Carthy, was also in
search of me, on business relating to his niece,
the Donna Julia. He had been to Annerdale
House, and through my servants, heard I
was at a hotel. It was the first interview
between us, and not quite as amicable an one
as he has since paid me in Wales. In my
service in Spain, I saw the Conde, but not the
General. The letter he gave me, was from
the Spanish ambassador, claiming a right to
require Mrs. Fitzgerald from our government,
and deprecating my using an influence, to
counteract his exertions&quot; 
 -- &quot;Which you refused,&quot; said Emily, eagerly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not refused,&quot; answered the Earl, smiling
at her warmth, at the same time he admired
her friendly zeal, &quot;for it was unnecessary 
 -- there is no such power vested in the ministry; 
but I explicitly told the General, I would
oppose any violent measures to restore her to
her country and a convent. From the courts,
I apprehended nothing for my fair friend.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your honour -- my Lord,&quot; said Peter,
who had been listening with great attention,
&quot;if I may presume, just to ask two questions,
without offence.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Say on, my good friend,&quot; said Pendennyss, with 
an encouraging smile.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Only,&quot; continued the steward -- hemming,
to give proper utterance to his thoughts -- &quot;I
wish to know, whether you staid in that same
street, after you left the hotel -- for Mr. John
Moseley and I, had a slight difference in opinion about it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The Earl smiled, as he caught the arch
expression of John, and replied 
 -- &quot;I believe I owe you an apology, Moseley, for my 
cavalier treatment -- but guilt
makes us all cowards. I found you were ignorant of 
my incognito, and I was equally
ashamed to continue it, or become the relator of my 
own folly. Indeed,&quot; he continued, smiling on Emily 
as he spoke, &quot;I thought
your sister had pronounced the opinions of
all reflecting people on my conduct. I went
out of town, Johnson at day-break. What
is your other query?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, my lord,&quot; said Peter, a little disappointed 
at finding his first surmise untrue,
&quot;that outlandish tongue, your honour used -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Was Spanish,&quot; cried the Earl.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And not Greek, Peter,&quot; said his master,
gravely. &quot;I thought, from the words you
endeavoured to repeat to me, you had made
a mistake. You need not be disconcerted,
however, for I know several members of the
parliament of this realm, who could not talk
the Greek language -- that is, fluently. So it
can be no disgrace, to a serving man to be ignorant of it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Somewhat consoled to find himself as well
off as the representatives of his country, Peter 
resumed his station in silence, when the
carriages began to announce the return from
the opera. The Earl took his leave, and the
party retired to rest.
</para>
<para>
The thanksgivings of Emily that night,
ere she laid her head on her pillow, were the
purest offering of mortal innocence. The prospect 
before her was unsullied by a cloud, and
she poured out her heart in the fullest confidence 
of pious love and heartfelt gratitude.
</para>
<para>
As early on the succeeding morning as
good-breeding would allow, and much earlier
than the hour sanctioned by fashion, the Earl
and Lady Marian stopped in the carriage of
the latter, at the door of Sir Edward Moseley. Their 
reception was the most flattering
that could be offered to people of their stamp;
sincere -- cordial -- and, with a trifling exception 
in Lady Moseley, unfettered with any of
the useless ceremonies of high life.
</para>
<para>
Emily felt herself drawn to her new acquaintance, 
with a fondness, which doubtless
grew out of her situation with her brother, but
which soon found reasons enough in the soft,
lady-like, and sincere manners of Lady Marian, to 
justify her attachment on her own
account.
</para>
<para>
There was a very handsome suite of drawing-rooms 
in Sir Edward's house, and the
doors communicating, were carelessly open.
Curiosity to view the furniture, or some such
trifling reason, induced the Earl to find his
way, into the one adjoining that, in which the
family were seated. It was unquestionably
a dread of being lost in a strange house, that
induced him to whisper a request to the
blushing Emily, to be his companion; and
lastly, it must have been nothing, but a knowledge 
that a vacant room was easier viewed,
than one filled with company, that prevented
any one from following them; John smiled archly at 
Grace, doubtless in approbation
of the comfortable time his friend was likely
to enjoy, in his musings on the taste of their
mother. How the door became shut, we
have ever been at a loss to imagine.
</para>
<para>
The company without were too good natured and 
well satisfied with each other, to
miss the absentees, until the figure of the
Earl appeared at the reopened door, beckoning, 
with a face of rapture, to Lady Moseley
and Mrs. Wilson. Sir Edward next disappeared -- then Jane -- 
then Grace -- then Marian; until John began to think a tete-a-tete
with Mr. Benfield, was to be his morning's
amusement.
</para>
<para>
The lovely countenance of his wife, however, soon 
relieved his ennui, and John's curiosity was gratified 
by an order to prepare
for his sister's wedding the following week.
</para>
<para>
Emily might have blushed more than common during 
this interview, but it is certain
she did not smile less; and the Earl, Lady
Marian assured Sir Edward, was so very different a 
creature, from what he had been,
that she did hardly think it was the same
sombre gentleman, she had passed the last
few months with, in Wales and Westmoreland.
</para>
<para>
A messenger was despatched for Dr. Ives,
and their friends at B -- , to be witnesses
to the approaching nuptials; and Lady Moseley at length found 
an opportunity of indulging her taste in splendour, on this joyful
occasion.
</para>
<para>
Money was no consideration; and Mr. Benfield 
absolutely pined at the thought, the
great wealth of the Earl, put it out of his power 
to contribute, in any manner, to the comfort of his Emmy. 
However, a fifteenth codicil was framed by the ingenuity of Peter
and his master, and if it did not contain the
name of George Denbigh, it did that of his
expected second son, Roderic Benfield Denbigh, to the 
qualifying circumstance of twenty thousand pounds, as a bribe for the name.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And a very pretty child, I dare say it will
be,&quot; said the steward, as he placed the paper
in its repository. &quot;I don't know I ever saw,
your honour, a couple, that I thought, would
make a handsomer pair, like -- except&quot; -- and
Peter's mind dwelt on his own youthful form,
coupled with the smiling graces of Patty
Steele.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes! they are as handsome as they are
good!&quot; replied his master. &quot;I remember
now -- when our speaker took his third wife,
the world said -- they were as pretty a couple
as there was at court. But my Emmy and
the Earl will be a much finer pair. Oh! 
 -- Peter Johnson -- they are young -- and rich 
 -- and beloved -- but, after all, it avails but little,
if they be not good.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Good!&quot; cried the steward in astonishment; 
&quot;they are as good as angels.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The master's ideas of human excellence
had suffered a heavy blow, in the view of his
Viscountess -- but he answered mildly, &quot;as
good as mankind can well be.&quot;
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XXII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The warm weather had now commenced,
and Sir Edward, unwilling to be shut up in
London, at a time the appearance of vegetation gave 
the country a new interest, and
accustomed for many years of his life, to devote an 
hour in his garden each morning,
had taken a little ready furnished cottage a
short ride from his residence, with the intention of 
frequenting it, until after the birthday: thither then 
Pendennyss took his bride
from the altar, and a few days were passed
by the new married pair, in this little asylum.
</para>
<para>
Doctor Ives with Francis, Clara, and their
mother, had obeyed the summons, with an
alacrity in proportion to the joy they had felt
on receiving it, and the former had the happiness 
of officiating on the occasion. It
would have been easy for the wealth of
the Earl to procure a licence to enable them
to marry in the drawing room -- the permission was 
obtained, but neither Emily or himself, felt a wish 
to utter their vows in any other spot than at the altar, 
and in the house of their maker.
</para>
<para>
If there was a single heart that felt the
least emotion of regret or uneasiness, it
was Lady Moseley, who little relished the
retirement of the cottage, on so joyful an
occasion -- but Pendennyss silenced her objections, 
by good-humouredly replying  -- 
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Fates have been so kind to me, in
giving me castles and seats, you ought to allow me, 
my dear Lady Moseley, the only
opportunity, I shall probably ever have, of enjoying 
love in a cottage.&quot;
</para>
<para>
A few days, however, removed the uneasiness of the good
 matron, who had the felicity, within the week, of seeing her 
daughter initiated mistress of Annerdale-House. 
 -- The morning of their return to this noble
mansion -- the Earl presented himself in St.
James's square, with the intelligence of their
arrival, and smiling, as he bowed to Mrs.
Wilson, he continued -- &quot;And to escort you,
dear Madam, to your new abode.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson started with surprise, and
with a heart beating quick with emotion, required 
an explanation of his words.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Surely, dearest Mrs. Wilson -- more than
aunt -- my mother -- you cannot mean, after
having trained my Emily through infancy to
maturity in the paths of her duty -- to desert
her in the moment of her greatest trial. -- I
am the pupil of your husband,&quot; he continued, taking 
her hands in his own with reverence and affection, 
&quot;we are the children of your joint care -- and one home, 
as there is but one heart, must, in future, contain us.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Wilson had wished for, but hardly
dared to expect this invitation -- it was now
urged from the right quarter, and in a manner that 
was as sincere as it was gratifying 
 -- unable to conceal her tears, the good widow
pressed the hand of Pendennyss to her lips,
as she murmured out her thanks, and her
acceptance -- Sir Edward was prepared also
to lose his sister, as an inmate, but unwilling
to relinquish the pleasure of her society,
he urged her making a common residence
between the two families.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Pendennyss has spoken truth, my dear
brother&quot; cried she, recovering her voice,
&quot;Emily is the child of my care and my love
-- the two beings I love best in this world,
are now united -- but,&quot; she added, pressing
Lady Moseley to her bosom, &quot;my heart is
large enough for you all; you are of my
blood, and my gratitude for your affection is
boundless -- There shall be but one large family of 
us, and although our duties may
separate us for a time -- we will, I trust, ever
meet in tenderness and love -- but with George
and Emily I will take up my abode.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hope your house in Northamptonshire
is not to be vacant always,&quot; said Lady
Moseley to the Earl, anxiously.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have no house there, my dear Madam,&quot;
he replied; &quot;when I thought myself about
to succeed in my suit before, I directed a
lawyer at Bath, where Sir William Harris
resided most of his time, to endeavour to
purchase the Deanery, whenever a good opportunity 
offered; -- in my discomfiture,&quot; he
added, smiling, &quot;I forgot to countermand
the order, and he purchased it immediately
on its being advertised; -- for a short time it
was an incumbrance to me -- but it is now
applied to its original purpose -- It is the
sole property of the Countess of Pendennyss,
and I doubt not you will see it often, and
agreeably tenanted.&quot;
</para>
<para>
This intelligence gave great satisfaction to
his friends, and the expected summer, restored to 
even Jane, a gleam of her former
pleasure.
</para>
<para>
If there be bliss in this life, approaching in
any degree to the happiness of the blessed, it
is the fruition of long and ardent love, where
youth -- innocence -- piety -- and family concord, 
smile upon the union -- and all these
were united in the case of the new-married
pair; -- buth appiness in this world cannot, or
does not, in any situation, exist without alloy
-- it would seem a wise and gracious ordering of 
Providence, to draw our attention to
scenes void of care, and free, alike, from the
infirmities and corruption of mortality.
</para>
<para>
The peace of mind and fortitude of Emily,
were fated to receive a blow, as unlooked for
to herself, as it was unexpected to the world.
Buonaparte appeared in France, and Europe became in motion.
</para>
<para>
From the moment the Earl heard the intelligence -- 
he saw his own course decided 
 -- his regiment was the pride of the army, and
that it would be ordered to join the Duke, he
did not entertain a doubt.
</para>
<para>
Emily was therefore, in some little measure, 
prepared for the blow -- it is at such
moments, as our acts or events affecting
us, become without our controul, that faith
in the justice and benevolence of God, is the
most serviceable in a worldly point of view
to the Christian; when others spend their
time in useless regrets -- he is piously resigned -- 
it even so happens, that when
others mourn, he can rejoice.
</para>
<para>
The sound of the bugle, wildly winding
its notes, broke on the stillness of the morning, 
in the little village in which was situated
the cottage tenanted by Sir Edward Moseley
--almost concealed by the shrubbery which
surrounded its piazza, stood the forms of the
Countess of Pendennyss, and her sister Lady
Marian, watching eagerly the appearance of
those, whose approach, was thus announced.
</para>
<para>
The carriage of the ladies, with its idle attendants, 
were in waiting at a short distance,
and the pale face, but composed resignation
of its mistress -- indicated a struggle between
conflicting duties.
</para>
<para>
File, after file, of heavy horse, passed
them in all the pomp of military splendour,
and the wistful gaze of the two females had
scanned them in vain for the well-known 
 -- much-beloved countenance, of their leader 
 -- at length a single horseman approached them,
riding deliberately and musing -- their forms
met his eye -- and in an instant, Emily was
pressed to the bosom of her husband.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is the doom of a soldier,&quot; said the
earl, dashing a tear from his eye; &quot;I had
hoped the peace of the world would not again
be assailed in years, and that ambition and
jealousy would yield a respite to our bloody
profession; but, cheer up, my love -- hope
for the best -- your trust is not in the things of
this life, and your happiness is without the
power of man.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ah! Pendennyss -- my husband,&quot; sobbed
Emily, sinking on his bosom, &quot; take with
you my prayers -- my love -- every thing that
can console you -- every thing that may profit you -- 
I will not tell you to be careful of
your life -- your duty teaches you that -- as a
soldier, expose it -- as a husband, guard it 
-- and return to me as you leave me -- a lover
-- the dearest of men, and a christian.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Unwilling to prolong the pain of parting,
the Earl gave his wife a last embrace, held
Marian affectionately to his bosom, and
mounting his horse, was out of sight in an
instant.
</para>
<para>
Within a few days of the departure of
Pendennyss -- Chatterton was surprised with
the entrance of his mother and Catherine.
His reception of them, was that of a respectful child, 
and his wife exerted herself to be
kind to connexions she could not love, in
order to give pleasure to a husband she
adored -- their tale was soon told -- Lord and
Lady Herriefield were separated; and the
Dowager alive to the dangers of a young
woman in Catherine's situation, and without
a single principle, on which to rest the assurance 
of her blameless conduct in future 
-- had brought her to England, in order to
keep off disgrace, by residing with her child
herself.
</para>
<para>
There was nothing in his wife to answer
the expectations with which Lord Herriefield married -- 
she had beauty, but with
that, he was already sated -- her simplicity
and unsuspicious behaviour, which had, by
having her attention drawn elsewhere, at first
charmed him, was succeeded by the knowing conduct, of 
a determined follower of the
fashions, and a decided woman of the world.
</para>
<para>
It had never struck the Viscount, as impossible, 
that an artless and innocent girl would
fall in love with his faded and bilious face
-- but the moment Catherine betrayed the
arts of a manager, he saw at once the artifice that 
had been practised upon himself 
-- of course, he ceased to love her.
</para>
<para>
Men are flattered, for a season, with the
notice of a woman, that has been unsought,
but it never fails to injure her in the opinion
of the other sex, in time -- without a single
feeling in common, without a regard to any
thing but self, in either husband or wife,
it could not but happen that a separation must
follow, or their days be spent in wrangling
and misery.
</para>
<para>
Catherine willingly left her husband -- her
husband more willingly got rid of her.
</para>
<para>
During all these movements, the Dowager
had a difficult game to play -- it was unbecoming 
her to encourage the strife, and it
was against her wishes to suppress it -- she
therefore moralized with the peer, and
frowned upon her daughter.
</para>
<para>
The viscount listened to her truisms, with
the attention of a boy, who is told by a
drunken father, how wicked it is to love
liquor, and heeded them about as much;
while Kate, mistress, at all events, of two
thousand a year -- minded her mother's frowns
as little as she regarded her smiles -- both
were indifferent to her.
</para>
<para>
A few days after the ladies left Lisbon, the
Viscount proceeded to Italy, in company
with the repudiated wife of a British naval
officer; and if Kate was not guilty, of an offence 
of equal magnitude, it was more owing
to her mother's present vigilance, than to her
previous care.
</para>
<para>
The presence of Mrs. Wilson was a great
source of consolation to Emily in the absence of
her husband; and as their abode in town any
longer was useless, the Countess declining
to be presented without the Earl, the
whole family decided upon a return into
Northamptonshire.
</para>
<para>
The deanery had been furnished by order of Pendennyss 
immediately on his marriage; and its mistress hastened to take
possession of her new dwelling. The amusement and 
occupation of this movement
--the planning of little improvements 
 -- her various duties under her increased 
responsibilities, kept Emily from dwelling in
her thoughts, unduly upon the danger of
her husband. She sought out amongst
the first objects of her bounty, the venerable
peasant, whose loss had been formerly supplied by 
Pendennyss on his first visit to
B -- , after the death of his father; there
might not have been the usual discrimination
and temporal usefulness in her charities in
this instance which generally accompanied her
benevolent acts; but it was associated with
the image of her husband, and it could excite
no surprise in Mrs. Wilson, although it did in
Marian, to see her sister, driving two or three
times a week, to relieve the necessities of a man,
who appeared actually to be in want of nothing.
</para>
<para>
Sir Edward was again amongst those
he loved, and his hospitable board was
once more surrounded with the faces of his
friends and neighbours. The good-natured
Mr. Haughton was always a welcome guest
at the hall, and met, soon after their return,
the collected family of the baronet, at a dinner 
given by the latter to his children, and
one or two of his most intimate neighbours 
 -- &quot;My Lady Pendennyss,&quot; cried Mr. Haughton, in 
the course of the afternoon, &quot;I have
news from the Earl, which I know it will do
your heart good to hear.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Emily smiled her pleasure at the prospect
of hearing, in any manner, favourably of her
husband, although she internally questioned
the probability of Mr. Haughton's knowing
any thing of his movements, which her daily
letters did not apprise her of.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Will you favour me with the particulars
of your intelligence, sir?&quot; said the Countess.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He has arrived safe with his regiment
near Brussels; I heard it from a neighbour's son
who saw him in that city, enter the house occupied 
by Wellington, while he was standing
in the crowd without, waiting to get a peep at
the duke.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh!&quot; said Mrs. Wilson with a laugh,
&quot;Emily knew that ten days ago; could
your friend tell us any thing of Bonaparte,
we are much interested in his movements
just now.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr. Haughton, a good deal mortified to find
his news stale, mused a moment as if in
doubt to proceed or not; but liking of all
things to act the part of a newspaper, he continued 
 --    &quot;Nothing more than you see in the prints;
but I suppose your ladyship has heard about
Captain Jarvis too?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, no,&quot; said Emily laughing, &quot;the
movements of Captain Jarvis are not quite as
interesting to me, as those of Lord Pendennyss -- 
has the duke made him an aid-decamp?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! no,&quot; cried the other exculting in his
success in having something new, &quot;as soon
as he heard of the return of Boney, -- he
threw up his commission and got married.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Married!&quot; cried John, &quot;not to Miss
Harris, surely.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, to a silly girl he met in Cornwall,
who was fool enough to be caught with his
gold lace. He married one day, and the
next, told his disconsolate wife, and panicstruck 
mother, the honour of the Jarvis's must
sleep, until the supporters of the name became
sufficiently numerous to risk losing them, in
the field of battle.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And how did Mrs. Jarvis and Sir Timo's
lady relish the news?&quot; inquired John, expecting 
something ridiculous.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not at all,&quot; rejoined Mr. Haughton;
&quot;the former sobbed, and said, she had only
married him for his bravery and red coat, and
the lady exclaimed against the destruction of
his budding honours.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How did it terminate?&quot; asked Mrs. Wilson.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, it seems while they were quarrelling about it, 
the war office cut the matter
short by accepting his resignation. I suppose the 
commander in chief had learnt his
character; but the matter was warmly contested -- 
they even drove the captain to declare
his principles.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And what kind of ones might they have
been, Haughton?&quot; said Sir Edward dryly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Republican.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Republican!&quot; exclaimed two or three in
surprise.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes, liberty and equality, he contended,
were his idols, and he could not find it in his
heart to fight against Bonaparte.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;A somewhat singular conclusion,&quot; said
Mr. Benfield musing. &quot;I remember when I
sat in the house, there was a party who were
fond of the cry of this said liberty; but when
they got the power, they did not seem to me
to suffer people to go more at large than they
went before -- but I suppose they were diffident 
of telling the world their minds, after
they were put in such responsible stations 
 -- for fear of the effect of example.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Most people like liberty as servants,
but not as masters, uncle,&quot; cried John, with
a sneer.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Capt. Jarvis, it seems, liked it as a preserver 
against danger,&quot; continued Mr. Haughton; &quot;to avoid 
ridicule in his new neighbourhood, he has consented 
to his father's wishes, and turned merchant in the city again.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Where I sincerely hope he will remain,&quot;
cried John, who since the accident of the
arbour, could not tolerate the unfortunate
youth.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Amen!&quot; said Emily, in an under tone,
heard only by her smiling brother.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But Sir Timo -- what has become of Sir
Timo -- the good, honest merchant?&quot; asked
John.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He has dropt the title, insists on being
called plain Mr. Jarvis, and lives entirely in
Cornwall. His hopeful son-in-law, has gone
with his regiment to Flanders, and Lady
Egerton, being unable to live without her
father's assistance, is obliged to hide her
consequence in the west also.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The subject became now disagreeable to
Lady Moseley, and it was changed. The
misfortune of such conversations, which unavoidably 
occurred, was, that it made Jane
more reserved aud dissatisfied than ever. She
had no one respectable excuse to offer for
her partiality to her former lover, and when
her conscience told her of this mortifying
fact, her jealousy was apt to think others remembered it too.
</para>
<para>
The letters from the continent, now teemed 
with the preparations for the approaching
contest, and the apprehensions of our heroine 
and her friends to increase, in proportion
to the nearness of the struggle, on which
hung not only the fate of thousands of individuals, 
but of adverse princes, and mighty
empires. In this confusion of interests, and
jarring of passions -- there were offered prayers 
almost hourly, for the safety of Pendennyss, which 
were as pure and ardent, as the love which prompted them.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XXIII.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
Napoleon had commenced those daring
and rapid movements, which for a time threw
the peace of the world into the scale of fortune, 
and which nothing but the interposition
of a ruling providence could avert from their
threatened success; as the -- the Dragoons
wheeled into a field already deluged with
English blood, on the heights of Quartre
Bras. The eye of its gallant Colonel saw a
friendly battalion falling beneath the sabres
of the enemy's Cuirassiers. The word was
passed -- the column opens -- the sounds of the
quivering bugle were heard for a moment,
over the roar of the cannon and the shouts of
the combatants; the charge sweeping, like a
whirlwind -- fell heavy on those treacherous
Frenchmen, who to day had sworn fidelity
to Louis, and to-morrow intended lifting
their hands in allegiance to his rival.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Spare my life in merey,&quot; cried an officer, 
already dreadfully wounded, who stood
shrinking from the impending blow of an enraged 
Frenchman. -- An English dragoon
dashed at the Cuirassier, and with one blow
severed his arm from his body 
 -- 
   &quot;Thank God,&quot; sighed the wounded officer, as 
he sunk beneath the horse's feet.
</para>
<para>
His rescuer threw himself from the saddle
to his assistance, and raising the fallen man,
inquired into his wounds -- It was Pendennyss -- 
it was Egerton. The wounded man
groaned aloud, as he saw the face of him
who had averted the fatal blow -- but it was
not the hour for explanations or confessions,
other than those with which the dying soldiers 
endeavoured to make their tardy peace
with their God.
</para>
<para>
Sir Henry was given in charge to two
slightly wounded British soldiers, and the
Earl remounted -- the scattered troops were
rallied at the sound of the trumpet -- and again
and again -- led by their dauntless Colonel,
were seen in the thickest of the fray, with
sabres drenched in blood, and voices hoarse
with the shouts of victory.
</para>
<para>
The period between the battles of Quartre
Bras and Waterloo, was a trying one to the
discipline and courage of the British army.
The discomfited Prussians on their flank, had
been routed and compelled to retire, and in
their front was an enemy, brave, skilful, and
victorious -- led by the greatest Captain of
the age. The prudent commander of the
English forces fell back with dignity and reluctance 
to the field of Waterloo; here the
mighty struggle was to terminate, and the
eye of every experienced soldier, looked on
those eminences, as the future graves for
thousands.
</para>
<para>
During this solemn interval of comparative
inactivity, the mind of Pendenny ss dwelt on
the affection, the innocence, the beauty and
worth of his Emily, until the curdling blood,
as he thought on her lot, should his life be
the purchase of the coming victory, warned
him to quit the gloomy subject, for the consolations 
of that religion which could only
yield him the solace his wounded feelings
required. In his former campaigns, the Earl
had been sensible of the mighty changes of
death, and had ever kept in view the preparations 
necessary to meet it with hope and
joy; but the world clung around him now,
in the best affections of his nature -- and it
was only as he could picture the happy reunion with 
his Emily in a future life, he
could look on a separation in this, without
despair.
</para>
<para>
The vicinity of the enemy admitted of no
relaxation in the strictest watchfulness in the
British lines, and the comfortless night of
the seventeenth, was passed by the Earl, and
his Lieutenant Colonel, George Denbigh, on
the same cloak, and under the open canopy
of Heaven.
</para>
<para>
As the opening cannon of the enemy gave
the signal for the commencing conflict, Pendennyss 
mounted his charger with a last
thought on his distant wife; with a mighty
struggle he tore her as it were from his bosom, and 
gave the remainder of the day to
his country and duty.
</para>
<para>
Who has not heard of the events of that
fearful hour, on which the fate of Europe
hung as it were suspended in a scale? On one
side supported by the efforts of desperate resolution, 
guided by the most consummate art;
and on the other defended, by a discipline and
enduring courage, almost without a parallel.
</para>
<para>
The indefatigable Blucher arrived, and the
star of Napoleon sunk.
</para>
<para>
Pendennyss threw himself from his horse,
on the night of the eighteenth of June, as he
gave way by orders, in the pursuit, to the
fresher battalions of the Prussians -- with the
languor that follows unusual excitement, and
mental thanksgivings that his bloody work
was at length ended. The image of his
Emily again broke over the sterner feelings
engendered by the battle, as the first glimmerings 
of light, which succeed the awful
darkness of the eclipse of the sun; and he
again breathed freely, in the consciousness of
the happiness which would await his now
speedy return.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am sent for the Colonel of the -- th Dragoons,&quot; 
said a courier in broken English to
a soldier, near where the Earl lay on the
ground, waiting the preparations of his attendants -- 
&quot;have I found the right regiment,
my friend?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;To be sure you have,&quot; answered the
man, without looking up from his toil on his
favourite animal, &quot;you might have tracked us
by the dead Frenchmen, I should think.
So you want my Lord, my lad, do you? do
we move again to-night?&quot; suspending his labour for 
a moment in expectation of a reply.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not to my knowledge,&quot; rejoined the
courier, &quot;my message is to your Colonel,
from a dying man; will you point out his
station?&quot; the soldier complied, and the message 
was soon delivered, and Pendennyss
prepared to obey its summons immediately.
Preceded by the messenger as a guide, and
followed by Harmer, the Earl retraced his
steps, over that ground he had but a few hours
before been engaged on, in the deadly strife
of man to man, hand to hand.
</para>
<para>
How different is the contemplation of a
field of battle, during and after the conflict.
The excitement -- suspended success -- shouts,
uproar, and confusion of the former, prevent any 
contemplation of the nicer parts, of
this confused mass of movements, charges
and retreats; or if a brilliant advance is
made, a masterly retreat effected, the imagination 
is chained by the splendour and glory
of the act, without resting for a moment, on
the sacrifice of individual happiness with
which it is purchased. A battle ground from
which the whir wind of the combat has
passed, presents a different sight -- it offers the
very consummation of human misery.
</para>
<para>
There may be occasionally an individual,
who from station, distempered mind, or the
encouragement of chimerical ideas of glory,
quits the theatre of life with at least the
appearance of pleasure in his triumphs; if
such there be in reality, if this rapture of
departing glory be any thing more than the
deception of a distempered excitement, the
subject of its exhibition, is to be greatly pitied.
</para>
<para>
To the Christian, dying in peace with both
God and man, can it alone be ceded in the
eye of reason, to pour out his existence, with
a smile on his quivering lip.
</para>
<para>
And the warrior, who falls in the very
arms of victory, after passing a life devoted
to the world; even if he sees kingdoms hang
suspended on his success, may smile indeed 
 -- may utter sentiments full of loyalty and zeal 
 -- may be the admiration of the world -- and
what is his reward? a deathless name, and
an existence of misery, which knows no termination.
</para>
<para>
Christianity alone can make us good soldiers in 
any cause, for he who knows how to
live, is always the least afraid to die.
</para>
<para>
Pendennyss and his companions pushed
their way over the ground occupied before
the battle by the enemy, descended into, and
through that little valley, in which yet lay in
undistinguished confusion, masses of dead
and the dying of either side; and again over
the ridge, on which could be marked the
situation of those gallant Squares, which had
so long resisted the efforts of the horse and
artillery, by the groups of bodies, fallen
where they had bravely stood, until even
the callous Harmer, sickened with the sight
of a waste of life, he had but a few hours
before exultingly contributed to increase.
</para>
<para>
Appeals to their feelings as they rode
through the field had been frequent, and their
progress much retarded, by their attempts to
contribute to the ease of a wounded or a dying man: 
but as the courier constantly urged
their speed, as the only means of securing the
object of their ride, these halts were reluctantly abandoned.
</para>
<para>
It was ten o'clock before they reached the
farm house, where lay in the midst of hundreds of 
his countrymen, the former lover of
Jane.
</para>
<para>
As the subject of his confession must be
anticipated by the reader, we will give a
short relation of his life, and those acts which
more materially affect our history.
</para>
<para>
Henry Egerton had been turned early on
the world, like hundreds of his countrymen,
without any principle, to counteract the arts
of infidelity, or resist the temptations of life.
His father held a situation under government,
and was devoted to his rise in the diplomatic
line. His mother, a woman of fashion, who
lived for effect, and idle competition with her
sisters in weakness and folly. All he learnt
in his father's house, was selfishness, from
the example of one, and a love of high life
and its extravagance, from the other, of his
parents.
</para>
<para>
He entered the army young -- from choice.
The splendour and reputation of the service,
caught his fancy; and he was, by pride and
constitution, indifferent to personal danger.
Yet he loved London and its amusements
better than glory; and the money of his uncle, 
Sir Edgar, whose heir he was reputed
to be, had raised him to the rank of Lieutenant Colonel, 
without his spending an hour
in the field.
</para>
<para>
Egerton had some abilities, and a good
deal of ardour of temperament, by nature.
The former from indulgence and example,
degenerated into the acquiring the art to
please in mixed society; and the latter, from
want of employment, expended itself at the
card table. The very irritability of genius,
is dangerous to an idle man. It prompts to
mischief, if it be not employed in good.
</para>
<para>
The association between the vices is intimate.
There really appears to be a kind of modesty
in sin, that makes it ashamed of good company. 
If we are unable to reconcile a favourite
propensity to our principles, we are apt to
abandon the unpleasant restraint on our actions, 
rather than admit the incongruous
mixture -- freed entirely from the fetters of
our morals, what is there our vices will not
prompt us to commit? Egerton, like thousands of 
others, went on from step to step in
the abandonment of virtue, until he found
himself in the world, free to follow all his inclinations, 
so he violated none of the decencies of life -- and this 
consisted in detection -- what was hid did no harm.
</para>
<para>
When in Spain, on service in his only
campaign, he was accidentally, as has been
mentioned, thrown in the way of the Donna
Julia, and brought her off the ground, under
the influence of natural sympathy and national 
feeling -- a kind of merit that makes vice
only more dangerous, by making it sometimes amiable. 
He had not seen his dependant long, before her beauty, situation, and
his passions, decided him to effect her ruin.
</para>
<para>
This was an occupation, his figure, manners and 
propensities had made him an adept
in, and nothing was farther from his thoughts
than the commission of any other, than the
crime a gentleman might be guilty of (in his
opinion) with impunity.
</para>
<para>
It is however the misfortune of sin, that
from being our slave it becomes a tyrant, and
Egerton attempted what in other countries,
and where the laws ruled, might have cost
him his life.
</para>
<para>
The conjecture of Pendennyss was true 
 -- he saw the face of the officer who had interposed, 
between him and his villanous attempt, but 
was hid himself from view -- he
aimed not at his life, but his own escape;
happily his first shot succeeded, for the Earl
would have been sacrificed, to preserve the
character of a man of honour; though no one
was more regardless of the estimation he was
held in by the virtuous than Colonel Egerton.
</para>
<para>
In pursuance of his plans on Mrs. Fitzgerald, 
the Colonel had sedulously avoided
admitting any of his companions, into the
secret of his having a female in his care.
</para>
<para>
When he left the army to return home, he
remained until a movement of the troops to
a distant part of the country, enabled him to
effect his own purposes, without incurring
their ridicule; and when he found himself
obliged to abandon his vehicle, for a refuge
in the woods, the fear of detection made him
alter his course, and under the pretence of
wishing to be in a battle about to be fought,
he secretly rejoined the army, and the gallantry 
of Colonel Egerton was mentioned in
the next despatches.
</para>
<para>
Sir Herbert Nicholson commanded the
advanced guard, at which the Earl arrived
with the Donna Julia, and like every other
brave man (unless guilty himself) was indignant 
at the villany of the fugitive. The
times, confusion and enormities, daily practiced 
in the theatre of the war, prevented any
close inquiries into the subject, and circumstances 
had so enveloped Egerton in mystery,
that nothing but an interview with the lady
herself was likely to expose him.
</para>
<para>
With Sir Herbert Nicholson he had been in
habits of intimacy, and on that gentleman's
alluding in a conversation in the barracks at
F -- to the lady, brought into his quarters
before Lishon, he accidentally omitted mentioning 
the name of her rescuer. Egerton
had never before heard the transaction spoken of, 
and as he had of course never mentioned the subject 
himself, was ignorant of
who interfered between him and his views,
also of the fate of Donna Julia; indeed, he
thought it probable that it had not much improved 
by a change of guardians.
</para>
<para>
In his object in coming into Northamptonshire he 
had several views; he wanted a
temporary retreat from his creditors. Jarvis had an 
infant fondness for play, without an adequate skill, 
and the money of the young ladies, in his necessities, 
was becoming of importance; but the daughters of
Sir Edward Moseley were of a description
more suited to his taste, and their portions
were as ample as the others: he had become
in some degree attached to Jane, and as her
imprudent parents, satisfied with his possessing the 
exterior and requisite recommendations of a 
gentleman, admitted his visits
freely, he determined to make her his wife.
</para>
<para>
When he met Denbigh the first time, he saw
chance had thrown him in the way of a man
who might hold his character in his power;
he had never seen Pendennyss, and it will
be remembered, was ignorant of the name
of Julia's friend; he now learnt, for the first
time, that it was Denbigh: uneasy at he
knew not what, fearful of some exposure, he
knew not how, when Sir Herbert alluded to
the occurrence -- with a view to rebut the
charge, if Denbigh should choose to make
one; with the near sightedness of guilt. he
pretended to know the occurrence, and under
the promise of secrecy, mentioned that the
name of the officer was Denbigh; he had
noticed Denbigh, avoiding Sir Herbert at
the ball, and judging others from himself,
thought it was a wish to avoid any allusions
to the lady he had brought into the others
quarters that induced the measure; he was in
hopes that if Denbigh was not as guilty as himself, 
he was sufficiently so, to wish to keep the
transaction from the eyes of Emily: he was
however prepared for an explosion or an alliance with 
him, when the sudden departure
of Sir Herbert removed the danger of a collision -- 
believing at last they were to be brothers-in law, 
and mistaking the Earl for his
cousin, whose name he bore, Egerton became 
reconciled to the association; while
Pendennyss having in his absence heard on
inquiring some of the vices of the Colonel,
was debating with himself, whether he should
expose them to Sir Edward or not.
</para>
<para>
It was in their occasional interchange of
civilities that Pendennyss placed his pocketbook 
upon a table, while he exhibited the
plants to the Colonel; the figure of Emily
passing the window, drew him from the
room, and Egerton having ended his examination, 
observing the book, put it in his
own pocket, to return it to its owner when
they next met.
</para>
<para>
The situation; name and history of Mrs.
Fitzgerald were never mentioned by the
Moseleys in public; but Jane, in the confidence 
of her affections, had told her lover
who the inmate of the cottage was; the idea
of her being kept there by Denbigh, immediately 
occurred to him, and although he
was surprised at the audacity of the thing,
he was determined to profit by the occasion.
</para>
<para>
To pay this visit, he staid away from the
excursion on the water, as Pendennyss did
to avoid his friend, Lord Henry Stapleton.
An excuse of business which served for his
apology, kept the Colonel from seeing Denbigh 
to return the book, until after his visit
to the Cottage -- his rhapsody of love, and
offers to desert his intended wife, were
nothing but the common place talk of his
purposes; and his presumption in alluding to
his situation with Miss Moseley, proceeded
from his impressions as to Julia's real character; 
in this struggle for the bell, the
pocket book of Denbigh accidentally fell
from his coat -- and the retreat of the Colonel
was too precipitate to enable him to recover
it.
</para>
<para>
Mrs. Fitzgerald was too much alarmed to
distinguish nicely, and Egerton proceeded to
the ball room with the indifference of a hardened 
offender. When the arrival of Miss
Jarvis, to whom he had committed himself,
prompted him to a speedy declaration, and
the unlucky conversation of Mr. Holt brought
about a probable detection of his gaming propensities, 
the Colonel determined to get rid
of his awkward situation and his debts, by a
coup-de-main -- he eloped with Miss Jarvis.
</para>
<para>
What portion of the foregoing narrative
made the dying confession of Egerton to the
man he had lately discovered to be the Earl
of Pendennyss, the reader can easily imagine.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader><chapnum>
Chapter XXIV.
</chapnum></chapheader>
<para>
The harvest had been gathered, and the
beautiful vales of Pendennyss, were shooting
forth a second crop of verdure. The husbandman 
was turning his prudent forethought
to the promises of the coming year, while
the castle itself exhibited to the gaze of the
wondering peasant, a sight of cheerfulness
and animation, which had not been seen in
it since the days of the good duke. Its numerous 
windows were opened to the light of
the sun -- its halls teemed with the happy faces 
of its inmates. Servants, in various liveries, were 
seen gliding through its magnificent apartments, and multiplied passages.
Horses, grooms, and carriages, with varied
costume and different armorial bearings,
crowded its spacious stables and offices. 
 -- Every thing spoke -- society -- splendour 
 -- and activity without. Every thing denoted
order -- propriety -- and happiness within.
</para>
<para>
In a long range of spacious apartments, were
grouped in the pursuit of their morning 
employments, or in arranging their duties and
pleasures of the day, the guests and owners
of the princely abode.
</para>
<para>
In one room was John Moseley, carefully
examining the properties of some flints, submitted 
to his examination by his attending
servant; while Grace, setting by his side,
playfully snatches the stones from his hand,
as she cries half reproachfully -- half tenderly 
 -- 
   &quot;You must not devote yourself to your
gun so incessantly, Moseley; it is cruel to
kill inoffensive birds for your amusement only.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ask Emily's cook, and Mr. Haughton's
appetite,&quot; said John, cooly, extending his
hand towards her for the flint -- &quot;whether
no one is gratified but myself. I tell you,
Grace, I seldom fire in vain.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That only makes the matter worse -- the
slaughter you commit is dreadful,&quot; rejoined
his wife, still refusing to return her prize.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh!&quot; cried John, with a laugh, &quot;the
ci-devant Captain Jarvis is a sportsman to
your mind. He would shoot a month without
moving a feather -- he was a great friend to,&quot;
he continued, throwing an arch look to his
solitary sister, who sat on a sopha at a distance perusing 
a book, &quot;Jane's feathered songsters.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But now, Moseley,&quot; said Grace, yielding the flints, 
but gently retaining the hand
that took them; &quot; Pendennyss and Chatterton intend driving 
their wives, like good husbands, to see the beautiful water-fall in the
mountains; and what am I to do this long
tedious morning?&quot;
</para>
<para>
John stole an inquiring glance, to see if his
wife was very anxious to join the party 
-- cast one look of regret on a beautiful agate
he had selected, and inquired: 
-- 
   &quot;You don't wish to ride very much, Mrs.
Moseley?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Indeed -- indeed, I do,&quot; said the other
eagerly, &quot;if&quot; --    &quot;If what?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You will drive me?&quot; continued she,
with a cheek slightly tinged with an unusual
vermilion.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well them,&quot; answered John, with deliberation, 
and regarding his wife with great
affection, &quot;I will go -- on one condition.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Name it?&quot; cried Grace, with still increasing colour, 
from the glow of hope.
</para>
<para>
&quot;That you will not expose your health
again, in going to the church on a Sunday,
if it rains.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The carriage is so close, Moseley,&quot; answered Grace, 
with a paler cheek than before, and eyes fixed on the 
carpet, &quot;it is impossible I can take cold -- you see the Earl,
and Countess, and aunt Wilson, never miss
public worship, when possibly within their
power.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Earl goes with his wife; but what
becomes of poor me at such times,&quot; said John,
taking her hand, and pressing it kindly. &quot;I
like to hear a good sermon -- but not in bad
weather. You must consent to oblige me,
who only live in your presence.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Grace smiled faintly, as John, pursuing the
point, said -- &quot;But what do you say to my
condition?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well, then, if you wish,&quot; replied Grace,
without the look of gaiety, her hopes had first
inspired: &quot;I will not go if it rains.&quot;
</para>
<para>
John ordered his phaeton, and his wife
went to her room to prepare for the ride, and
regret her own resolution.
</para>
<para>
In the recess of a window, in which bloomed a 
profusion of exotics, stood the figure of
Lady Marian Denbigh, playing with a half
blown rose of the richest colours; and before her 
stood leaning against the angle of the
wall, her kinsman, the Duke of Derwent.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You heard the plan at the breakfast table,&quot; 
said his Grace, -- &quot;to visit the little falls
in the hills. But I suppose you have seen
them too often to undergo the fatigue for the
pleasure?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh no?&quot; rejoined the lady with a smile,
&quot;I love that ride dearly, and should wish to
accompany the Countess in her first visit to
it. I had half a mind to ask George to take
me in his phaeton with them.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;My curricle would be honoured with the
presence of Lady Marian Denbigh,&quot; cried
the Duke with animation, &quot;if she would accept me for 
her Knight on the occasion.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Marian bowed her assent, in evident satisfaction 
to the arrangement, as the Duke proceeded 
-- 
   &quot;But if you take me as your Knight, I
should wear your ladyship's colours;&quot; and
he held out his hand towards the budding
rose. Lady Marian hesitated a moment 
 -- looked out at the prospect -- up at the wall
 -- turned, and wondered where her brother
was; and still finding the hand of the Duke
extended, as his eye rested on her in admiration. -- 
She gave him the boon, with a cheek
that vied with the richest tints of the flower. They 
separated to prepare, and it was
on their return from the ride, the Duke seemed 
uncommonly gay and amusing, and the
lady silent with her tongue, though her eyes
danced in every direction, but towards her
cousin.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Really, my dear Lady Moseley,&quot; said the
Dowager, as seated by the side of her companion, 
her eyes roved over the magnificence
within, and widely extended domains without -- 
&quot;Emily is well established, indeed 
-- better even, than my Grace.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Grace has an affectionate husband,&quot; replied the 
other, gravely, &quot;and one that I hope
will make her happy.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! no doubt happy?&quot; said Lady Chatterton, hastily: 
&quot;but they say Emily has a
jointure of twelve thousand a year -- by-thebye,&quot; she 
added, in a low tone, though no
one was near enough to hear what she said,
&quot;could not the Earl have settled Lumley
Castle on her, instead of the deanery?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Upon my word I never think of such
gloomy subjects, as provisions for widowhood,&quot; cried 
Lady Moseley -- but, with a
brightening look, &quot;you have been in Annerdale-House -- 
is it not a princely mausion?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Princely, indeed,&quot; rejoined the Dowager
with a sigh: &quot;don't the Earl intend increasing the 
rents of this estate, as the leases fall
in -- I am told they are very low now?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I believe not,&quot; said the other. &quot;He has
enough, and is willing others should prosper
-- but there is Clara, with her little boy -- is
he not a lovely child,&quot; cried the grandmother
with a look of delight, as she rose to take
the infant in her arms.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! excessively beautiful!&quot; said the
Dowager, looking the other way, and observing 
Catherine making a movement towards
Lord Henry Stapleton -- she called to her.
&quot;Lady Herriefield -- come this way, my dear
-- I wish you here.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Kate obeyed with a sullen pout of her pretty lip, 
and entered into some idle discussion
about a cap, though her eyes wandered round
the rooms in listless vacancy.
</para>
<para>
The Dowager had the curse of bad impressions in youth 
to contend with, and laboured infinitely harder now to make her
daughter act right, than formerly she had
ever done to make her act wrong.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Here! uncle Benfield,&quot; cried Emily,
with a face glowing with health and animation, as she 
approached his seat with a glass
in her hands. &quot;Here is the negus you wished; I have 
made it myself, and you must
praise it of course.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! my dear Lady Pendennyss,&quot; said
the old gentleman, rising politely from his
seat to receive his beverage; &quot;you are putting yourself 
to a great deal of trouble for an
old bachelor, like me -- too much indeed 
-- too much.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Old bachelors are sometimes more esteemed than 
young ones,&quot; cried the Earl gaily, as he joined them 
in time to hear this
speech to his wife. &quot;Here is my friend,
Mr. Peter Johnson, who knows when we
may dance at his wedding.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;My Lord -- and my Lady -- and my honoured master,&quot; 
said Peter gravely in reply,
and bowing respectfully where he stood, with
a salver to take his master's glass -- &quot;I am
past the age to think of a wife; I am seventy-three, 
come next lammas -- counting by
the old style.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;What do you intend to do with your
three hundred a year,&quot; said Emily with
a smile, &quot;unless you bestow it on some
good woman, for making the evening of your
life comfortable?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;My Lady -- hem -- my Lady,&quot; said the
steward, blushing; &quot;I had a little thought,
with your kind ladyship's consent, as I have
no relations, chick or child, in the world, what
to do with it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I should be happy to hear your plan,&quot;
said the Countess, observing the steward
anxious to communicate something.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, my Lady, if my Lord and my honoured master's 
agreeable, I did think of putting another 
codicil to master's will in order
to dispose of it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your master's will,&quot; said the Earl laughing; 
&quot;why not your own, my good Peter?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;My honoured Lord,&quot; said the steward,
with great humility, &quot;it don't become a poor
serving man like me to make a will.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But how will you prove it,&quot; said the
Earl kindly, willing to convince him of his
error; &quot;you must be both dead to prove it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Our wills,&quot; said Peter, gulping his words,
&quot;will be proved on the same day.&quot; His
master looked round at him with great affection, 
and both the Earl and Emily were too
much struck with his attachment to say
any thing. Peter had, however, the subject
too much at heart to abandon it, just as he had
broke the ice. He anxiously wished the
Countess's consent to the scheme, for he
would not affront her even after he was dead.
</para>
<para>
&quot;My Lady -- Miss Emmy,&quot; said Johnson,
eagerly, &quot;my plan is -- if my honoured master's 
agreeable -- to make a codicil -- and give
my mite to a little -- Lady Emily Denbigh.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh! Peter, you and uncle Benfield are
both too good,&quot; cried Emily, laughing and
blushing, as she hastened to Clara and her
mother.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Thank you -- thank you,&quot; cried the delighted 
Earl, following his wife with his
eyes, and shaking the steward cordially by
the hand -- &quot;and if no better expedient be
adopted by us, you have full permission
to do as you please with your money&quot; 
 -- and the husband joined some of his other guests.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Peter,&quot; said his master to him, in a low
tone, &quot;you should never speak of such
things prematurely -- now I remember when
the Earl of Pendennyss, my nephew, was
first presented to me, I was struck with the
delicacy and propriety of his demeanour 
 -- and the Lady Pendennyss, my niece too 
-- you never see any thing forward or -- Ah!
Emmy, dear,&quot; said the old man tenderly, interupting 
himself, &quot;you are too good -- to
remember your old uncle,&quot; taking one
of the fine peaches she handed him from a
plate -- the Countess handed the steward one
also, though with an averted face, and expression 
of archness and shame.
</para>
<para>
&quot;My Lord,&quot; said Mr. Haughton to the
Earl, &quot;Mrs. Ives and myself, have had a
contest about the comforts of matrimony
-- she insists she may be quite as happy at Bolton
Parsonage, as in this noble castle, and with
this rich prospect in view.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hope,&quot; said Francis, &quot;you are not teaching 
my wife to be discontented with her
humble lot -- if so, both, her's and your
visit will be an unhappy one.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It would be no easy task, if our good
friend intended any such thing, by his jests,&quot;
said Clara, smiling; &quot;I know my true interests, 
I trust, too well, to wish to change my
fortune.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are right,&quot; said Pendennyss; &quot;it is
wonderful how little our happiness depends on 
our temporal condition -- when
here, or at Lumley Castle, surrounded by
my tenantry, there are, I confess, moments
of weakness, in which the loss of my wealth
or rank, would be missed greatly -- but when
on service -- subjected to great privations,
and surrounded by men superior to me in
military rank, and who say unto me -- go, and
I go -- come, and I come -- I find my enjoyments 
intrinsically the same.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That,&quot; said Francis, &quot;may be owing to
your Lordship's tempered feelings -- which
have taught you to look beyond this world
for your pleasures and consolation.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It has doubtless an effect,&quot; said the Earl,
&quot;but there is no truth I am more fully persuaded of, 
than, that our happiness here, does
not depend upon our lot in life, so we are
not suffering for necessaries -- even changes
bring less real misery than they are supposed to.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Doubtless;&quot; cried Mr. Haughton, &quot;under
the circumstances, I would not wish to change,
even with your Lordship, unless, indeed,&quot;
he continued, with a smile, and bow to the
Countess, &quot;it were the temptation of your
lovely wife.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are quite polite,&quot; said Emily,
laughing, &quot;but I have no desire to deprive Mrs.
Haughton of a companion she has made out
so well with these twenty years past.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Thirty, my Lady, if you please.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And thirty more, I hope,&quot; continued
Emily, as a servant announced the several
carriages at the door. The younger part of
the company now hastened to their different
engagements, and Chatterton handed Harriet; 
John, Grace; and Pendennyss, Emily,
into their respective carriages; the Duke
and Lady Marian following, but at some little
distance from the rest of the party.
</para>
<para>
As the Earl drove from the door, the Countess
looked up to a window, at which were standing her 
aunt and Doctor Ives; and kissed her
hand to them, with a face, in which glowed
the mingled expressions of innocence -- love
and joy.
</para>
<para>
Before leaving the Park, the party passed
Sir Edward, with his wife leaning on one
arm and Jane on the other -- pursuing
their daily walk -- The Baronet followed the
carriages with his eyes, and exchanged looks
of the fondest love with his children, as they
drove slowly and respectfully by him, and if
the glance which followed on Jane, did not
speak equal pleasure -- it surely denoted its
proper proportion of paternal love.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have much reason to congratulate
yourself, on the happy termination of your
labours,&quot; said the Doctor, with a smile, to
the widow; &quot;Emily is placed, so far as human foresight 
can judge, in the happiest of
all stations a female can be in -- the pious
wife of a pious husband -- beloved, and deserving of it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yes,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, drawing back
from following the phaeton with her eyes,
&quot;they are as happy as this world will admit
of, and, what is better, they are well prepared to 
meet any reverse of fortune which
may occur -- and discharge the duties they
have entered on; -- I do not think,&quot; continued
she musing,&quot;that Pendennyss can ever doubt
the affections of such a woman as Emily.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I should think not,&quot; said the Doctor,
with a smile, &quot;but what can excite such a
thought in your breast, and one so much to
the prejudice of George?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The only unpleasant thing, I have ever
observed in him,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, gravely,
&quot;is the suspicion which induced him to
adopt the disguise he entered our family
with.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He did not adopt it, Madam -- chance,
and circumstances drew it around him accidentally -- 
and when you consider the peculiar state of his mind from the discovery of
his mother's misconduct -- his own great
wealth and rank -- it is not surprising he
should yield to a deception, rather harmless
than injurious.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Dr. Ives,&quot; said Mrs. Wilson, &quot;is not
wont to defend deceit.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nor do I now, Madam,&quot; replied the
Doctor, with a smile, &quot;I acknowledge the
offence of George -- myself, wife, and son 
 -- I remonstrated at the time upon principle 
 -- I said the end would not justify the means 
 -- that a departure from ordinary rules of propriety, 
was at all times dangerous, and seldom
practised with impunity.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And you failed to convince your hearers,&quot; cried 
Mrs. Wilson, gayly;&quot;a novelty in
your case, my good rector.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I thank you for your compliment,&quot;
said the Doctor, &quot;I did convince them
as to the truth of the principle, but the
Earl contended his case might make an innocent 
exception -- he had the vanity to
think, I believe, that by concealing his real
name, he injured himself more than any one
else, and got rid of the charge in some such
way -- he is, however, thoroughly convinced
of the truth of the position by practice -- his
sufferings, growing out of the mistake of his
real character, and which could not have
happened had he appeared in proper person 
 -- were greater than he is free to acknowledge.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;If they study the fate of the Donna
Julia, and his own weakness,&quot; said the
widow, &quot;they will have a salutary moral always at 
hand, to teach them the importance
of two cardinal virtues at least -- obedience
and truth.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Julia has suffered much,&quot; replied the
Doctor, &quot;and although she has returned to
her father, the consequences of her imprudence are 
likely to continue -- when once
the bonds of mutual confidence and respect
are broken -- they may be partially restored
it is true; but never with a warmth and reliance, 
such as existed previously -- to return,
however, to yourself -- do you not feel a sensation 
of delight at the prosperous end of
your exertions in behalf of Emily?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is certainly pleasant to think we have
discharged our duties -- and the task is much
easier than we are apt to suppose,&quot; said Mrs.
Wilson; &quot;it is only to commence the foundation, so 
that it will be able to support the superstructure -- 
I have endeavoured to make Emily a christian -- I have 
endeavoured to form such a taste, and principles in her -- 
that she would not be apt to
admire an improper suitor -- and I have laboured to 
prepare her to discharge her continued duties through life, 
in such a manner and with such a faith, as will, under 
the providence of God, result in happiness far exceeding 
any thing she now enjoys -- in all
these, by the blessings of Heaven, I have
succeeded -- and had occasion offered, I
would have assisted her inexperience through
the more delicate decisions of her sex 
 -- though in no instance would I attempt to
control them.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are right, my dear madam,&quot; said
the Doctor, taking her kindly by the hand,
&quot;and had I a daughter, I would follow a
similar course -- give her delicacy -- religion,
and a proper taste, aided by the unseen influence 
of a prudent parent's care -- the
chances of women for happiness would be
much greater than they are -- and I am entirely of 
your opinion -- &quot;That prevention
is at all times better than cure.&quot;
</para>
<para-center>
<emph>-- End --</emph>
</para-center>
</chapter>
</part>
</bookbody>
</book>
<endgutblurb>
<para>
End of Precaution by James Fenimore Cooper for Arthur's Classic Novels
</para>
</endgutblurb>
</gutbook>

